summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/old/67149-h
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to 'old/67149-h')
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/67149-h.htm18353
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/cover.jpgbin216593 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig1.jpgbin114199 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig10.jpgbin31495 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig100.jpgbin42598 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig101.jpgbin31725 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig11.jpgbin45088 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig12.jpgbin158622 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig13.jpgbin127915 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig14.jpgbin139352 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig15.jpgbin152970 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig16.jpgbin47114 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig17.jpgbin58833 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig18.jpgbin91646 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig19.jpgbin216325 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig2.jpgbin16277 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig20.jpgbin102381 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig21.jpgbin34182 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig22.jpgbin31127 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig23.jpgbin48972 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig24.jpgbin21843 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig25.jpgbin36072 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig26.jpgbin131453 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig27.jpgbin149383 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig28.jpgbin27982 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig29.jpgbin17120 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig3.jpgbin4406 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig30.jpgbin212743 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig31.jpgbin45188 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig32.jpgbin44316 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig33.jpgbin87336 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig34.jpgbin36902 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig35.jpgbin65823 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig36.jpgbin40730 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig37.jpgbin131832 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig38.jpgbin32722 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig39.jpgbin166356 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig4.jpgbin127550 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig40.jpgbin54709 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig41.jpgbin40907 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig42.jpgbin37508 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig43.jpgbin93806 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig44.jpgbin31928 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig45.jpgbin170334 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig46.jpgbin224582 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig47.jpgbin18737 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig48.jpgbin113969 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig49.jpgbin81768 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig5.jpgbin205965 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig50.jpgbin41539 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig51.jpgbin29463 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig52.jpgbin49275 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig53.jpgbin34842 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig54.jpgbin125907 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig55.jpgbin41051 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig56.jpgbin23914 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig57.jpgbin224318 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig58.jpgbin32816 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig59.jpgbin91671 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig6.jpgbin56811 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig60.jpgbin112626 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig61.jpgbin57296 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig62.jpgbin211096 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig63.jpgbin28624 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig64.jpgbin162042 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig65.jpgbin34618 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig66.jpgbin178182 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig67.jpgbin28187 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig68.jpgbin36803 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig69.jpgbin36857 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig7.jpgbin106513 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig70.jpgbin24033 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig71.jpgbin61421 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig72.jpgbin209584 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig73.jpgbin81250 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig74.jpgbin207681 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig75.jpgbin232569 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig75big.jpgbin236979 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig76.jpgbin30580 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig77.jpgbin32792 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig78.jpgbin37764 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig79.jpgbin120973 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig8.jpgbin20424 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig80.jpgbin223603 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig81.jpgbin45276 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig82.jpgbin174698 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig83.jpgbin31913 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig84.jpgbin103617 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig85.jpgbin73772 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig86.jpgbin120558 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig87.jpgbin31400 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig88.jpgbin35608 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig89.jpgbin161908 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig9.jpgbin37884 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig90.jpgbin33447 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig91.jpgbin9779 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig92.jpgbin221345 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig93.jpgbin33180 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig94.jpgbin135716 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig95.jpgbin222999 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig96.jpgbin97514 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig97.jpgbin26193 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig98.jpgbin20189 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67149-h/images/fig99.jpgbin219443 -> 0 bytes
104 files changed, 0 insertions, 18353 deletions
diff --git a/old/67149-h/67149-h.htm b/old/67149-h/67149-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 47f5430..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/67149-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,18353 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
-"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
-<title>A Child’s History Of the World , by V. M. Hillyer&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook</title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h1 {font-size: 200%;
- font-weight: normal;}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.p6 {margin-top: 6em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-
-
-hr.full {width: 95%; margin-left: 2.5%; margin-right: 2.5%;}
-
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-ul.index { list-style-type: none; }
-li.ifrst {
- margin-top: 1em;
- text-indent: -2em;
- padding-left: 1em;
-}
-li.indx {
- margin-top: .5em;
- text-indent: -2em;
- padding-left: 1em;
-}
-li.isub1 {
- text-indent: -2em;
- padding-left: 2em;
-}
-
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-
-
-.tdl {text-align: left;}
-.tdr {text-align: right;}
-.tdc {text-align: center;}
-.tdrb {text-align: right; vertical-align: bottom;}
-.tdrt {text-align: right;
- vertical-align: top;}
-.tdlt {text-align: left;
- vertical-align: top;}
-
-.tds {text-align: left;
- font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.tdlb {text-align: left;
- font-size: 150%;}
-
-.tdcp {text-align: center;
- padding-left: 2em;}
-
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-.blockquota {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- font-size: 85%;
-}
-
-.blockquotb {
- margin-left: 55%;
-
- font-size: 85%;
-}
-
-
-.xxxlarge {font-size: 250%;}
-.xxlarge {font-size: 150%;}
-.xlarge {font-size: 140%;}
-.large {font-size: 120%;}
-.medium {font-size: 85%;}
-.little {font-size: 75%;}
-.more {font-size: 70%;}
-.tiny {font-size: 60%;}
-
-.c {text-align: center;}
-
-.pad4 {padding-left: 4.5em;}
-
-.pad5 {padding-left: 2em;}
-
-.pad6 {padding-left: 10em;}
-
-.pad7 {padding-left: 15em;}
-
-.pad8 {padding-left: 11em;}
-
-.pad9 {padding-left: 14em;}
-
-.pad10 {padding-left: 13em;}
-
-.pad6a {padding-left: .5em;}
-
-.pad6b {padding-left: 1em;}
-
-.pad6c {padding-left: 1.5em;}
-
-.pad6d {padding-left: 2em;}
-
-.pad6e {padding-left: 2.5em;}
-
-.pad6f {padding-left: 3em;}
-
-.pad11 {padding-left: 5.5em;}
-
-.pad12 {padding-left: 6.5em;}
-
-.pad13 {padding-left: 7.5em;}
-
-.pad14 {padding-left: 8.5em;}
-
-.pad15 {padding-left: 12em;}
-
-.pad6g {padding-left: 4em;}
-
-.padr {padding-right: .5em;}
-
-.pad6h {padding-left: 5em;}
-
-.pad6i {padding-left: 6em;}
-
-
-
-.ph2 {text-align: center; text-indent: 0em;
- font-size: 160%;
- }
-
-.narrow {margin-left: 15%;
- margin-right: 15%;}
-
-.pc {margin-left: 42%;
- margin-bottom: 0;}
-
-.pca {margin-left: 30%;
- margin-top: 0;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.allsmcap {font-variant: small-caps; text-transform: lowercase;}
-
-.u {text-decoration: underline;}
-
-
-.gesperrta
-{
- letter-spacing: 0.6em;
- margin-right: -0.2em;
-}
-
-
-.caption {font-weight: bold;
-text-align: center;
-font-size: 80%;}
-
-.captiona {font-weight: bold;
-margin-left: 7em;
-font-size: 80%;}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.figcenter1 {
- padding-top: 4em;
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.figcenter2 {
- padding-top: 6em;
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.figleft {
- float: left;
- clear: left;
- margin-left: 0;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-right: 1em;
- padding: 0;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-
-.figright {
- float: right;
- clear: right;
- margin-left: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-right: 0;
- padding: 0;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-
-/* Footnotes */
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
-
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration:
- none;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {text-align: left; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;
- font-size:85%;}
-
- .poetry {display: inline-block;}
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
-
-@media print { .poetry {display: block;} }
-
-
-.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3em;}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Child’s History of the World, by V. M. Hillyer</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: A Child’s History of the World</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: V. M. Hillyer</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Illustrators: Carle Michel Boog<br />
-            M. S. Wright</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: January 12, 2022 [eBook #67149]<br />
-[Most recently updated: January 15, 2022]</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Alan, Tim Lindell and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team</div>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-<h1>
-A CHILD’S HISTORY<br />
-OF THE WORLD
-</h1>
-
-
-<p class="p6 u c">By V. M. HILLYER</p>
-
-
-
-<p class="pad6">
-A CHILD’S GEOGRAPHY OF THE WORLD<br />
-A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD<br />
-CHILD TRAINING<br />
-THE DARK SECRET
-</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 u c">With EDWARD G. HUEY</p>
-
-<p class="pad6">
-A CHILD’S HISTORY OF ART
-</p>
-
-
-<div class="figcenter1">
-<img src="images/fig1.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="c xxxlarge p2">
-A CHILD’S HISTORY<br />
-OF THE WORLD
-</p>
-
-<p class="c p2">
-BY</p>
-
-<p class="c xxlarge">
-V. M. HILLYER
-</p>
-
-<p class="c more">
-HEAD MASTER OF CALVERT SCHOOL<br />
-AUTHOR OF “CHILD TRAINING,” “KINDERGARTEN<br />
-AT HOME,” ETC.
-</p>
-
-<p class="c p2">
-<i>With Many Illustrations by</i><br />
-CARLE MICHEL BOOG<br />
-<span class="little">AND</span><br />
-M. S. WRIGHT
-</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter2">
-<img src="images/fig2.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="c p4">
-D. APPLETON-CENTURY COMPANY<br />
-<span class="smcap">Incorporated</span></p>
-
-<p class="c">
-<span class="smcap">New York</span> <span class="smcap pad7">London</span></p>
-
-<p class="c">
-1934
-</p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="c p2">
-<span class="smcap">Copyright, 1924, by<br />
-The Century Co.</span></p>
-
-<p class="pad8">
-All rights reserved. This book, or parts<br />
-thereof, must not be reproduced in any<br />
-form without permission of the publisher.
-</p>
-
-
-<p class="c little p6">
-PRINTED IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA
-</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_v"></span></p>
-
-<p class="ph2">LIST OF STORIES</p>
-</div>
-
-<table summary="LIST OF STORIES">
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr"><span class="tiny">STORY</span></td>
-<td class="tdl"></td>
-<td class="tdr"><span class="tiny">PAGE</span></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">1</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">How Things Started</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c1">3</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">2</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Umfa-Umfa and Itchy-Scratchy</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c2">10</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">3</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Fire! Fire!! Fire!!!</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c3">16</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">4</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">From an Airplane</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c4">20</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">5</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Real History Begins</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c5">24</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">6</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Puzzle-Writers</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c6">30</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">7</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Tomb-Builders</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c7">36</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">8</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Rich Land Where There Was No Money</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c8">42</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">9</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Wandering Jews</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c9">49</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">10</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Fairy-Tale Gods</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c10">56</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">11</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Fairy-Tale War</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c11">64</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">12</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Kings of the Jews</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c12">70</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">13</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The People Who Made Our A B C’s</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c13">74</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">14</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Hard as Nails</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c14">79</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">15</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Crown of Leaves</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c15">84</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">16</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Bad Beginning</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c16">89</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">17</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Kings with Corkscrew Curls</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c17">94</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">18</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A City of Wonder and Wickedness</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c18">99</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">19</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Surprise Party</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c19">103</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">20</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Other Side of the World</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c20">109</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">21</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Rich Man, Poor Man</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c21">114</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">22</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Rome Kicks Out Her Kings</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c22">119</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_vi"></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">23</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Greece vs. Persia</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c23">124</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">24</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Fighting Mad</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c24">132</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">25</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">One against a Thousand</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c25">137</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">26</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Golden Age</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c26">143</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">27</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">When Greek Meets Greek</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c27">151</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">28</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Wise Men and Otherwise</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c28">156</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">29</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Boy King</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c29">162</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">30</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Picking a Fight</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c30">168</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">31</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Boot Kicks and Stamps</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c31">173</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">32</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The New Champion of the World</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c32">177</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">33</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Noblest Roman of Them All</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c33">184</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">34</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">An Emperor Who was Made a God!</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c34">191</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrt">35</td>
-<td class="tdl">“<span class="smcap">Thine is the Kingdom, the Power, and the<br />
- Glory</span>”</td>
-<td class="tdrb"><a href="#c35">197</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">36</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Blood and Thunder</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c36">203</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">37</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Good Emperor and a Bad Son</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c37">210</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">38</td>
-<td class="tdl"> I &mdash; H &mdash; &mdash; S &mdash; &mdash; &mdash; &mdash; V &mdash; &mdash; &mdash; &mdash; &mdash;</td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c38">215</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">39</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Our Tough Ancestors</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c39">219</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrt">40</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">White Toughs and Yellow Toughs Meet the<br />
- Champions of the World</span></td>
-<td class="tdrb"><a href="#c40">225</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">41</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Nightfall</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c41">231</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">42</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Being Good</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c42">236</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">43</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Camel-Driver</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c43">242</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">44</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Arabian Days</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c44">250</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">45</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Light in the Dark Ages</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c45">257</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">46</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Getting a Start</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c46">264</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">47</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The End of the World</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c47">269</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">48</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Real Castles</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c48">272</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">49</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Knights and Days of Chivalry</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c49">278</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">50<span class="pagenum" id="Page_vii"></span></td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Pirate’s Great Grandson</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c50">284</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">51</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Great Adventure</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c51">292</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">52</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Tit-Tat-To; Three Kings in a Row</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c52">297</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">53</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Bibles Made of Stone and Glass</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c53">304</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">54</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">John, Whom Nobody Loved</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c54">311</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">55</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Great Story-Teller</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c55">316</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrt">56</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">“Thing-a-ma-jigger” and “What-cher-ma-call-it”;<br />
- or, A Magic Needle and a Magic<br />
- Powder</span></td>
-<td class="tdrb"><a href="#c56">322</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">57</td>
-<td class="tdl">THELON GEST WART HATE VERWAS</td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c57">327</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">58</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Off with the Old, On with the New</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c58">333</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">59</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Sailor Who Found a New World</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c59">337</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">60</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Fortune-Hunters</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c60">346</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrt">61</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Land of Enchantment; or, The Search<br />
- for Gold and Adventure</span></td>
-<td class="tdrb"><a href="#c61">354</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">62</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Born Again</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c62">359</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">63</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Christians Quarrel</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c63">365</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">64</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">King Elizabeth</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c64">372</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">65</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Age of Elizabeth</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c65">378</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">66</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">James the Servant; or, What’s in a Name?</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c66">384</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">67</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A King Who Lost His Head</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c67">390</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">68</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Red Cap and Red Heels</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c68">395</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">69</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Self-Made Man</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c69">402</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">70</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Prince Who Ran Away</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c70">407</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">71</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">America Gets Rid of Her King</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c71">412</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">72</td>
-<td class="tdl"><img src="images/fig3.jpg" alt="" /></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c72">420</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">73</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Little Giant</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c73">428</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">74</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">From Pan and His Pipes to the Phonograph</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c74">435</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">75</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Daily Papers of 1854-1865</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c75">443</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_viii"></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">76</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Three New Postage Stamps</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c76">449</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">77</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Age of Miracles</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c77">454</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">78</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Germany Fights the World</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c78">460</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">79</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Yesterday, To-day, and To-morrow</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#c79">465</a></td></tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_ix"></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="pad9">
-This page is not for you, boys and girls.<br />
-It is for that old man or woman&mdash;twenty,<br />
-thirty, or forty years old, who may peek<br />
-into this book; and is what they would<br />
-call the
-</p>
-
-<p class="ph2">PREFACE</p>
-
-
-<p>To give the child some idea of what has gone
-on in the world before he arrived;</p>
-
-<p>To take him out of his little self-centered, shut-in
-life, which looms so large because it is so close
-to his eyes;</p>
-
-<p>To extend his horizon, broaden his view, and
-open up the vista down the ages past;</p>
-
-<p>To acquaint him with some of the big events
-and great names and fix these in time and space
-as a basis for detailed study in the future;</p>
-
-<p>To give him a chronological file with main
-guides, into which he can fit in its proper place all
-his further historical study&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>Is the purpose of this first <span class="smcap">Survey of the
-World’s History</span>.</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_x"></span></p>
-
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xi"></span></p>
-
-
-<p class="pad10">
-This part is not for you, either. It is for<br />
-your father, mother, or teacher, and is<br />
-what they would call the
-</p>
-
-<p class="ph2">INTRODUCTION</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">In</span> common with all children of my age, I was
-brought up on American History and given no
-other history but American, year in and year out,
-year after year for eight or more years.</p>
-
-<p>So far as I knew 1492 was the beginning of
-the world. Any events or characters before that
-time, reference to which I encountered by any
-chance, were put down in my mind in the same
-category with fairy-tales. Christ and His
-times, of which I heard only in Sunday-school,
-were to me mere fiction without reality. They
-were not mentioned in any history that I knew
-and therefore, so I thought, must belong <i>not</i> to a
-realm in time and space, but to a spiritual realm.</p>
-
-<p>To give an American child only American
-History is as provincial as to teach a Texas child
-only Texas History. Patriotism is usually given
-as the reason for such history teaching. It only
-promotes a narrow-mindedness and an absurd<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xii"></span>
-conceit, based on utter ignorance of any other
-peoples and any other times&mdash;an intolerant
-egotism without foundation in fact. Since the
-World War it has become increasingly more and
-more important that American children should
-have a knowledge of other countries and other
-peoples in order that their attitude may be intelligent
-and unprejudiced.</p>
-
-<p>As young as nine years of age, a child is
-eagerly inquisitive as to what has taken place in
-the ages past and readily grasps a concept of
-World History. Therefore, for many years Calvert
-School nine-year-old pupils have been
-taught World History in spite of academic and
-parental skepticism and antagonism. But I have
-watched the gradual drift toward adoption of
-this plan of history teaching, and with it an ever-increasing
-demand for a text-book of general history
-for young children. I have found, however,
-that all existing text-books have to be largely
-abridged and also supplemented by a running
-explanation and comment, to make them intelligible
-to the young child.</p>
-
-<p>The recent momentous studies into the native
-intelligence of children show us what the average
-child at different ages can understand and what
-he cannot understand&mdash;what dates, figures of
-speech, vocabulary, generalities, and abstractions
-he can comprehend and what he cannot comprehend&mdash;and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiii"></span>
-in the future all text-books will have
-to be written with constant regard for these intelligence
-norms. Otherwise, such texts are very
-likely to be “over the child’s head.” They will
-be trying to teach him some things at least that,
-in the nature of the case, are beyond him.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the fact that the writer has been
-in constant contact with the child mind for a
-great many years, he has found that whatever
-was written in his study had to be revised and
-rewritten each time after the lesson had been
-tried out in the class-room. Even though the
-first writing was in what he considered the simplest
-language, he has found that each and every
-word and expression has had to be subjected
-again and again to this class-room test to determine
-what meaning is conveyed. The slightest
-inverted phraseology or possibility of double
-meaning has oftentimes been misconstrued or
-found confusing. For instance, the statement
-that “Rome was <i>on</i> the Tiber River” has quite
-commonly been taken to mean that the city was
-literally built <i>on top</i> of the river, and the child
-has had some sort of fantastic vision of houses
-built on piles in the river. A child of nine is still
-very young&mdash;he may still believe in Santa Claus&mdash;younger
-in ideas, in vocabulary and in understanding
-than most adults appreciate&mdash;even<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiv"></span>
-though they be parents or teachers&mdash;and new information
-can hardly be put too simply.</p>
-
-<p>So the topics selected have not always been
-the most important&mdash;but the most important
-that can be understood and appreciated by a
-child. Most political, sociological, economic, or
-religious generalities are beyond a child’s comprehension,
-no matter how simply told. After
-all, this History is only a preliminary story.</p>
-
-<p>Excellent biographies and stories from general
-history have been written. But biographies from
-history do not give an historic outline. They do
-not give any outline at all for future filling in;
-and, indeed, unless they themselves are fitted
-into such a general historical scheme, they are
-nothing more than so many disconnected tales
-floating about in the child’s mind with no associations
-of time or space.</p>
-
-<p>The treatment of the subject in this book is,
-therefore, chronological&mdash;telling the story of
-what has happened century by century and epoch
-by epoch, not by nations. The story of one
-nation is interrupted to take up that of another
-as different plots in a novel are brought forward
-simultaneously. This is in line with the
-purpose, which is to give the pupil a continuous
-view or panorama of the ages, rather than Greek
-History from start to finish, then, retracing the
-steps of time, Roman History, and so on. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xv"></span>
-object is to sketch the whole picture in outline,
-leaving the details to be gradually filled in by
-later study, as the artist sketches the general
-scheme of his picture before filling in the details.
-Such a scheme is as necessary to orderly classification
-of historical knowledge as is a filing system
-in any office that can function properly or
-even at all.</p>
-
-<p>The Staircase of Time is to give a visual idea
-of the extent of time and the progressive steps
-in the History of the World. Each “flight”
-represents a thousand years, and each “step” a
-hundred&mdash;a century. If you have a spare wall,
-either in the play-room, attic, or barn such a
-Staircase of Time on a large scale may be drawn
-upon it from floor to reaching height and made a
-feature if elaborated with pictures or drawings
-of people and events. If the wall faces the
-child’s bed so much the better, for when lying
-awake in the morning or at any other time, instead
-of imagining fantastic designs on the wall-paper,
-he may picture the crowded events on the
-Staircase of Time. At any rate, the child should
-constantly refer either to such a Staircase of
-Time or to the Time Table as each event is
-studied, until he has a mental image of the Ages
-past.</p>
-
-<p>At first a child does not appreciate time values
-represented by numbers or the relative position<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xvi"></span>
-of dates on a time line and will wildly say twenty-five
-hundred <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> or twenty-five thousand <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>
-or twenty-five million <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> indiscriminately.
-Only by constantly referring dates to position
-on the Staircase of Time or the Time Table can
-a child come to visualize dates. You may be
-<i>amused</i>, but do not be <i>amazed</i>, if a child gives
-776 thousand years <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> as the date for the First
-Olympiad, or says that Italy is located in Athens,
-or that Abraham was a hero of the Trojan War.</p>
-
-<p>If you have ever been introduced to a roomful
-of strangers at one time, you know how futile it is
-to attempt even to remember their names to say
-nothing of connecting names and faces. It is
-necessary to hear something interesting about
-each one before you can begin to recall names
-and faces. Likewise an introduction to World
-History, the characters and places in which are
-utterly unknown strangers to the child, must be
-something more than a mere name introduction,
-and there must be very few introductions given
-at a time or both names and faces will be instantly
-forgotten. It is also necessary to repeat new
-names constantly in order that the pupil may
-gradually become familiarized with them, for
-so many strange people and places are bewildering.</p>
-
-<p>In order to serve the purpose of a basal outline,
-which in the future is to be filled in, it is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xvii"></span>
-necessary that the Time Table be made a permanent
-possession of the pupil. This Time
-Table, therefore, should be studied like the multiplication
-tables until it is known one hundred
-per cent and for “keeps,” and until the topic connected
-with each date can be elaborated as much
-as desired. The aim should be to have the pupil
-able to start with Primitive Man and give a
-summary of World History to the present time,
-with dates and chief events without prompting,
-questioning, hesitation, or mistake. Does this
-seem too much to expect? It is not as difficult
-as it may sound, if suggestions given in the text
-for connecting the various events into a sequence
-and for passing names and events in a condensed
-review are followed. Hundreds of Calvert
-children each year are successfully required
-to do this very thing.</p>
-
-<p>The attitude, however, usually assumed by
-teachers, that “even if the pupil forgets it all,
-there will be left a valuable impression,” is too
-often an apology for superficial teaching and
-superficial learning. History may be made just
-as much a “mental discipline” as some other
-studies, but only if difficulties of dates and other
-abstractions are squarely met and overcome by
-hard study and learned to be remembered, not
-merely to be forgotten after the recitation. The
-story part the child will easily remember, but it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xviii"></span>
-is the “who and when and where and why” that
-are important, and this part is the serious study.
-Instead of, “A man, once upon a time,” he
-should say, “King John in 1215 at Runnymede
-because&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>This book, therefore, is not a supplementary
-reader but a basal history study. Just enough
-narrative is told to give the skeleton flesh and
-blood and make it living. The idea is not how
-much but how little can be told; to cut down one
-thousand pages to less than half of that number
-without leaving only dry bones.</p>
-
-<p>No matter how the subject is presented it is
-necessary that the child do his part and put his
-own brain to work; and for this purpose he
-<i>should be required to retell each story after he
-has read it</i> and should be repeatedly questioned
-on names and dates as well as stories, to make
-sure he is retaining and assimilating what he
-hears.</p>
-
-<p>I recall how once upon a time a young chap,
-just out of college, taught his first class in history.
-With all the enthusiasm of a full-back who has
-just kicked a goal from field, he talked, he sang;
-he drew maps on the blackboard, on the floor, on
-the field; he drew pictures, he vaulted desks, and
-even stood on his head to illustrate points. His
-pupils attended spellbound, with their eyes wide
-open, their ears wide open, and their mouths<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xix"></span>
-wide open. They missed nothing. They drank
-in his flow of words with thirst unquenched; but,
-like Baron Munchausen, he had failed to look at
-the other end of the drinking horse that had been
-cut in half. At the end of a month his kindly
-principal suggested a test, and he gave it with
-perfect confidence.</p>
-
-<p>There were only three questions:</p>
-
-<p class="pad5">
-(1) Tell all you can about Columbus.<br />
-(2) <span class="gesperrta"> “ “ “ “ “</span> Jamestown.<br />
-(3) <span class="gesperrta"> “ “ “ “ “</span> Plymouth.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p>And here are the three answers of one of the
-most interested pupils:</p>
-
-<p class="pad5">
-(1) He was a <i>grate</i> man.<br />
-(2) <span class="gesperrta">“ “ “ “ “</span><br />
-(3) <span class="gesperrta">“ “ “ “ “</span> <i>to</i>.
-</p>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xx"></span></p>
-
-
-<p class="c">Here is the</p>
-
-<p class="c large">STAIRCASE OF TIME</p>
-
-<p class="narrow">It starts far, far, below the bottom of the
-pages and rises up, <span class="smcap">Up</span>, UP to where we
-are NOW&mdash;each step a hundred years,
-each flight of steps a thousand. It will
-keep on up until it reaches high heaven.
-From where we are NOW let us look
-down the flights below us and listen to
-the Story of what has happened in the
-long years gone by.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxi"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig4.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxiii"></span></p>
-
-
-<p class="c large">TIME TABLE</p>
-
-<p class="c">with</p>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">DATES AND OTHER FOOD<br />
-FOR THOUGHT</p>
-
-<p><i>Don’t devour these dates all at once, or they’ll
-make you sick, and you’ll never want to see one
-again.</i></p>
-
-<p><i>Take them piecemeal, only one or two at a time
-after each story, and be sure to digest them
-thoroughly.</i></p>
-
-<table summary="table">
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdr"><span class="tiny">PAGE</span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Beginning of the Earth</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_3">3</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">First Rain-storm</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_7">7</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Plants</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_7">7</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Mites</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Insects</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Fish</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Frogs</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Snakes</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Birds</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Animals</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Monkeys</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">People</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxiv"></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">4000</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Bronze Age Begins</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_16">16</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">3400</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Menes</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_28">28</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">2900</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Cheops</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_38">38</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">2300</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Chaldean Eclipse</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_46">46</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1900</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Abraham Leaves Ur</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_49">49</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1700</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Israelites go to Egypt</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_51">51</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1300</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Exodus; Iron Age Begins</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_54">54</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1200</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Trojan War</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_64">64</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1100</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Samuel; Saul</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_70">70</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1000</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Homer; Solomon; Hiram</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">900</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Lycurgus</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_79">79</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">776</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
-<td class="tdl">First Olympiad</td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_87">87</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">753</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Founding of Rome</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_89">89</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">700</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Nineveh at Top</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_96">96</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">612</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Fall of Nineveh</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_98">98</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Draco; Solon</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_114">114</a>-115</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">538</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Fall of Babylon</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_108">108</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">509</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">End of Kings at Rome</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_119">119</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">500</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Brahmanism</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_111">111</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Buddhism</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_112">112</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Confucius</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_113">113</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">490</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Marathon</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_127">127</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">480</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Thermopylæ;</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_137">137</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Salamis</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_140">140</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">480</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Golden Age</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_143">143</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">430</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Peloponnesian War</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_151">151</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">336</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> }</td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdr"></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxv"></span>323</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> }</td>
- <td class="tdl">Alexander the Great</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_162">162</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">202</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Zama</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_175">175</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">100</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Birth of Julius Cæsar</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_184">184</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">55</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> }</td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdr"></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">54</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> }</td>
- <td class="tdl">Conquest of Britain</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_186">186</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">44</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Death of Julius Cæsar</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_190">190</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">27</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Augustus and the Empire</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_191">191</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">4</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Birth of Christ</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_197">197</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Nero</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_203">203</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Titus</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_206">206</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">79</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Pompeii destroyed</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_208">208</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">179</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Marcus Aurelius</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_210">210</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">323</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Constantine</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_215">215</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">476</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Downfall of Rome</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_227">227</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">622</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Hegira</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_244">244</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">732</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Tours</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_249">249</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">800</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Charlemagne</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_257">257</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">900</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">King Alfred the Great</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_264">264</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1000</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">First Discovery of America</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_269">269</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1066</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">William the Conqueror</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_286">286</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1100</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Crusades</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_292">292</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1215</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">King John; Magna Charta</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_311">311</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1300</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Marco Polo</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_318">318</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdrt">1338</td>
- <td class="tdlt"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Beginning of One Hundred<br />
- Years’ War; Crécy; Black<br />
- Death; Joan of Arc</td>
- <td class="tdrb"><a href="#Page_327">327</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1440</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Invention of Printing</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_333">333</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1453</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Fall of Constantinople</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_335">335</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxvi"></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdrt">1492</td>
- <td class="tdlt"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Columbus; Discovery of<br />
- America</td>
- <td class="tdrb"><a href="#Page_337">337</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1497</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Vasco da Gama</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_348">348</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1500</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Renaissance</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_359">359</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Reformation</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_365">365</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Charles V</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_367">367</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">King Henry VIII</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_369">369</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Elizabeth</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_372">372</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1588</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Spanish Armada</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_375">375</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1600</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Shakspere</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_380">380</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1640</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Charles I and Oliver Cromwell</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_390">390</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Cardinal Richelieu</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_395">395</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">Louis XIV</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_397">397</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1700</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Peter the Great</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_402">402</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1750</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Frederick the Great</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_407">407</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1776</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">American Revolution</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_412">412</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1789</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">French Revolution</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_420">420</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1800</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Napoleon</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_428">428</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1861</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">Civil War</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_447">447</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1914</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> }</td>
- <td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdr"></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1918</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> }</td>
- <td class="tdl">The Great War</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_460">460</a></td></tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_1"></span></p>
-
-
-<p class="c xxxlarge">
-A CHILD’S HISTORY<br />
-OF THE WORLD</p>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">
-BEGINS HERE
-</p>
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_3"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c1">1</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">How Things Started</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Once</span> upon a time there was a boy&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>Just like me.</p>
-
-<p>He had to stay in bed in the morning until
-seven o’clock until his father and mother were
-ready to get up;</p>
-
-<p>So did I.</p>
-
-<p>As he was always awake long before this time,
-he used to lie there and think about all sorts of
-curious things;</p>
-
-<p>So did I.</p>
-
-<p>One thing he used to wonder was this:</p>
-
-<p>What would the world be like if there were&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>No fathers and mothers,</p>
-
-<p>No uncles and aunts,</p>
-
-<p>No cousins or other children to play with,</p>
-
-<p><i>No people at all, except himself</i> in the whole
-world!</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have wondered the same thing;</p>
-
-<p>So did I.</p>
-
-<p>At last he used to get so lonely, just from
-thinking how dreadful such a world would be,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4"></span>
-that he could stand it no longer and would run
-to his mother’s room and jump into bed by her
-side just to get this terrible thought out of his
-mind;</p>
-
-<p>So did I&mdash;for <i>I was the boy</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Well, there <i>was</i> a time long, long, long ago
-when there were no men or women or children,
-<i>NO PEOPLE</i> of any kind in the whole world.
-Of course there were no houses, for there was no
-one to build them or to live in them, no towns or
-cities&mdash;nothing that people make. There were
-just wild animals&mdash;bears and wolves, birds and
-butterflies, frogs and snakes, turtles and fish.
-Can you think of such a world as that?</p>
-
-<p class="pad6">
-Then,</p>
-
-<p class="pad10">
-long, long, long
-</p>
-
-<p>before that, there was a time when there were
-<i>NO PEOPLE</i> and <i>NO ANIMALS</i> of any
-sort in the whole world; there were just growing
-plants, trees and bushes, grass and flowers. Can
-you think of such a world as that?</p>
-
-<p class="pad6">
-Then,</p>
-
-<p class="pad10">
-long, long, long,<br />
-long, long, long
-</p>
-
-<p>before that, there was a time when there were
-<i>NO PEOPLE, NO ANIMALS, NO
-PLANTS</i>, in the whole world; there was just
-bare rock and water everywhere. Can you think
-of such a world as that?</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_5"></span></p>
-
-<p class="pad6">
-Then,</p>
-
-<p class="pad10">
-long, long, long<br />
-long, long, long&mdash;you might<br />
-<span class="pad4">keep on saying&mdash;</span><br />
-“long, long, long,” all day, and<br />
-<span class="pad4">to-morrow, and all</span><br />
-<span class="pad4">next week, and next</span><br />
-<span class="pad4">month, and next</span><br />
-<span class="pad4">year, and it would</span><br />
-<span class="pad4">not be long enough&mdash;</span></p>
-
-<p>
-before this, there was a time when there was
-<i>NO WORLD AT ALL!</i>
-</p>
-
-<p>There were only the Stars</p>
-
-<p>Nothing else!</p>
-
-<p>Now, real Stars are not things with points
-like those in the corner of a flag or the gold ones
-you put on a Christmas tree. The real stars in
-the sky have no points. They are huge burning
-coals of fire&mdash;coals of fire. Each star, however,
-is so huge that there is nothing in the world now
-anywhere nearly as big. One little bit, one little
-scrap of a star is bigger than our whole world&mdash;than
-our whole world.</p>
-
-<p>One of these stars is our Sun&mdash;yes, our Sun.
-The other stars would look the same as the Sun
-if we could get as close to them. But at that
-time, so long, long ago, our Sun was not just a
-big, round, white, hot ball as we see it in the sky
-to-day. It was then more like the fireworks you<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6"></span>
-may have seen on the Fourth of July. It was
-whirling and sputtering and throwing off sparks.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig5.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">The sun sputtering and throwing off sparks.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>One of these sparks which the Sun threw far
-off got cool just as a spark from the crackling log
-in the fireplace gets cool, and this cooled-off spark
-was&mdash;</p>
-
-<p class="pad6">
-What do you suppose?<br />
-See if you can guess&mdash;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7"></span><br />
-It was our World!&mdash;yes, the World<br />
-on which we now live.
-</p>
-
-<p>At first, however, our World or Earth was
-nothing but a ball of rock. This ball of rock was
-wrapped around with steam, like a heavy fog.</p>
-
-<p>Then the steam turned to rain and it rained
-on the World,</p>
-
-<p class="c gesperrta">
-a a a<br />
-n n n<br />
-d d d<br />
-<br />
-i i i<br />
-t t t<br />
-<br />
-r r r<br />
-a a a<br />
-i i i<br />
-n n n<br />
-e e e<br />
-d d d
-</p>
-
-<p>until it had filled up the hollows and made enormously
-big puddles. These puddles were the
-oceans. The dry places were bare <i>rock</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after this, came the first living things&mdash;<span class="more"><i>tiny plants</i></span>
-that you could only have seen under
-a microscope. At first they grew only in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8"></span>
-water, then along the water’s edge, then out on
-the rock.</p>
-
-<p>Then dirt or soil, as people call it, formed all
-over the rock and made the rock into land, and
-the plants grew larger and spread farther over
-the land.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after this, came the first <span class="more"><i>tiny animals</i></span> in the
-water. They were wee <i>Mites</i> like drops of
-jelly.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after this, came things like <i>Insects</i>,
-some that live <i>in</i> the water, some <i>on</i> the water,
-some <i>on</i> the land, and some <i>in</i> the air.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after this, came <i>Fish</i>, that live only in
-the water.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after this, came <i>Frogs</i>, that live in the
-water and on the land, too.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after this, came <i>Snakes</i> and huge <i>lizards</i>
-bigger than alligators, more like dragons; and
-they grew so big that at last they could not move
-and died because they could not get enough food
-to eat.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after this, came <i>Birds</i> that lay eggs and
-those <i>Animals</i> like foxes and elephants and cows
-that nurse their babies when they are born.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after this, came <i>Monkeys</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Then, last of all, came&mdash;what do you
-suppose? Yes&mdash;<i>People</i>&mdash;men, women, and
-children.</p>
-
-<p>Here are the steps; see if you can take them:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_9"></span></p>
-
-<table cellpadding="1" cellspacing="0" summary="table">
-
-<tr><td class="tds">Star,</td>
- <td class="tds">Sun;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Sun,</td>
- <td class="tds">Spark;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Spark,</td>
- <td class="tds">World;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">World,</td>
- <td class="tds">Steam;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Steam,</td>
- <td class="tds">Rain;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Rain,</td>
- <td class="tds">Oceans.</td></tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<table cellpadding="1" cellspacing="0" summary="table">
-
-<tr><td class="tds">Oceans,</td>
- <td class="tds">Plants;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Plants,</td>
- <td class="tds">Mites;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Mites,</td>
- <td class="tds">Insects;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Insects,</td>
- <td class="tds">Fish;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Fish,</td>
- <td class="tds">Frogs;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Frogs,</td>
- <td class="tds">Snakes.</td></tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<table cellpadding="1" cellspacing="0" summary="table">
-
-<tr><td class="tds">Snakes,</td>
- <td class="tds">Birds;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Birds,</td>
- <td class="tds">Animals;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Animals,</td>
- <td class="tds">Monkeys;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">Monkeys,</td>
- <td class="tds">People;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds"></td>
- <td class="tds">And here we are!</td>
- <td class="tds"></td></tr>
-
-
-
-
-</table>
-
-<p>What do you suppose will be next?</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_10"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c2">2</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Umfa-Umfa and Itchy-Scratchy</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">How</span> do you suppose I know about all these
-things that took place so long ago?</p>
-
-<p>I don’t.</p>
-
-<p>I’m only guessing about them.</p>
-
-<p>But there are different kinds of guesses. If
-I hold out my two closed hands and ask you to
-guess which one has the penny in it, that is one
-kind of a guess. Your guess might be right or
-it might be wrong. It would be just luck.</p>
-
-<p>But there is another kind of a guess. When
-there is snow on the ground and I see tracks of a
-boot in the snow, I guess that a man must have
-passed by, for boots don’t usually walk without
-some one in them. That kind of a guess is not
-just luck but common sense.</p>
-
-<p>And so we can guess about a great many things
-that have taken place long ago, even though there
-was no one there at the time to see them or tell
-about them.</p>
-
-<p>Men have dug down deep under the ground in
-different parts of the world and have found there&mdash;what
-do you suppose?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_11"></span></p>
-
-<p>I don’t believe you would ever guess.</p>
-
-<p>They have found the heads of arrows and
-spears and hatchets.</p>
-
-<p>The peculiar thing about these arrows and
-spears and hatchets is that they are not made
-of iron or steel, as you might expect, but of stone.</p>
-
-<p>Now, we are sure that only men could have
-made and used such things, for birds and fish
-or other animals do not use hatchets or spears.
-We are also sure that these men must have lived
-long, long years ago before iron and steel were
-known, because it must have taken long, long
-years for these things to have become covered up
-so deep by dust and dirt. We have also found
-the bones of the people themselves, who must
-have died thousands upon thousands of years
-ago, long before any one began to write down
-history. So we know that the people who were
-living on the earth then were working and playing,
-eating and fighting&mdash;doing many of the same
-things we are to-day&mdash;especially the fighting.</p>
-
-<p>This time in the pre-history of the world, when
-people used such things made of stone, is therefore
-called <span class="smcap">The Stone Age</span>.</p>
-
-<p>These First Stone Age People we call <i>Primitive</i>,
-which simply means First as a Primer means
-First Reader. Primitive People were wild animals.
-Unlike other wild animals, however, they
-walked on their hind legs.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_12"></span></p>
-
-<p>These First People had hair growing, not just
-on their heads, but all over their bodies, like some
-shaggy dogs. They had no houses of any sort in
-which to live. They simply lay down on the
-ground when night came. Later, when the earth
-became cold, they found caves in the rocks or in
-the hillsides where they could get away from
-the cold and storms and other wild animals. So
-men, women, and children of this time were
-called <i>Cave People</i>.</p>
-
-<p>They spent their days hunting some animals
-and running and hiding from others. They
-caught animals by trapping them in a pit covered
-over with bushes, or they killed them with a club
-or a rock if they had a chance, or with stone-headed
-arrows or hatchets. They even drew
-pictures of these animals on the walls of their
-caves, scratching the picture with a pointed stone,
-and some of these pictures we can still see to-day.</p>
-
-<p>They lived on berries and nuts and grass-seeds.
-They robbed the nests of birds for the eggs, which
-they ate raw, for they had no fire to cook with.
-They were blood-thirsty; they liked to drink the
-warm blood of animals they killed, as you would
-a glass of milk.</p>
-
-<p>They talked to each other by some sort of
-grunts&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Umfa, umfa, glug, glug.”</p>
-
-<p>They made clothes of skins of animals they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13"></span>
-killed, for there was no such thing as cloth. And
-yet, although they were real men, they lived so
-much like wild animals that we call such people
-<i>savages</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Primitive Men were not pleasant people. They
-were fearful and cruel creatures, who beat and
-killed and robbed whenever they had a chance.</p>
-
-<p>A cave man got his wife by stealing a girl
-away from her own cave home, knocking her
-senseless, and dragging her off by her hair, if
-necessary. The men were fighters but not brave.
-They would kill other animals and other men if
-the others were weaker or if they could sneak
-upon them and catch them off their guard,
-but if others were stronger they would run and
-hide.</p>
-
-<p>Their only rule of life was hurt and kill what
-you can, and run from what you can’t. This is
-what we call the first law of nature&mdash;every man
-for himself. They knew if they didn’t kill they
-would be killed, for there were no laws nor police
-to protect them.</p>
-
-<p>These primitive cave people are our ancestors,
-and we get from them many of their wild ways.
-In spite of our religion and manners and education,
-there are many men still living who act in
-the same way when they get a chance.</p>
-
-<p>Jails are made for such men.</p>
-
-<p>Suppose you had been a boy or a girl in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14"></span>
-Stone Age, with a name like Itchy-Scratchy. I
-wonder how you would have liked the life.</p>
-
-<p>When you woke up in the morning, you would
-not have bathed or even washed your hands and
-face or brushed your teeth or combed your hair.</p>
-
-<p>You ate with your fingers, for there were no
-knives or forks or spoons or cups or saucers, only
-one bowl&mdash;which your mother had made out of
-mud and dried in the sun to hold water to drink&mdash;no
-dishes to wash and put away, no chairs, no
-tables, no table manners.</p>
-
-<p>There were no books, no paper, no pencils.</p>
-
-<p>There was no Saturday or Sunday, January or
-July. Except that one day was warm and sunny
-or another cold and rainy, they were all alike.
-There was no school to go to. Every day was a
-holiday.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing to do all day long but make
-mud pies or pick berries or play tag with your
-brothers and sisters.</p>
-
-<p>I wonder how you would like that kind of life!</p>
-
-<p>“Fine!” do you think?&mdash;“a great life&mdash;just
-like camping out?”</p>
-
-<p>But I have only told you part of the story.</p>
-
-<p>The cave would have been cold and damp and
-dark, with only the bare ground or a pile of
-leaves for a bed. There would probably have
-been bats and big spiders sharing the cave with
-you.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_15"></span></p>
-
-<p>You might have had on the skin of some
-animal your father had killed but as this only
-covered part of your body and as there was no
-fire, you would have felt cold in winter, and when
-it got very cold you might have frozen to death.</p>
-
-<p>For breakfast you might have had some dried
-berries or grass-seed or a piece of raw meat, for
-dinner the same thing, for supper still the same
-thing.</p>
-
-<p>You would never have had any bread or milk
-or griddle-cakes with syrup, or oatmeal with
-sugar on it, or apple pie or ice-cream.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing to do all day long but
-watch out for wild animals&mdash;bears and tigers;
-for there was no door with lock and key, and a
-tiger, if he found you out, could go wherever you
-went and “get you” even in your cave.</p>
-
-<p>And then some day your father, who had left
-the cave in the morning to go hunting, would not
-return, and you would know he had been torn to
-pieces by some wild beast, and you would wonder
-how long before your turn would come next.</p>
-
-<p>Do you think you would like to have lived
-then?</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_16"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c3">3</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Fire! Fire!! Fire!!!</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> first things are usually the most interesting&mdash;the
-first baby, the first tooth, the first
-step, the first word, the first spanking. This
-book will be chiefly the story of first things;
-those that came second or third or fourth or fifth
-you can read about and study later.</p>
-
-<p>Primitive People did not at first know what
-fire was. They had no matches nor any way of
-making a light or a fire. They had no light at
-night. They had no fire to warm themselves by.
-They had no fire with which to cook their food.
-Somewhere and sometime, we do not know exactly
-when or how, they found out how to make
-and use fire.</p>
-
-<p>If you rub your hands together rapidly, they
-become warm. Try it. If you rub them together
-still more rapidly, they become hot. If
-you rub two sticks together rapidly, they become
-warm. If you rub two sticks together very, very,
-very rapidly, they become hot and at last, if you
-keep it up long enough and fast enough, are set
-on fire. The Indians and boy scouts do this and
-make a fire by twisting one stick against another.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_17"></span></p>
-
-<p>This was one of the first inventions, and this
-invention was as remarkable for them at that time
-as the invention of electric light in our own times.</p>
-
-<p>People of the Stone Age had hair and beards
-that were never cut, because they had nothing to
-cut them with, even had they wanted them short,
-which they probably didn’t.</p>
-
-<p>Their finger-nails grew like claws until they
-broke off.</p>
-
-<p>They had no clothes made of cloth, for they
-had no cloth and nothing with which to cut and
-sew cloth if they had.</p>
-
-<p>They had no saws to cut boards, no hammer
-or nails to fasten them together to make houses
-or furniture.</p>
-
-<p>They had no forks nor spoons; no pots nor
-pans; no buckets nor shovels; no needles nor
-pins.</p>
-
-<p>The People of the Stone Age had never seen
-or heard of such a thing as iron or steel or tin
-or brass or anything made of these metals. For
-thousands and thousands of years Primitive
-People got along without any of the things that
-are made of metal.</p>
-
-<p>Then one day a Stone Age Man found out
-something by accident; a “discovery” we call it.</p>
-
-<p>He was making a fire; and a fire, which is to
-us such a common, every-day thing, was still to
-him very wonderful. Round his fire he placed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18"></span>
-some rock to make a sort of camp-fire stove.
-Now, it happened that this particular rock was
-not ordinary rock but what we now call “ore,”
-for it had copper in it. The heat of the fire melted
-some of the copper out of the rock, and it ran
-out on the ground.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig6.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">A cave man discovering copper.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>What were those
-bright, shining
-drops?</p>
-
-<p>He examined
-them.</p>
-
-<p>How pretty
-they were!</p>
-
-<p>He heated some
-more of the same
-rock and got some
-more copper.</p>
-
-<p>Thus was the
-first metal discovered.</p>
-
-<p>At first people used the copper for beads and
-ornaments, it was so bright and shiny. But they
-soon found out that copper could be pounded
-into sharp blades and points, which were much
-better than the stone knives and arrow-heads
-they had used before.</p>
-
-<p>But notice that it was not iron they discovered
-first, it was copper.</p>
-
-<p>We think people next discovered tin in somewhat
-the same way. Then, after that, they found<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19"></span>
-out that tin when mixed with copper made a still
-harder and better metal than either alone. This
-metal, made of tin and copper together, we now
-call bronze; and for two or three thousand years
-people made their tools and weapons out of
-bronze. And so we call the time when men used
-bronze tools, and bronze weapons for hunting
-and fighting, the Bronze Age.</p>
-
-<p>At last some man discovered iron, and he soon
-saw that iron was better for most useful things
-than either copper or bronze. The Iron Age
-started with the discovery of iron, and we are still
-in the Iron Age.</p>
-
-<p>As people who lived in the Bronze and Iron
-Ages were able, after the discovery of metal, to
-do many things they could not possibly have
-done before with only stone, and as they lived
-much more as we do now, we call people of the
-Bronze and Iron Ages “civilized.”</p>
-
-<p>You may have heard in your mythology or
-fairy tales of a Golden Age also, but by this is
-meant something quite different. The Golden
-Age means a time when everything was beautiful
-and lovely and everybody wise and good. There
-have been times in the World’s History which
-have been called the Golden Age for this reason.</p>
-
-<p>But I am afraid there never has been really a
-golden age&mdash;only in fairy-tales.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_20"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c4">4</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">From an Airplane</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">People</span> of the Bronze and Iron Ages thought
-the world was flat, and they knew only a little
-bit of the world, the small part where they lived;
-and they thought that if you went too far the
-world came to an end where you would</p>
-
-<p class="pad6">
-TU<br />
-<span class="pad6a">M</span><br />
-<span class="pad6b">B</span><br />
-<span class="pad6c">L</span><br />
-<span class="pad6d">E</span><br />
-<br />
-
-<span class="pad6e">O</span><br />
-<span class="pad6f">F</span><br />
-<span class="pad6f">F</span><br />
-</p>
-
-
-<p>The far-away land which nobody knew they
-called the Ultima Thule. This is a nice name to
-say&mdash;Ultima Thule, Ultima Thule&mdash;far-away
-Ultima Thule.</p>
-
-<p>If we should go up in an airplane and look
-down on the world at the place where the first
-civilized people once lived, we should see two<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21"></span>
-rivers, a sea and a gulf, and from so high up in
-the air they would look something like this:</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig7.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Map of Mesopotamia and Mediterranean.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Now, you probably have never even heard
-of these rivers and seas, and yet they have been
-known longer than any other places in the world.
-One of these lines is the Tigris River, and the
-other is the Euphrates. They run along getting
-closer and closer together until at last they join
-each other and flow into what is called the Persian
-Gulf.</p>
-
-<p>You might make these two rivers in the
-ground of your yard or garden or draw them on
-the floor if your mother will let you. Just for
-fun you might name your drinking-cup “Tigris”
-and your glass “Euphrates.” Then you might
-call your mouth, into which they both empty,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22"></span>
-the “Persian Gulf,” for you will hear a great
-many new names by and by, and as grown-up
-people give names to their houses and boats, to
-their horses and dogs, why shouldn’t you give
-names to things that belong to you? For instance,
-you might call your chair, your bed, your
-table, your comb and brush, even your hat and
-shoes, after these strange names.</p>
-
-<p>Then, if we flew in our airplane to the west, we
-should see a country called Egypt, another river,
-the Nile, and a sea now named the Mediterranean.
-Mediterranean simply means “between
-the land,” for this sea is surrounded by land. It
-is, indeed, almost like a big lake. It is supposed
-that long, long ago in the Stone Age, there was
-no water at all where this sea now is, only a dry
-valley, and that people once lived there.</p>
-
-<p>Along the Nile in Egypt and the Tigris and
-Euphrates were the only civilized nations living
-in the Bronze Age. The rest of the World
-people knew nothing about. There may have
-been Cave Men living in other parts of the
-World, but it is only of the people in these two
-places that we have any written history until
-after the Iron Age began.</p>
-
-<p>All of the people who lived in the country of
-the Tigris and Euphrates were white. We don’t
-know how nor when nor where colored people
-first lived, though it is interesting to guess. There<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23"></span>
-were, we think, just three different white families
-and from these three families all the white
-people in the world are descended. Yes, your
-family came from here, ’way, ’way, ’way, ’way,
-back. So you will want to know the names of
-these three families and which one was your own.
-They were:</p>
-
-<p class="c">
-The Indo-Europeans, often called Aryans,<br />
-The Semites, and<br />
-The Hamites.
-</p>
-
-<p>Most of us belong to the Aryan family, some
-are Semites, but very few in this part of the
-World are Hamites.</p>
-
-<p>If your name is Henry or Charles or William,
-you are probably an Aryan.</p>
-
-<p>If it is Moses or Solomon, you are probably
-a Semite.</p>
-
-<p>If it is Shufu or Rameses, you are probably
-a Hamite.</p>
-
-<p>The Aryans came from higher up on the map
-than the other two families, we think. They
-were the first people to tame wild horses and to
-use them for riding and drawing carts. They
-also had tamed cows which they used for milk,
-and sheep for their wool.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_24"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c5">5</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Real History Begins or ’Way ’Way Back<br />
-to the Time of the Gipsies</p>
-
-<p>
-<span class="smcap">You</span> can remember the big things that have
-happened in your own lifetime.</p>
-
-<p>And you have of course heard your father
-tell about things that happened in his own life&mdash;how
-he fought the Germans in the Great War,
-perhaps.</p>
-
-<p>And if your grandfather is still living, he can
-tell you still other stories of things that took
-place when he was a boy before even your father
-was born.</p>
-
-<p>
-Perhaps your<br />
-<span class="pad4">great,</span><br />
-<span class="pad11">great,</span><br />
-<span class="pad12">grandfather</span></p>
-
-<p>
-may have been living when Washington was
-President, and <i>his</i></p>
-<p>
-<span class="pad4">great,</span><br />
-<span class="pad11">great,</span><br />
-<span class="pad12">great,</span><br />
-<span class="pad13">great,</span><br />
-<span class="pad14">grandfather</span>
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_25"></span></p>
-<p>may have been living when there were only wild
-Indians in this country.</p>
-
-<p>Although these ancestors, as they are called,
-are dead long since, the story of what did happen
-in all their lifetimes ’way, ’way back has been
-written down in books and this story is history&mdash;“his
-story” one boy named it.</p>
-
-<p>Christ was living in the Year 1&mdash;no, not the
-first year of the world, of course.</p>
-
-<p>Do you know how many years ago that was?</p>
-
-<p>You can tell if you know what year this is
-now.</p>
-
-<p>If Christ were living to-day, how old would
-He be?</p>
-
-<p>Nineteen hundred and more years may seem
-a long time. But perhaps you have seen or heard
-of a man or a woman who was a hundred years
-old. Have you?</p>
-
-<p>Well, in nineteen hundred years only nineteen
-men each a hundred years old might have lived
-one after the other&mdash;nineteen men one after the
-other since the time of Christ&mdash;and that doesn’t
-seem so long after all!</p>
-
-<p>Everything that happened <i>before</i> Christ was
-born is called <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, which you can guess are the
-initials of Before Christ, so <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> stands for Before
-Christ. So much is easy.</p>
-
-<p>Everything that has happened in the world
-<i>since</i> the time of Christ is called <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> This is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26"></span>
-not so easy for though <span class="allsmcap">A.</span> might stand for After,
-we know <span class="allsmcap">D.</span> is not the initial of Christ. As
-a matter of fact, <span class="allsmcap">A. D.</span> are the initials of two Latin
-words, “Anno Domini.” Anno means “in the
-year,” Domini “of the Lord”; so that Anno
-Domini is “in the year, of the Lord,” which in
-ordinary, every-day language means of course
-“since the time of Christ.”</p>
-
-<p>The things I have told you that I have had to
-guess at we call Before-History, or <i>Pre-History</i>&mdash;which
-means the same thing. But the things
-that have happened in the lifetime of people,
-who have written them down&mdash;the stories I don’t
-have to guess at&mdash;we call <i>History</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The first history that we feel fairly sure is
-really true begins with the Hamite family. The
-Hamites, you remember, were one of the three
-families of the white race I have already told you
-about who lived by the Tigris and Euphrates.
-We think that they moved away from the Tigris
-and Euphrates Rivers and went down to Egypt
-long before history began.</p>
-
-<p>Of course they didn’t pack all their furniture
-on a big wagon and move to Egypt,
-as you might move from the house where
-you now live to another. They lived in
-tents then and not in houses at all, and they only
-moved along a day’s journey at a time as campers
-or Gipsies might do. In fact, Gipsy is short<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27"></span>
-for Egyptian. When they got tired of one place
-or had eaten up everything there was near-by,
-they rolled up their tents, packed them on camels,
-and moved a little farther along to a new place.
-And so camping here for a while, then gradually
-moving farther along to the next good place and
-camping there, they at last got as far off as the
-land we now call Egypt. When they finally
-reached Egypt they found it such a fine country
-in which to live that there they stayed for good
-and were called Egyptians.</p>
-
-<p>Why do you suppose they found Egypt such
-a fine country in which to live? It was chiefly
-on account of a habit of the river Nile&mdash;a bad
-habit you might at first think it&mdash;a habit of flooding
-the country once every year.</p>
-
-<p>It rains so hard in the spring that the water
-fills up the river Nile, overflows its banks, and
-spreads far out over the land, but not very deep.
-It is as if you had left a water-spigot turned on
-and the water running, or had begun to water
-your garden with a hose, and then you had gone
-off and forgotten it.</p>
-
-<p>But the people know when the overflow is
-coming and they are glad for it to come, so they
-put banks around some of it so that it is stored
-up for watering the land during the rest of the
-year when there is no rain. After most of the
-water has dried up, it has left a layer of rich,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28"></span>
-dark, moist earth over the whole country. In
-this earth it is easy to grow dates, wheat, and
-other things which are good for food.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig8.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Menes, 3400 B. C.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>If it were not for this yearly overflow of the
-Nile, the country of Egypt would be a sandy
-desert in which no plant or living thing would
-grow&mdash;for all plants as well as animals must have
-water and will die without it. Egypt, without
-water, would be like the great Sahara Desert,
-which is not far away. It is the Nile, therefore,
-that makes the land so rich and Egypt such an
-easy and cheap country to live in, for food grows
-with little or no labor and costs almost nothing.
-Besides this, the climate is so warm that people
-need little clothing and do not have to buy coal
-or make fires to heat their houses. So it was to
-this country that the Hamites at last came, finally
-settled down, and were thereafter called
-Egyptians.</p>
-
-<p>The first Egyptian king
-whose name we know was
-Menes, but we do not know
-much about him. We believe
-he built some kind of waterworks
-so that the people might
-better use the water of the
-Nile, and he probably lived
-about 3400 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> He may have lived either earlier
-or later, but as this is an easy date to remember,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29"></span>
-we shall take it for a starting-point. You might
-remember it by supposing it is a telephone number
-of a person you wanted to call up:</p>
-
-<p>Menes, First Egyptian king . . 3400 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig9.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_30"></span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c6">6</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Puzzle-Writers</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">People</span> of the Stone Age had learned how to
-talk to each other, but they could not write, for
-there was no such thing as an alphabet or written
-words, and so they could not send notes or
-messages to one another or write stories. The
-Egyptians were the first people to think of a way
-to write what they wanted to say.</p>
-
-<p>The Egyptians did not write with letters like
-ours, however, but with signs that looked like
-little pictures, a lion, a spear, a bird, a whip.
-This picture-writing was called hieroglyphics&mdash;see
-if you can say “Hi-e-ro-glyph-ics.” Perhaps
-you have seen, in the puzzle sections of a newspaper,
-stories written in pictures for you to guess
-the meaning. Well, hieroglyphics were something
-like that.</p>
-
-<p>Here is the name of an Egyptian queen, whom
-you will hear about later&mdash;written in hieroglyphics;
-her name you would never guess from
-this funny writing. It is “Cleopatra.”</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig10.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Cleopatra in hieroglyphic<br />
-writing.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>A king’s or queen’s name always had a line
-drawn around it, like the one you see around the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31"></span>
-above name in order to mark it more prominently
-and give it more importance. It was something
-like the square or circle your
-mother may put around her
-initials or monogram on her
-letter-paper.</p>
-
-<p>But there was no paper in
-those days and so the Egyptians
-wrote on the leaves of a
-plant called papyrus that
-grew in the water. It is from
-this name “papyrus” that we
-get the name “paper.” Can
-you see that “paper” and “papyrus”
-look and sound something
-alike? The Egyptians’
-books were written by hand, of course, but they
-had no pencils nor pens nor ink to write with.
-For a pen they used a reed, split at the end, and
-for ink a mixture of water and soot.</p>
-
-<p>Their books were not made of separate pages
-like our books, but from a long sheet of papyrus-leaves
-pasted together. This was rolled up to
-form what was called a scroll, something like a
-roll of wall-paper, and was read as it was unrolled.</p>
-
-<p>Stories of their kings and battles and great
-events in their history they used to write on the
-walls of their buildings and monuments. This<span class="pagenum" id="Page_32"></span>
-writing they carved into the stone, so that it
-would last much longer than that on the papyrus-leaves.</p>
-
-<p>All the old Egyptians, who wrote in hieroglyphics
-and knew how to read this writing, had
-died long since, and for a great many years no
-one knew what such writing meant. But a little
-over a hundred years ago a man found out by
-accident how to read and understand hieroglyphics
-once again. This is the way he happened
-to do so.</p>
-
-<p>The Nile separates into different streams before
-it flows into the Mediterranean Sea. These
-separate streams are called mouths and one
-of these mouths has been given the name “Rosetta.”</p>
-
-<p>One day a man was digging nearby this
-Rosetta Mouth when he dug up a stone something
-like a tombstone with several kinds of writing
-on it. The top writing was in pictures which
-we now call hieroglyphics, and no one understood
-what it meant. Below this was written what
-was supposed to be the same story in the Greek
-language, and a great many people do understand
-Greek. All one had to do, therefore, to
-find out the meaning of the hieroglyphics, was to
-compare the two writings. It was like reading
-secret writing when we know what the letters
-stand for. You may have tried to solve a puzzle<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33"></span>
-in the back of your magazine, and this was just
-such an interesting puzzle, only there was no
-one to tell the answer in the next number.</p>
-
-<p>The puzzle was not so easy as it sounds, however,
-for it took a man almost twenty years to
-solve it. That is a long time for any one to spend
-in trying to solve a puzzle, isn’t it? But after
-this “key” to the puzzle was found, men were
-able to read all of the hieroglyphics in Egypt and
-so to find out what happened in that country long
-before Christ was born.</p>
-
-<p>This stone is called the Rosetta Stone, from
-the Rosetta Mouth of the Nile where it was
-found. It is now in the great British Museum
-in London and is very famous, because from it
-we were able to learn so much history which we
-otherwise would not have known.</p>
-
-<p>Egypt was ruled over by a king who was called
-a Pharaoh. When he died his son became the
-Pharaoh and so on. All the other people were
-divided into classes, and the children in each
-class usually became just what their fathers had
-been. It was very unusual for an Egyptian to
-start at the bottom and work up to the top, as
-a poor boy in this country may do, though once
-in a great while this happened even in Egypt, as
-we shall see by and by.</p>
-
-<p>The highest class of people were called priests.
-They were not like priests or ministers of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34"></span>
-church nowadays, however, for there was no
-church at that time. The priests made the religion
-and rules, which every one had to obey as
-everybody does the laws of our land.</p>
-
-<p>But the priests were not only priests; they
-were doctors and lawyers and engineers, as well.
-They were the best-educated class, and they
-were the only people who knew how to read and
-write, for it was very difficult, as you might suppose,
-to learn how to read and write hieroglyphics.</p>
-
-<p>The next highest class to the priests were
-the soldiers, and below these were the lower
-classes&mdash;farmers, shepherds, shopkeepers, merchants,
-mechanics, and last of all the swineherds.</p>
-
-<p>The Egyptians did not worship one God as
-we do. They believed in hundreds of gods and
-goddesses, and they had a special god for every
-sort of thing, who ruled over and had charge of
-that thing&mdash;a god of the farm, a god of the home,
-and so on. Some of their gods were good and
-some were bad, but the Egyptians prayed to
-them all.</p>
-
-<p>Osiris was the chief god, and Isis was his wife.
-Osiris was the god of farming and judge of the
-dead. Their son Horus had the head of a hawk.</p>
-
-<p>Many of their gods had bodies of men with
-heads of animals. Animals they thought sacred.
-The dog and the cat were sacred animals. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35"></span>
-ibis, which was a bird like a stork, was another.
-Then there was the beetle, which was called a
-scarab. If any one killed a sacred animal he was
-put to death, for the Egyptians thought it much
-worse to kill a sacred and holy creature than to
-kill even a human being.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig11.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_36"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c7">7</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Tomb-Builders</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig12.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Tu-tank-amen’s tomb showing foods preserved.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Egyptians believed that when they died,
-their souls stayed near by their bodies. So
-when a person died they put in the tomb with
-him all sorts of things that he had used in daily
-life&mdash;things to eat and drink, furniture and
-dishes, toys and games. They thought the soul
-would return to its own body at the day of judgment.
-They wanted their bodies to be kept
-from decaying until judgment day, in order that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37"></span>
-the soul might then have a body to return to.
-So they pickled the bodies of the dead by soaking
-them in a kind of melted tar and wrapping
-them round and round and round with a cloth
-like a bandage. A dead body pickled in this way
-is called a mummy, and after thousands of years
-the mummies of the Egyptian kings may still be
-seen. Most of them are not, however, in the
-tombs where they were at first placed. They
-have been moved away and put in museums, and
-we may see them there now. Although they
-are yellow and dried up, they still look like</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent0">“Little old men</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">All skin and bones.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>At first only kings or important people of the
-highest classes were made mummies, but after
-a while all the classes, except perhaps the lowest,
-were treated in the same way. Sacred animals
-from beetles to cows were also made into
-mummies.</p>
-
-<p>When an Egyptian died his friends heaped
-up a few stones over his body just to cover it up
-decently and keep it from being stolen or destroyed
-by those wild animals that fed on dead
-bodies. But a king or a rich man wanted a
-bigger pile of stones over his body than just
-ordinary people had. So to make sure that his
-pile would be big enough, a king built it for
-himself before he died. Each king tried to make<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38"></span>
-his pile larger than any one else’s until at last
-the pile of stones became so big it was a hill of
-rocks and called a pyramid. The pyramids
-therefore were tombs of the kings who built
-them while they were alive to be monuments to
-themselves when they were dead. In fact a king
-was much more interested in building a home
-for his dead body than he was in a home for
-his live body. So, instead of palaces, kings built
-pyramids. There are many of these pyramids
-built along the bank of the Nile, and most of
-them were built, we think, just after 3000 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>When a building is being put up nowadays,
-men use derricks and cranes and engines to haul
-and raise heavy stones and beams. But the
-Egyptians had no such machinery, and though
-they used huge stones to build the pyramids,
-they had to drag these stones for many miles
-and raise them into place simply by pushing and
-pulling them. The three biggest of all the pyramids
-are near the city of Cairo. The largest one
-of them, which is called the Great Pyramid,
-was built by a king named Cheops. To remember
-when he lived, simply think of this as another
-telephone number:</p>
-
-<p class="c">
-Cheops ..............2900 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span><br />
-</p>
-
-<p>It is said that one hundred thousand men worked
-twenty years to build his pyramid. It is one of
-the largest buildings in the world, and some of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39"></span>
-the blocks of stone themselves are as big as a
-small house. I have been to the top of it, and
-it is like climbing a steep mountain with rocky
-sides. I have also been far inside to the cave-like
-room in the center where Cheop’s mummy
-was placed. There is nothing in there now,
-however, except bats that fly about in the darkness,
-for the mummy has disappeared&mdash;been
-stolen, perhaps.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig13.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Cheops building his pyramid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Near the Pyramid of Cheops is the Sphinx.
-It is a huge statue of a lion with a man’s head.
-It is as big as a church, and though it is so big, it
-has been carved out of one single rock. The
-rock, however, was already there and so did not
-have to be carried. The Sphinx is a statue of
-the god of the morning, and the head is that of
-one of the Egyptian Pharaohs who built a pyramid
-near that of Cheops. The desert sand has<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40"></span>
-covered the paws and most of the body. Though
-the sand has been dug away from time to time,
-the wind quickly covers the body with sand
-again.</p>
-
-<p>The Egyptians carved other large statues of
-men and women out of rock. These figures are
-usually many times bigger than life-size, and sit
-or stand stiffly erect with both feet flat on the
-ground and hands close to the body in the position
-some children take when they “sit” for their
-photograph.</p>
-
-<p>They built huge houses for their gods. These
-were called temples and took the place of our
-churches. These temples had gigantic&mdash;that’s
-the way it is spelled, though it means “giant-ic”&mdash;columns
-and pillars. Ordinary people standing
-beside them look like dwarfs. Here is one of
-these temples, and you can see how different it
-is from our churches:</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig14.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Egyptian temple.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_41"></span></p>
-
-<p>They decorated their temples and pyramids,
-and the cases in which the mummies were put,
-with drawings and paintings. The pictures
-they made, however, looked something like those
-a young child might draw. For example, when
-they wanted to make a picture of water, they
-simply made a zigzag line to represent waves;
-when they tried to draw a row of men back of
-a row in front, they put those in the back <i>on top</i>
-of those in front. To show that a man was a
-king, they made him several times larger than
-the other men in the picture. When they
-painted a picture they used any color they
-thought was pretty, usually blue or yellow or
-brown. Whether the person or thing was really
-that color or not made no difference.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_42"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c8">8</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Rich Land Where There Was No<br />
-Money</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">You</span> have read in fairy-tales of a land where
-cakes and candy and sugar-plums grow on trees,
-where everything you want to eat or to play with
-can be had just by picking it. Well, long, long
-ago people used to think there had been really
-such a country, and where do you suppose they
-said it was? Somewhere near the Tigris and
-Euphrates Rivers&mdash;those rivers with the strange
-names I asked you to learn&mdash;and they called
-this spot the Garden of Eden. We do not know
-exactly where it was, for there is no such place
-now quite as wonderful as the Garden of Eden
-was supposed to be.</p>
-
-<p>Egypt was a land of one river, the Nile. The
-land of the Two Rivers had several names.</p>
-
-<p>Let us suppose we are flying over the country
-in an airplane and looking down at the land between
-these two rivers. It is called Mesopotamia,
-which is two Greek words simply meaning
-“Between the Rivers.”</p>
-
-<p>See the land over there by the upper Tigris.
-It is called <i>Assyria</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_43"></span></p>
-
-<p>See the land near where the rivers join each
-other. That is called <i>Babylonia</i>.</p>
-
-<p>See the land near where they empty. That
-is called <i>Chaldea</i>.</p>
-
-<p>And see over there is <i>Mount Ararat</i>, where it
-is supposed Noah’s Ark rested after the flood.</p>
-
-<p>Here are a lot of new names. A young
-friend of mine had a train of toy cars. He had
-noticed that the Pullman cars on which he had
-ridden had names, and so he gave his toy cars
-names also. He called them:</p>
-
-<p class="pad6c">
-<span class="smcap">Assyria</span> <span class="smcap pad6">Mesopotamia</span><br />
-<span class="smcap pad6c">Babylonia</span> <span class="smcap pad14">Ararat</span><br />
-<span class="smcap pad6e">Chaldea</span> <span class="smcap pad6">Euphrates</span>
-</p>
-
-<p>Babylonia was a very rich country, for the
-two rivers brought down and dropped great
-quantities of earth just as the Nile did in
-Egypt, and this made very rich soil. Wheat,
-from which we make bread, is called the staff of
-life. It is the most valuable of all foods which
-grow. It is supposed that wheat first grew in
-Babylonia. Dates in that part of the world are
-almost as important a food as wheat. Dates,
-too, grow there very plentifully. Now, you may
-think dates are something to be eaten almost like
-candy but in Babylonia dates took the place of
-oatmeal. In the rivers there were quantities of
-good fish, and as fishing was just fun, you see
-that the people who lived in Babylonia&mdash;the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44"></span>
-Babylonians, as they were called&mdash;had plenty of
-good food without having to do much work for
-it. No one had any money in those days; people
-had cows and sheep and goats, and a man was
-rich who had much of these “goods.” But if a
-man wanted to buy or sell, he had to buy or sell
-by trading something he had for something he
-wanted.</p>
-
-<p>Somewhere in Babylonia the people built a
-great tower called the <i>Tower of Babel</i>, which
-you have probably heard about. It was more
-like a mountain than a tower. They built other
-towers, too. Some say the Tower of Babel and
-towers like it were built so that the people
-might have a high place to which they could
-climb in case of another flood. But others give
-a different reason. They say that the people
-who built these towers came to Babylonia from
-farther north where there were mountains. In
-this northern land they had always placed their
-altars on the top of a mountain, to be close to
-heaven. So when they moved to a flat country
-like Mesopotamia and Babylonia, where there
-were no mountains, they <i>built</i> mountains in
-order to have a high place for the altar on top.
-To reach the top of these mountains or towers,
-they made, instead of a staircase on the inside, a
-slanting roadway that wound around the outside
-in somewhat the way a road winds around
-a mountain.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_45"></span></p>
-
-<p>There was hardly any stone either in or near
-Babylonia as there was in Egypt, and so the
-Babylonians built their buildings of bricks, which
-were made of mud formed into blocks and dried
-in the sun. In the course of time, bricks of this
-sort crumble and turn back into dust again just
-as mud pies that you might make would do.
-This is the reason why all that is left of the
-Tower of Babel and the other buildings that
-were put up so long ago are now simply hills of
-clay into which the brick has turned.</p>
-
-<p>The Egyptians wrote on papyrus or carved
-their history in stone, but the Babylonians had
-neither papyrus nor stone. All they had were
-bricks. So they wrote on bricks before they
-were dried, while they were still soft clay. This
-writing was made by punching marks into the
-clay with the end of a stick. It was called
-<i>cuneiform</i>, which means wedge-shaped, for it
-looked like little groups of wedge-shaped marks,
-like chicken-tracks, made in the mud. I have
-seen boys’ writing that looked more like cuneiform
-than it did like English.</p>
-
-<p>The Babylonians as they watched their flocks
-by night and by day watched also the sun and
-the moon and the stars moving across the sky.
-So they came to know a great deal about these
-heavenly bodies.</p>
-
-<p>Did you ever see the moon in the daytime?</p>
-
-<p>Oh, yes, you can.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_46"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig15.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Babylonians watching eclipse.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Well, every once in a great while the moon as
-it moves across the sky gets in front of the sun
-and shuts out its light&mdash;just as, if you should put
-a white plate in front of an electric light, the
-electric light would be darkened. It may be ten
-o’clock in the morning and broad daylight when
-suddenly the sun is covered up by the moon as by
-a white plate and it becomes night and the stars<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47"></span>
-shine out and chickens, thinking it is night, go
-to roost. But in a few moments the moon passes
-by and the sun shines out once again. This is
-called an <i>eclipse</i> of the sun.</p>
-
-<p>Now you probably have never seen an eclipse
-of the sun, but some day you may. At that time,
-and even to-day when ignorant people see an
-eclipse of the sun, they think that something
-dreadful is going to happen&mdash;the end of the
-world, perhaps, just because they have never
-seen such a strange sight before and do not know
-that it is a thing that happens regularly and that
-no harm comes from it.</p>
-
-<p>Well, nearly twenty-three hundred years
-before Christ, 2300 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>, the Babylonians told
-beforehand just when there was going to be an
-eclipse of the sun. They had watched the moon
-moving across the sky and they had figured out
-how long it would be before it would catch up
-with the sun and cross directly over it. So you
-see how much the old Babylonians knew about
-such things. Men who study the stars and other
-heavenly bodies are called astronomers, and
-the Babylonians, therefore, were famous astronomers.</p>
-
-<p>The Egyptians worshiped animals; but it
-was quite natural that the Babylonians should
-worship these wonderful heavenly bodies, the
-sun, moon, and stars, and they did.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48"></span></p>
-
-<p>The first king of Babylonia whom we know
-much about&mdash;and that much is very little&mdash;was
-Sargon I, who may have lived about the same
-time that the pyramids were built in Egypt.</p>
-
-<p>About 2100 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> Babylonia had a king known
-far and wide for the laws he made. His name
-was Hammurabi, and we still have the laws he
-made though we no longer obey them; for
-they were carved into a stone in cuneiform,
-and we have the stone. Sargon and Hammurabi
-are strange names like no one’s name
-you ever heard before, yet they are real names
-of real kings who ruled over real people.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig16.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_49"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c9">9</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Wandering Jews</p>
-
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">You</span> are” spells “Ur.” It is one of the
-shortest names I know. It is the name of a
-little place in that part of Babylonia called
-Chaldea. In this place&mdash;about nineteen hundred
-years <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>&mdash;there lived a man named Abraham.
-Abraham had a very large family and though
-he had no money he was rich. He had large
-herds of sheep and goats, and these were the
-chief riches in those days. Now, Abraham believed
-in one God, as we do, while his neighbors,
-the Babylonians, worshiped idols and the
-heavenly bodies, such as the sun, moon, and
-stars, as I have just said. Abraham did not like
-his neighbors for this reason; and his neighbors
-didn’t like him, either, for they thought his
-ideas were peculiar or even crazy. So, about
-nineteen hundred years before Christ, Abraham
-took his large family, his flocks, and his herds
-and moved to a land called Canaan, far away
-on the edge of the Mediterranean Sea.</p>
-
-<p>Abraham lived to be a very old man, and he
-had a large family. One of his grandsons named<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50"></span>
-Jacob, who was also known by the name of
-Israel, had a son Joseph. You probably remember
-the Bible story of Jacob’s favorite son
-Joseph with the coat of many colors. Joseph’s
-brothers were jealous of him, as boys and even
-dogs are apt to be jealous of any one who is
-liked better than they are. So they put Joseph
-into a well and then sold him as a slave to
-some Egyptians who were passing by. Then
-they told their father Jacob that Joseph had
-been killed by wild animals. The Egyptians
-took Joseph to far-off Egypt&mdash;far away from
-Canaan.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig17.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Abraham leaving Ur. 1900 B.C.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>But although Joseph was a slave in Egypt,
-and although, as I told you, it was very difficult
-for any one to work his way up out of his class
-to a higher class, he was so bright that at last
-he became one of the rulers in Egypt.</p>
-
-<p>Now, at that time when he was ruler there
-came a famine in Canaan and there was no food.
-In Egypt, however, there was plenty of food
-stored up. So Joseph’s wicked brothers went<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51"></span>
-down to Egypt to beg the rulers for bread. They
-probably thought by that time their brother was
-dead. They did not know that he had become
-such a great man and that he was now the ruler
-of whom they were begging food. You can
-imagine how surprised they were and how
-ashamed they must have felt when they found
-out that the great ruler was their own brother,
-whom they had planned to kill and then had sold
-as a slave.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig18.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Rameses’ mummy.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Joseph might have let his brothers starve to
-death or put them in prison, or sent them back
-to Canaan without anything, if he had wanted
-to revenge himself on them. But instead of doing
-any of these things, he gave them not only
-all the food they wanted and more to take back
-home, but made them rich presents besides.
-Then he told them to go back and get the rest
-of his family and return with them to Egypt,
-and he promised to give them a piece of land
-called Goshen where there would be no famines
-and they might live happily. So they did as they
-were told, and Israel and his sons and all their
-families came down and settled in Goshen about
-1700 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> They were called Israelites, which
-means of course the children of Israel, and they
-believed they were God’s chosen people. These
-are the people we now call the Jews.</p>
-
-<p>After Joseph, who was of course an Israelite<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52"></span>
-himself, died, the kings or Pharaohs of Egypt
-did not like these foreign people who belonged
-to the Semite family, and treated them very
-badly, as other peoples have always treated the
-Jews badly ever since. Though the Jews and
-their sons and sons’
-sons lived in
-Egypt for about
-four hundred
-years, they were
-always hated by
-the Egyptians.</p>
-
-<p>Now about four
-hundred years
-from the time the
-Jews first came into
-Egypt&mdash;400 from
-1700 is 1300 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>&mdash;there
-was a ruler
-of Egypt called
-Rameses the Great.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_53"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig19.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Rameses the Great.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Rameses so hated the Jews that finally he gave
-orders to have every Jewish boy baby killed. In
-this way he thought to get rid of these people.
-One little Jewish boy named Moses, however,
-was saved, and when he grew up he became the
-greatest leader of his people. Moses wanted to
-get the Jews out of this unfriendly country
-where the people worshiped false gods. And
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54"></span>so at last he led all his people out of Egypt across
-the Red Sea. This was called the Exodus, and
-it took place about 1300 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>After the Jews had left Egypt they first
-stopped at the foot of a mountain called Mount
-Sinai, while Moses went up to the top where he
-could be by himself and learn what God wanted
-him and the Jews to do. Moses spent forty days
-praying on top of the mountain. When he came
-down from the mountain-top, he brought with
-him the Ten Commandments, the same Ten
-Commandments you may have learned in Sunday-school.
-But Moses had been gone so long
-that when he came back again to his people he
-found them worshiping a golden calf as the
-Egyptians had done. They had lived in Egypt
-until they had come to think it was all right to
-worship idols.</p>
-
-<p>Moses was very angry. It was high time, he
-thought, that they should get rid of the bad influence
-of their old Egyptian neighbors. And
-at last he succeeded in making them worship
-God again and gave them the Ten Commandments
-for their rule of life. So Moses is called
-a lawgiver and the founder of the Jewish religion.
-Then Moses died, and the Jews wandered
-from place to place for a great many
-years before they finally settled in Canaan.</p>
-
-<p>The Jews had no kings. They were ruled by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55"></span>
-men called judges, but the judges lived very
-simply, just like every one else and not like
-kings in palaces with servants and fine robes and
-rich jewels. But the Jews wanted a real king as
-their enemies had and other nations who were
-their neighbors. Strange they wanted a king
-which so many countries have tried to get rid
-of&mdash;we should think they would have preferred
-a President as we have.</p>
-
-<p>So at last a judge who was named Samuel
-said they should have a king, and Saul was
-chosen. Then Samuel poured olive-oil over
-Saul’s head. This may seem a queer thing to do,
-but it took the place of putting a crown on his
-head and was a sign that he was to be king.
-Samuel, therefore, was the last one of their
-judges, and Saul was their first king.</p>
-
-<p>All other nations at that time believed as the
-Egyptians and Chaldeans did, in fairy-tale gods
-or idols. But the Jews alone believed in one
-God. They had a Holy Book which had been
-written by their prophets. This book is the Old
-Testament part of the Christian Bible.</p>
-
-<p>So this is the story of the Wandering Jews
-who gave us the Old Testament and the Ten
-Commandments, and here is the way they wandered:</p>
-
-<p>
-From Ur to Canaan&mdash;1900 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-<p>
-From Canaan to Egypt&mdash;1700 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-<p>
-From Egypt back to Canaan&mdash;1300 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56"></span></span>
-</p>
-
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c10">10</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Fairy-Tale Gods</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">There</span> was once a man named Hellen&mdash;strange-sounding
-name for a man, isn’t it? He
-was not a Semite and not a Hamite. He was
-an Aryan. He had a great many children and
-children’s children, and they called themselves
-Hellenes. They lived in a little scrap of a
-country that juts out into the Mediterranean
-Sea, and they called their land Hellas. I once
-upset a bottle of ink on my desk, and the ink ran
-out into a wriggly spot that looked exactly as
-Hellas does on the map. Though Hellas is
-hardly any bigger than one of our States, its
-history is more famous than that of any other
-country of its size in the world. We call Hellas
-“Greece” and the people who lived there
-“Greeks.”</p>
-
-<p>About the same time the Jews were leaving
-Egypt, about the time when people were beginning
-to use iron instead of bronze, that is,
-about 1300 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, we first begin to hear of Hellas
-and the Hellenes, of Greece and the Greeks.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks believed in many gods, not in one
-God as we do and as the Jews did, and their
-gods were more like people in fairy-tales than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57"></span>
-like divine beings. Many beautiful statues have
-been made of their different gods, and poems
-and stories have been written about them.</p>
-
-<p>There were twelve&mdash;just a dozen&mdash;chief gods.
-They were supposed to live on Mount Olympus,
-which was the highest mountain in Greece.
-These gods were not always good, but often
-quarreled and cheated and did even worse
-things. The gods lived on a kind of food that
-was much more delicious than what we eat. It
-was called nectar and ambrosia, and the Greeks
-thought it made those who ate it immortal; that
-is, so that they would never die.</p>
-
-<p>Let me introduce you to the family of the
-gods. I know you will be pleased to meet them.
-Most of them have two names.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><i>Jupiter or Zeus</i> is the father of the gods and the
-the king who rules over all human beings.
-He sits on a throne and holds a zigzag
-flash of lightning called a thunderbolt in
-his hand. An eagle, the king of birds, is
-usually by his side.</p>
-
-<p><i>Juno or Hera</i> is his wife and therefore queen.
-She carries a scepter, and her pet bird,
-the peacock, is often with her.</p>
-
-<p><i>Neptune or Poseidon</i> is one of the brothers of
-Jupiter. He rules over the sea. He
-rides in a chariot drawn by sea-horses
-and carries in his hand a trident, which
-looks like a pitchfork with three points.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58"></span>
-He can make a storm at sea or quiet the
-waves simply by striking them with his
-trident.</p>
-
-<p><i>Vulcan or Hephæstus</i> is the god of fire. He
-is a lame blacksmith and works at a
-forge. His forge is said to be in the
-cave of a mountain, and as smoke and
-fire come forth from some mountains they
-are called volcanoes after the god Vulcan
-inside.</p>
-
-<p><i>Apollo</i> is the most beautiful of all the gods. He
-is the god of the sun and of song and
-music. Every morning&mdash;so the Greeks
-said&mdash;he drives his sun-chariot across the
-sky from the east to the west, and this
-makes the sun-lighted day.</p>
-
-<p><i>Diana or Artemis</i> is the twin sister of Apollo.
-She is the goddess of the moon and of
-hunting.</p>
-
-<p><i>Mars or Ares</i> is the terrible god of war, who is
-only happy when a war is going on&mdash;so
-that he is happy most of the time.</p>
-
-<p><i>Mercury or Hermes</i> is the messenger of the
-gods. He has wings on his cap and on
-his sandals, and he carries in his hand a
-wonderful winged stick or wand, which,
-if placed between two people who are
-quarreling, will immediately make them
-friends. One day Mercury saw two<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59"></span>
-snakes fighting and he put his wand between
-them, whereupon they twined
-around it as if in a loving hug, and ever
-since the snakes have remained entwined
-around it. This wand is called a <i>caduceus</i>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig20.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Birth of Minerva or Athene.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><i>Minerva or Athene</i> is the goddess of wisdom.
-She was born in a very strange way. One
-day Jupiter had a terrible headache&mdash;what
-we call a “splitting” headache. It
-got worse and worse, until at last he
-could stand it no longer, but he took a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60"></span>
-very strange way to cure it. He called
-Vulcan, the lame blacksmith, and told
-him to hit him on the head with his hammer.
-Though Vulcan must have thought
-this a funny request, of course he had to
-obey the father god. So he struck
-Jupiter a terrible blow on the head,
-whereupon there sprang forth Minerva
-in all her armor, and the headache, of
-which she had been the cause, had gone.
-So she was born from his brain, that is
-why she is the goddess of wisdom. Minerva’s
-Greek name is Athene, and she
-founded a great city in Greece and named
-it after herself, Athens. She is supposed
-to look out for this city as a
-mother does for her child.</p>
-
-<p><i>Venus or Aphrodite</i> is the goddess of love and
-beauty. She is the most beautiful of the
-goddesses as Apollo is the most beautiful
-of the gods. She is said to have been
-born from the sea-foam. Cupid, her son,
-is a little chubby boy with a quiver of
-arrows on his back. He goes about
-shooting his invisible arrows into the
-hearts of human beings, but instead of
-dying when they are hit they at once fall
-in love with some one. That is why we
-put hearts with arrows through them on
-valentines.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_61"></span></p>
-
-<p><i>Vesta</i> is the goddess of the home and fireside,
-who looks out for the family.</p>
-
-<p><i>Ceres or Demeter</i> is the goddess of the farmer.
-These are the twelve gods of the Olympian
-family.</p>
-
-<p><i>Pluto</i> is a brother of Jupiter. He rules the
-world underground and lives down there.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>There are many other less important gods
-and goddesses as well as some gods that are half
-human, such as the three Fates and three Graces
-and the nine Muses.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the planets in the sky which look
-like stars are still called by the names of these
-Greek gods. Jupiter is the name of the largest
-planet. Mars is the name of one that is reddish&mdash;the
-color of blood. Venus is the name of
-one that is very beautiful. There is also a Mercury
-and a Neptune.</p>
-
-<p>It is hard for us to understand how the
-Greeks could have prayed to such gods as these,
-but they did. Their prayers, however, were not
-like ours. Instead of kneeling and closing their
-eyes as we do, they stood up and stretched their
-arms straight out before them. They did not
-pray to be forgiven for their sins and to be
-made better. They prayed for victory over
-their enemies or to be protected from harm.</p>
-
-<p>When they prayed they often made the god
-an offering of animals, fruit, honey, or wine in
-order to please him so that he would grant their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62"></span>
-prayer. The wine they poured out on the
-ground, thinking the god would like to have
-them do this. The animals they killed and then
-burned by building a fire under them on an altar.
-This was called a sacrifice. Their idea seemed to
-be that even though the gods could not eat the
-meat of the animals nor drink the wine themselves,
-they liked to have something <i>given up</i>
-for them. And so even to-day we say a person
-makes a sacrifice when he <i>gives up</i> something
-for another.</p>
-
-<p>When the Greeks were sacrificing they usually
-looked for some sign from the god to see whether
-he was pleased or not with the sacrifice and
-whether he would answer their prayer and do
-what they asked him or not. A flock of birds
-flying overhead, a flash of lightning, or any unusual
-happening they thought was a sign which
-meant something. Such signs were called
-“omens.” Some omens were good and showed
-that the god would do what he was asked, and
-some omens were bad and showed he would not.
-Omens were very much like some of the signs
-that people believe in even to-day when they
-say it is a good sign or good luck if you see the
-new moon over the right shoulder or a bad sign
-or bad luck if you spill the salt.</p>
-
-<p>Not so very far from Athens is a mountain
-called Mount Parnassus. On the side of Mount<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63"></span>
-Parnassus was a town called Delphi. In the
-town of Delphi there was a crack in the ground,
-from which gas came forth, somewhat as it does
-from cracks in a volcano. This gas was supposed
-to be the breath of the god Apollo, and
-there was a woman priest called a priestess who
-sat on a three-legged stool or tripod over the
-crack so as to breathe the gas. She would become
-delirious, as some people do when they are
-sick with fever and we say they are “out of their
-heads,” and when people asked her questions
-she would mutter strange things and a priest
-would tell what she meant. This place was
-called the Delphic Oracle, and people would go
-long distances to ask the oracle questions, for
-they thought Apollo was answering them.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks went to the oracle whenever they
-wanted to know what to do or what was going
-to happen, and they firmly believed in what the
-oracle told them. Usually, however, the answers
-of the oracle were like a riddle, so that
-they could be understood in more than one way.
-For instance, a king who was about to go to
-war with another king asked the oracle who
-would win. The oracle replied, “A great kingdom
-will fall.” What do you suppose the
-oracle meant? Such an answer, which you can
-understand in two or three ways, is still called
-“oracular.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_64"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c11">11</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Fairy-Tale War</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> history of countries usually begins&mdash;and
-also ends&mdash;with war. The first great happening
-in the history of Greece was a war. It was
-called the Trojan War and was supposed to
-have taken place about twelve hundred years
-before Christ, or not long after the beginning of
-the Iron Age. But we are not only not sure of
-the date; we are not even sure that there ever
-was such a war, for a great deal of it, we know,
-is simply fairy-tale. This is the way the tale
-goes.</p>
-
-<p>Once there was a wedding feast of the gods
-and goddesses on Mount Olympus, when suddenly
-a goddess who had not been invited threw
-a golden apple on the table. On the apple was
-written these words:</p>
-
-<p class="c medium">
-To the Fairest.
-</p>
-
-<p>The goddess who had thrown the apple was
-the goddess of quarreling; and true to her name
-she <i>did</i> start a quarrel, for each of the goddesses,
-like vain human beings, thought she was the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65"></span>
-fairest and should have the apple. At last they
-called in a shepherd boy named Paris to decide
-which was the fairest.</p>
-
-<p>Each goddess offered Paris a present if he
-would choose her. Juno, the queen of the gods,
-offered to make him a king; Minerva, the goddess
-of wisdom, offered to make him wise; but
-Venus, the goddess of beauty, offered to give
-him the most beautiful girl in the world for his
-wife.</p>
-
-<p>Now, Paris was not really a shepherd boy but
-the son of Priam, the king of Troy, which was
-a city on the sea-shore opposite Greece. Paris
-when a baby had been left on a mountain to die,
-but had been found by a shepherd and brought
-up by him as his own child.</p>
-
-<p>Paris didn’t care about being wise; he didn’t
-care about being king; what he did want was to
-have the most beautiful girl in the world for his
-wife, and so he gave the apple to Venus.</p>
-
-<p>Now the most beautiful girl in the world was
-named Helen, and she was already married to
-Menelaus, the king of Sparta. But in spite of
-that fact Venus told Paris to go to Sparta in
-Greece, where he would find Helen, and then
-run away with her. So Paris went to Sparta to
-visit King Menelaus and was royally entertained
-by him. And then Paris, although he had been
-treated so kindly and been trusted, one night<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66"></span>
-stole Helen away and carried her off across the
-sea to Troy. Though this was in the Iron Age,
-it was the way a Cave Man of the Stone Age
-might have acted.</p>
-
-<p>Menelaus and the Greeks were naturally very
-angry and immediately prepared for war and
-sailed off for Troy to get Helen back. Now, in
-ancient times all cities had walls built around
-them to protect them from the enemy. As there
-were no cannons nor guns nor deadly weapons
-such as are used in war nowadays, it was very
-hard to get into a walled city or capture it.
-Troy was protected in this way with walls; and
-though the Greeks tried for ten years to capture
-it, at the end of the ten years Troy was still unconquered.</p>
-
-<p>So at last the Greeks decided to try a trick to
-get into the city. They built a huge horse of
-wood, and inside this wooden horse they put
-soldiers. They placed the horse in front of the
-city walls and then sailed away as if at last they
-were giving up the war. The Trojans were told
-by a spy that the horse was a gift of the gods
-and that they ought to take it into the city. A
-Trojan priest named La-oc-o-on, however, told
-his people not to have anything to do with the
-horse, for he suspected a trick. But people seldom
-take advice when told <i>not</i> to do what they
-want to do.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_67"></span></p>
-
-<p>Just then some huge snakes came out of the
-sea and attacked Laocoon and his two sons and,
-twining round them, strangled them to death.
-The Trojans thought this was a sign from the
-gods, or an omen as they would have said, that
-they should not believe Laocoon; so they determined
-to take the horse into the city against his
-advice. The horse was so big, however, that it
-would not go through the gates, and in order to
-get it inside of the walls they had to tear down
-part of the wall itself. When night fell, the
-Greek soldiers came out of the horse and opened
-the gates of the city. The other Greeks, who
-had been waiting just out of sight, returned and
-entered through the gates and the hole the Trojans
-had made in the wall. Troy was easily conquered
-then, and the city was burned to the
-ground, and Helen’s husband carried her back
-to Greece. For reason of this horse trick, we
-still have a saying, “Beware of the Greeks bearing
-gifts,” which is as much as to say, “Look
-out for an enemy who makes you a present.”</p>
-
-<p>The story of the Trojan War was told in two
-long poems. Some people think they are the
-finest poems that were ever written. One of
-these poems is called the “Iliad,” from the name
-of the city of Troy, which was also known as
-Ilium. The “Iliad” describes the Trojan War
-itself. The other poem is called the “Odyssey”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68"></span>
-and describes the adventures of one of the Greek
-heroes on his way home after the war was over.
-This Greek hero’s name was Odysseus, which
-gives the name Odyssey to the book, but he was
-also called Ulysses. These poems, the “Iliad”
-and the “Odyssey,” were composed by a blind
-Greek poet named Homer, who is supposed to
-have lived about two hundred years after the war;
-that is about 1000 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>Homer was a bard; that is, a singing poet who
-went about from place to place and sang his
-poems to the people. Usually a bard played on
-the lyre as he sang, and the people gave him
-something to eat or a place to sleep to pay him
-for his songs. Nowadays, instead of a Homer
-singing the “Iliad” and “Odyssey,” we have the
-organ-grinder and street piano playing their
-tunes in front of our houses.</p>
-
-<p>Homer never wrote down his poems, for he
-was blind; but the people were very fond of
-hearing his songs, and they learned them by
-heart, and mothers taught them to their children
-after Homer had died. At last, many years
-later, another man wrote the poems down in
-Greek, and you may some day read them in
-Greek, if you study that language, or at least
-in an English translation.</p>
-
-<p>Although the Greeks thought so much of
-Homer, he could hardly make a living, and he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69"></span>
-almost had to beg his daily bread. After his
-death however, the people of nine different cities
-each proudly said that Homer was born in their
-city. And so some one has made this rime:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent0">Nine cities claimed blind Homer dead,</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">Through which, alive, he’d begged his bread.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Some people now doubt that there ever was
-a poet named Homer. Others think that instead
-of only one man there must have been several
-men, perhaps nine, who composed these poems,
-and this might explain how he could be born in
-nine different cities.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig21.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_70"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c12">12</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Kings of the Jews</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">While</span> the blind beggar Homer was singing
-his wonderful songs through the streets of
-Greece, a great king of the Jews was singing
-other wonderful songs in Canaan. This king
-was named David, and he wasn’t born a king.
-He was only a shepherd boy in King Saul’s
-army. This is the way he happened to become
-king.</p>
-
-<p>At first, as you remember, the Jews had no
-kings; but they had asked for kings, and at last
-they were given one by the name of Saul.</p>
-
-<p>David had killed the giant Goliath. We all
-love this Bible story because we are always glad
-when the skilful little chap beats the great, big,
-bragging bully.</p>
-
-<p>Well, King Saul had a daughter, and she fell
-in love with this brave and athletic young David
-the Giant-Killer, and at last they were married.</p>
-
-<p>So after Saul died David became king, and
-he was the greatest king the Jews ever had.
-Although Saul had been king he had lived in a
-tent, not in a palace, and he didn’t even have a
-capital city.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_71"></span></p>
-
-<p>So David conquered a city in Canaan called
-Jerusalem and made this city the capital of the
-Jews.</p>
-
-<p>But David was not only a brave warrior and
-a great king; he wrote beautiful songs as well.</p>
-
-<p>The blind beggar Homer sang of his fairy-tale
-gods. The great King David sang of his
-one God.</p>
-
-<p>These songs are the Psalms, which you hear
-read and sung in church.</p>
-
-<p>Nowadays even a popular song is popular for
-only a few months, but the songs which David
-wrote almost three thousand years ago are still
-popular to-day! The Twenty-third Psalm,
-which starts, “The Lord is my shepherd,” is one
-of the most beautiful and a good one to learn
-by heart. David likens himself to a sheep and
-his Lord to a good shepherd who tenderly looks
-out for the comfort and safety of his sheep.</p>
-
-<p>David’s son was named Solomon, and when
-David died Solomon became king.</p>
-
-<p>If a good fairy had asked you what you would
-rather have than anything in the world, I wonder
-what you would have chosen. When
-Solomon became king, God is said to have appeared
-to him in a dream and asked him what
-he would rather have than anything else in the
-world. Instead of saying he wanted to be made
-rich or powerful, Solomon asked to be made wise,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72"></span>
-and God said He would make him the wisest
-man that ever lived. Here is a story that shows
-how wise he was.</p>
-
-<p>Once upon a time two women came to Solomon
-with a baby, and each woman said the baby was
-her own child. Solomon called for a sword and
-said, “Cut the baby in two, and give each a half.”
-One of the women cried out to give the baby to
-the other rather than do this, and Solomon then
-knew who was the real mother and ordered the
-baby to be given to her.</p>
-
-<p>Solomon built a magnificent temple made of
-cedar-wood from the famous forest of Lebanon,
-and of marble and gold and studded with jewels.
-Then he built himself a wonderful palace, which
-was so gorgeous and splendid that people came
-from all over the world to see it. The Bible tells
-us just how large this temple and palace were,
-not in feet but in cubits. A cubit was the distance
-from a man’s elbow to the end of his middle finger,
-which is about one foot and a half.</p>
-
-<p>The queen of Sheba, among others, came a
-long distance across Arabia to hear the wise sayings
-of Solomon and see his palace and the temple
-he had built.</p>
-
-<p>Although the palace and temple were considered
-extraordinarily magnificent at that time,
-you must remember that this was a thousand
-years before Christ.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_73"></span></p>
-
-<p>Solomon’s temple and palace have disappeared
-long since, and there is left of them neither stick
-nor stone. But his wise sayings are preserved in
-every language and read by every people in every
-part of the world. There are thousands of buildings
-now in the world that would make his palace,
-if still standing, look like a child’s toy-house.
-But no one has ever been able to say any better
-the things he said. Do you think you could?
-Suppose you try. Here are some of them. They
-are called proverbs.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquota">
-
-<p>A soft answer turneth away wrath; but grievous words
-stir up anger.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-What’s that mean?
-</p>
-
-<div class="blockquota">
-
-<p>A good name is rather to be chosen than great riches
-and loving favor rather than silver and gold.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-What’s that mean?
-</p>
-
-<div class="blockquota">
-
-<p>Let another man praise thee and not thine own mouth.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-What’s that mean?
-</p>
-
-<p>Solomon was the last great king the Jews ever
-had. After he died the Jewish nation gradually
-broke up and went to pieces, and the great Jewish
-people are to-day without a king, without a capital,
-and without a country of their own, but are
-found in every other country of the world.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_74"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c13">13</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The People Who Made Our A B C’s</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Long</span> before people knew how to write, there
-lived a carpenter named Cadmus. One day he
-was at work on a house when he wanted a tool
-that he had left at home. Picking up a chip of
-wood, he wrote something on it and, handing it
-to his slave, told him to go to his home and give
-the chip to his wife, saying that it would tell her
-what he wanted. The slave, wondering, did as
-he was told. Cadmus’s wife looked at the chip,
-and without a word handed the tool to the amazed
-slave, who thought the chip in some mysterious
-way had spoken the message. When he returned
-to Cadmus with the tool, he begged for the remarkable
-chip, and when it was given him, hung
-it around his neck for a charm.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig22.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Cadmus’ slave and the chip.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>This is the story the Greeks told of the man
-they say invented the alphabet. We believe,
-however, that Cadmus was a mythical person, for
-the Greeks liked to make up such stories, and
-we think no <i>one</i> man made the alphabet. But
-Cadmus was a Phenician and we do know that
-the Phenician people invented the alphabet.
-You probably call it your A B C’s, but the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75"></span>
-Greeks had much harder names for the letters.
-They called <i>A</i> “alpha,” <i>B</i> “beta,” and so on.
-So the Greek boy spoke of learning his “alpha
-beta,” and that is why we call it the “alphabet.”</p>
-
-<p>You may never have
-heard of Phenicia or
-the Phenician people.
-Yet, if there had been
-no such country as
-Phenicia, you might
-now be learning at
-school to read and write
-in hieroglyphics or in
-cuneiform.</p>
-
-<p>Up to this time, you
-know, people had very
-clumsy ways of writing.
-The Egyptians had to draw pictures, and
-the Babylonians made writing like chicken-tracks.
-The alphabet that the Phenicians invented had
-twenty-two letters, and from it we get the alphabet
-we use to-day.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, we do not use just the same alphabet
-now that the Phenicians did, but some of the letters
-are almost, if not quite, like those we now have
-after three thousand years. For instance the</p>
-
-<table cellpadding="0" cellspacing="2" summary="table">
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">Phenician A</td>
- <td class="tdc">was</td>
- <td class="tdc">written</td>
- <td class="tdl">on its side</td>
- <td class="tdr">&mdash;&#67840;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">E</td>
- <td class="tdc">"</td>
- <td class="tdc">"</td>
- <td class="tdl">backward</td>
- <td class="tdr">&mdash;Ǝ</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">Z</td>
- <td class="tdc">"</td>
- <td class="tdc">"</td>
- <td class="tdl">just the same</td>
- <td class="tdr">Z</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">O</td>
- <td class="tdc">"</td>
- <td class="tdc">"</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="gesperrta"> " " " </span></td>
- <td class="tdr">O</td></tr>
-
-
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_76"></span></p>
-
-<p>The Phenicians lived next door to the Jews;
-in fact they belonged to the same family&mdash;the
-Semites. Their country was just north of the
-kingdom of the Jews; that is, above it on the
-map and lying along the shore of the Mediterranean
-Sea.</p>
-
-<p>The Phenicians had a great king named Hiram
-who lived at the same time as Solomon. In fact,
-Hiram was a friend of Solomon and sent him
-some of his best workmen to help build a temple
-at Jerusalem. And yet Hiram himself and
-the Phenicians did not believe in the Jewish
-God.</p>
-
-<p>The Phenicians worshiped idols, terrible monsters
-named Baal and Moloch, which they called
-gods of the sun. They also believed in a goddess
-of the moon named Astarte and made sacrifices
-of live children to her idol, Fe-Fi-Fo-Fum;
-this is a real story and not a fairy-tale.
-Just suppose you had been a child then!</p>
-
-<p>The Jews, as we have learned, were very religious,
-but their neighbors, the Phenicians,
-though Semites and therefore relatives, were
-business people and thought of nothing but
-money, money, money&mdash;all the time. And they
-were not particular how they earned it, whether
-honestly or not. Nowadays, dealers know that
-they must be honest if they are to be very successful,
-but the Phenicians were usually tricky in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77"></span>
-their trading with people. They always drove
-a good bargain and sometimes even cheated when
-they had a chance.</p>
-
-<p>The Phenicians made many things to sell, and
-then they went far and near to sell them.</p>
-
-<p>They knew how to make beautiful cloth and
-glassware and objects in gold and silver and
-ivory.</p>
-
-<p>They knew the secret of making a wonderful
-purple dye from the body of a little shell-fish
-that lived in the water near the city of Tyre.
-This dye was known as Tyrian purple from the
-name of that city, and it was so beautiful that
-kings’ robes were colored with it.</p>
-
-<p>Tyre and Sidon were the two chief cities of
-Phenicia, and once upon a time they were two
-of the busiest cities in the world.</p>
-
-<p>In order to find people to sell to, the Phenicians
-traveled in boats all over the Mediterranean
-Sea and even went outside this sea into the Great
-Ocean. This opening is now called the Strait
-of Gibraltar but was then known as the Pillars
-of Hercules. They went as far as the British
-Isles. Other people in those days had not dared
-to go so far in boats; they thought they would
-come to the edge of the ocean and tumble off.
-But the Phenicians had no such fear, and so they
-were the greatest sailors as well as the greatest
-traders of their times. Their ships were built<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78"></span>
-from the cedar-trees that grew on the slopes of
-their hills, which were called Lebanon.</p>
-
-<p>Wherever the Phenicians found good harbors
-for their boats, they started little towns where
-they traded with the natives, who at that time
-were almost savage. With ignorant savages they
-found they could drive a good bargain. For a
-few glass beads or a piece of purple dyed cloth
-worth very little they could get in return gold
-and silver and other things worth a great deal.
-On the African coast, one of these towns they
-started was called Carthage. Of Carthage we
-shall hear more by and by, for it grew to be so
-wealthy and important that&mdash;but wait until I
-come to that story.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig23.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_79"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c14">14</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Hard as Nails</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Our</span> story goes back again to Greece, the land
-of Homer and the fairy-tale gods and to Sparta,
-where Helen once lived.</p>
-
-<p>About nine hundred years before Christ was
-born, there lived in Sparta a man named
-Lycurgus. That is a hard name, and when you
-hear about this man you may think he was hard,
-too. Lycurgus wanted his city to be the greatest
-in the world.</p>
-
-<p>But first he had to find out what it was that
-made a city and a people great.</p>
-
-<p>So he started off and traveled for years and
-years visiting all the chief countries of the world
-to see if he could learn what it was that made
-them great. And this is what he learned.</p>
-
-<p>Wherever the people thought chiefly of fun
-and pleasure, of amusing themselves and having
-a good time&mdash;he found they were not much good,
-not much account&mdash;<i>not</i> great.</p>
-
-<p>Wherever the people thought chiefly of hard
-work and did what they ought, whether it was
-pleasant or not, he found they were usually good
-for something&mdash;some account&mdash;great.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80"></span></p>
-
-<p>So Lycurgus came back to his home Sparta
-and set to work to make a set of rules which he
-thought would make his people greater than all
-other people in the world. These rules were
-called a Code of Laws, and I think you’ll agree
-they were very hard, and they made the Spartans
-hard, too&mdash;as “hard as nails.” We shall see
-whether they made the Spartans really great,
-also.</p>
-
-<p>To begin with, babies, as soon as they were
-born, were examined to see that they were strong
-and perfect. Whenever one was found that did
-not seem to be so, he was put out on the mountain-side
-and left to die. Lycurgus wanted no
-weaklings in Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>When boys were seven years old, they were
-taken from their mothers and put in a school,
-which was more like a soldiers’ camp than a
-school, and they never lived anywhere else until
-they were sixty years old.</p>
-
-<p>In this school they were not taught the things
-you are, but only the things that trained them
-to be good soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>There were no such things as school-books then.</p>
-
-<p>There were no spelling-books.</p>
-
-<p>There were no arithmetics.</p>
-
-<p>There were no geographies. No one knew
-enough about the world to write a geography.</p>
-
-<p>There were no histories. No one knew much
-about things that had happened in the world<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81"></span>
-before that time, and of course none of the history
-since then that you now study had taken
-place.</p>
-
-<p>At certain times, the Spartan boy was whipped,
-not because he had done anything wrong, but
-just to teach him to suffer pain without whimpering.
-He would have been disgraced forever
-if he had cried, no matter how badly he was
-hurt.</p>
-
-<p>He was exercised and drilled and worked
-until he was ready to drop. But still he was
-obliged to keep on, no matter how tired or hungry
-or sleepy or aching he might be, and he must
-never show by any sign how he felt.</p>
-
-<p>He was made to eat the worst kind of food,
-to go hungry and thirsty for long periods of
-time, to go out in the bitter cold with little or
-no clothing, just to get used to such hardships
-and able to bear all sorts of discomforts. This
-kind of training, this kind of hardening, is therefore
-called “Spartan discipline.” How do you
-think you would have liked it?</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans’ food, clothing, and lodging
-were all furnished them, though it was very poor
-food and poor clothing and poor lodging. They
-were not allowed good things to eat, soft beds
-to lie on, or fine clothing to wear. Such things
-were called luxuries, and luxuries, Lycurgus
-thought, would make people soft and weak, and
-he wanted his people hard and strong.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82"></span></p>
-
-<p>The Spartans were even taught to speak in a
-short and blunt manner; they were taught not
-to waste words; they must say what they had to
-say in as few words as possible. This manner
-of speaking we call “Laconic” from the name
-Laconia, the state in which Sparta was located.</p>
-
-<p>Once a king wrote to the Spartans a threatening
-letter, saying that they had better do what
-he told them to, for <i>if</i> he came and took their
-country, he would destroy their city and make
-them slaves.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans sent a messenger back with their
-answer, and when the letter was opened, it contained
-only one word:</p>
-
-<p>“<i>IF!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>Even to-day, we call such an answer, short but
-to the point, a Laconic answer.</p>
-
-<p>Did all this hard training and hard work make
-the Spartans the greatest people in the world?</p>
-
-<p>Lycurgus did make the Spartans the strongest
-and best fighters in the world&mdash;but&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans conquered all the peoples
-around about them, though there were ten times
-as many&mdash;but&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>They made these people their slaves, who did
-all their farming and other work&mdash;but&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>We shall see later whether Lycurgus’s idea
-was right.</p>
-
-<p>North of Sparta was another great city of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83"></span>
-Greece called Athens. There were, of course,
-many other towns in Greece, but Sparta and
-Athens were the most important. In Athens
-the people lived and thought quite differently
-from those in Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians were just as fond of everything
-beautiful as the Spartans were of discipline and
-of everything military.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians loved athletic games of all
-sorts just as the Spartans did, but they also
-loved music and poetry and beautiful statues,
-paintings, vases, buildings, and such things that
-are known as the “arts.”</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians believed in training the mind
-<i>as well</i> as the body. The Spartans believed the
-training of the body was the all-important thing.
-Which do you like better, the Athenians’ idea or
-the Spartans’ idea?</p>
-
-<p>Once at a big game a very old man was looking
-for a seat on the Athenians’ side. There was
-no seat empty, and no Athenian offered to give
-him one. Whereupon the Spartans called to the
-old man and gave him the best seat on their
-side. The Athenians cheered the Spartans to
-show how fine they thought this act. At this
-the Spartans said:</p>
-
-<p>“The Athenians <i>know</i> what is right but they
-don’t <i>do</i> it.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c15">15</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Crown of Leaves</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Greek</span> boys and young men and even girls
-loved all sorts of outdoor sports.</p>
-
-<p>They didn’t play football or baseball or
-basketball, but they ran and jumped and wrestled
-and boxed and threw the discus&mdash;a thing like a
-big, heavy dinner-plate of iron.</p>
-
-<p>From time to time matches were held in different
-parts of Greece to see who was the best in
-these sports.</p>
-
-<p>The Big Meet, however, took place only once
-every four years at a place called Olympia in
-southern Greece; and these Olympic games, as
-they were called, were the most important affairs
-held in Greece, for all the winners from different
-parts of the country were here matched
-against each other to see who should be the
-champion of all Greece.</p>
-
-<p>The time when the games were held was a
-great national holiday, for the games were in
-honor of the head god Jupiter, or Zeus as the
-Greeks called him. People came from all over
-the known world to see the games much as they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85"></span>
-do now when a World’s Fair is held or a big
-football game.</p>
-
-<p>Only Greeks could enter this contest, and only
-those who had never committed a crime or broken
-any laws&mdash;as a boy nowadays must have a clean
-record in order to be allowed to play on his
-college or school team.</p>
-
-<p>If there happened to be a war going on at the
-time, and there usually was, so important was
-this holiday that a truce was declared, and everybody
-went off to the games. Nothing could be
-allowed to interfere with the games, and even
-war was not as important. “Business before
-pleasure!” When the games were finished, they
-started fighting again!</p>
-
-<p>The Greek boys and young men would train
-for four years getting ready for this big event,
-and then nine months before the great day they
-would go to Olympia to get in training at an
-open-air gymnasium near the field.</p>
-
-<p>The games lasted five days and began and
-ended with a parade and prayers and sacrifices to
-the Greek gods, beautiful statues to whom were
-placed all about the field, for this was not only
-sport, but a religious service in honor of Jupiter
-and the other gods.</p>
-
-<p>There were all sorts of matches&mdash;in running,
-jumping, wrestling, boxing, chariot-racing, and
-throwing the discus.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_86"></span></p>
-
-<p>Any one who cheated would have been put out
-and never again allowed to take part. The Greek
-believed in what we call being a good sport. He
-didn’t brag if he won. He didn’t make excuses
-if he lost; he didn’t cry out that the decision was
-unfair.</p>
-
-<p>The athlete who won one or more of these
-games was the hero of all Greece, and in particular
-of the town from which he came. The
-winner received no money prize but was crowned
-with a wreath made of laurel leaves. This he
-valued much more than an athlete nowadays does
-the silver cup or gold medal he may win. Besides
-receiving the laurel wreath, the winner had songs
-written to him by poets, and often statues were
-made of him by sculptors.</p>
-
-<p>There were not only athletic matches but contests
-between poets and musicians to see who
-could write the best poetry or compose and play
-the sweetest music on a kind of small harp called
-the lyre. The winners of these contests did not
-receive a laurel wreath, but they were carried in
-triumph on the shoulders of the throng, as you
-may have seen the captain of a winning team
-picked up and raised aloft by his fellow-players
-after he has won.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig24.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Greek runner.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Now, in Greek History the first event which
-we can be absolutely sure is true is the record
-of the winner of a foot-race in these Olympic<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87"></span>
-Games 776 years before Christ was born. And
-from this event the Greeks began to count their
-history dates, as we do now from the birth of
-Christ. It was their Year 1.</p>
-
-<p>The four years’ time between the Olympic
-Games was called an Olympiad. Up to this time,
-they had no calendar that gave the year or date,
-so 776 is the date of
-the first Olympiad.
-Greek History before
-that time may have
-been partly true, but
-we know much of it
-was mythical. Beginning
-with 776, however,
-Greek history is
-pretty much all true.</p>
-
-<p>After a long while
-they stopped having
-the games, but a few
-years ago it was
-thought it would be a
-good thing to start
-them again. So, for the first time since before
-Christ, new Olympic Games were again held in
-1896 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, not in Olympia, however, but in
-Athens. The games used to be held only in
-Greece. Now they are held each time in a different
-country. Only Greeks used to be allowed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88"></span>
-to take part. Now, however, athletes from almost
-all the countries of the world are invited
-to compete. War used to be stopped when the
-time for the games arrived. Now the games are
-stopped when war is on.</p>
-
-<p>From what we have learned of the Spartans’
-training, we might guess that they used to win
-most of the athletic prizes, and they did.</p>
-
-<p>Do the Spartans still continue to win most of
-the prizes in the New Olympic Games?</p>
-
-<p>No. Not even the Greeks now carry off the
-chief prizes.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig25.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_89"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c16">16</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Bad Beginning</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever heard of the Seven-League
-Boots, the boots in which one could take many
-miles at a single step?</p>
-
-<p>Well, there is a still bigger boot; it is over five
-hundred miles long, and it is in the Mediterranean
-Sea.</p>
-
-<p>No, it’s not a real boot, but it would look like
-one if you were miles high in an airplane and
-looking down upon it.</p>
-
-<p>It is called Italy.</p>
-
-<p>Something very important happened in Italy,
-not long after the First Olympiad in Greece.
-It was so important that it was called the Year 1,
-and for a thousand years people counted from
-it as the Greeks did from the First Olympiad,
-and as we do now from the birth of Christ. This
-thing that happened was not the birth of a man,
-however. It was the birth of a city, and this city
-was called Rome.</p>
-
-<p>The history of Rome starts with stories that
-we know are fairy-tales or myths in the same
-way that the history of Greece does. Homer told<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90"></span>
-about the wanderings of the Greek, Odysseus.
-A great many years later a poet named Vergil
-told about the wanderings of a Trojan named
-Æneas.</p>
-
-<p>Æneas fled from Troy when that city was
-burning down and started off to find a new home.
-Finally after several years he came to Italy and
-the mouth of a river called the Tiber. There
-Æneas met the daughter of the man who was
-ruling over that country, a girl by the name of
-Lavinia, and married her, and they lived happily
-ever after. So the children of Æneas and
-Lavinia ruled over the land, and they had children,
-and their children had children, and their
-children had children, until at last boy twins were
-born. These twins were named Romulus and
-Remus. Here endeth the first part of the story
-and the trouble begins, for they did not live
-happily ever after.</p>
-
-<p>At the time the twins were born, a man had
-stolen the kingdom, and he feared that these two
-boys might grow up and take his stolen kingdom
-away from him. So he put the twins in a basket
-and set them afloat on the river Tiber, hoping
-that they might be carried out to sea or upset and
-be drowned. This, he thought, was nearly all
-right, so long as he didn’t kill them with his own
-hands. But the basket drifted ashore instead of
-going out to sea or upsetting, and a mother wolf<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91"></span>
-found the twins and nursed them as if they were
-her own babies. And a woodpecker also helped
-and fed them berries. At last a shepherd found
-them and brought them up as if they were his
-own sons until they grew up and became men.
-This sounds a good deal like the story of Paris
-who was left out to die and was found and
-brought up by a shepherd also.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig26.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Romulus and Remus with the wolf.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Each of the twins then wished to build a city.
-But they could not agree which one was to do
-it, and in quarreling over the matter, Romulus
-killed his own twin brother Remus. Romulus
-then built the city by the Tiber River, on the
-spot where he and his brother had been saved
-and nursed by the mother wolf. Here there were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92"></span>
-seven hills. This was in 753 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, and he named
-the city Roma after his own name, and the people
-who lived there were called Romans. So that
-is why, ever afterward, the Roman kings always
-said they were descended from the Trojan hero,
-Æneas, the great-great-great-grandfather of
-Romulus.</p>
-
-<p>Don’t you believe this story? Neither do I.
-But it is such an old, old story every one is supposed
-to have heard it even though it is only a
-legend.</p>
-
-<p>In order to get people for the city which he
-had started, it is said that Romulus invited all
-the thieves and bad men who had escaped from
-jail to come and live in Rome, promising them
-that they would be safe there.</p>
-
-<p>Then as none of the men had wives, and there
-were no women in his new city, Romulus thought
-up a scheme to get the men wives. He invited
-some people called Sabines, who lived near-by,
-both men and women, to come to Rome to a
-big party.</p>
-
-<p>They accepted, and a great feast was spread.
-In the middle of the feast, when every one was
-eating and drinking, a signal was given, and each
-of the Romans seized a Sabine woman for his
-wife and ran off with her.</p>
-
-<p>The Sabine husbands immediately prepared
-themselves for war against the Romans, who had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93"></span>
-stolen their wives. When the battle had begun
-between the two armies, the Sabine women ran
-out in the midst of the fighting between their
-new and old husbands and begged them both to
-stop. They said they had come to love their
-new husbands and would not return to their old
-homes.</p>
-
-<p>What do you think of that?</p>
-
-<p>It sounds like a pretty bad beginning for a
-new city, doesn’t it? and you may well wonder
-how Rome turned out&mdash;a city that started with
-Romulus killing his brother and that was settled
-by escaped prisoners who stole the wives of their
-neighbors. We must remember, however, that
-then they were nearer the time when Primitive
-Men lived whose only rule of life was: kill or be
-killed, steal or be stolen; and whose usual way
-of getting wives was to knock them in the head
-and drag them off to their caves while they were
-senseless. Besides, they believed in the same
-gods as the Greeks, and we have heard how their
-gods did all sorts of wicked things themselves.
-This, too, was long before Christ was born, and
-at that time they did not know anything about the
-Christian religion or what we call right and
-wrong.</p>
-
-<p>You see I have tried to think of some good
-excuses for the actions of these first Romans.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_94"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c17">17</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Kings with Corkscrew Curls</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">After</span> Rome’s bad start she had one king
-after another, and some of these kings were
-pretty good and some were pretty bad.</p>
-
-<p>But the most important city in the world at
-this time was far away from Rome on the Tigris
-River. This city was called Nineveh, and here
-lived the kings of the country called Assyria,
-which I told you about some time ago.</p>
-
-<p>As usual, the chief thing we hear about Assyria
-and the Assyrians is that they were fighting with
-their neighbors. This, however, was not the fault
-of their neighbors.</p>
-
-<p>The Assyrian kings who lived in Nineveh
-wanted more land and power, and so they fought
-their neighbors in order to take their land away
-from them. These kings had long corkscrew
-curls, and you may think that only girls wear
-long curls and that a man with curls would be
-“girl-like.” But these kings were not at all that
-kind. They were such terrible fighters that they
-were feared far and near. They treated their
-prisoners terribly; they skinned them alive, cut<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95"></span>
-off their ears, pulled out their tongues, bored
-sticks into their eyes, then bragged about it.
-They made the people whom they conquered pay
-them huge sums of money and promise to fight
-with them whenever they went to war.</p>
-
-<p>And so Assyria became so strong and powerful
-that she at last owned everything of importance
-in the world, the land between the rivers
-called Mesopotamia, and the land to the east,
-north, and south, and Phenicia, and Egypt, and
-pretty nearly everything except Greece and
-Italy.</p>
-
-<p>This big, big country of Assyria was ruled by
-the kings at Nineveh, who lived in great magnificence.
-They built wonderful palaces for
-themselves, and on each side of the way that led
-to the palace they placed rows of huge statues
-of bulls and lions with wings and men’s heads
-as a rich man nowadays might plant a row of
-trees along the driveway that leads up to his
-home. These winged animals are what are called
-cherubs in the Bible.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have heard a particularly sweet
-and pretty little baby called a cherub. Isn’t it
-strange that these hideous Assyrian monsters
-should be called cherubs also?</p>
-
-<p>When the Assyrian kings were not fighting
-men they were fighting wild animals, for they
-were very fond of hunting with bow and arrow,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96"></span>
-and they had pictures and statues made of themselves
-on horseback or in chariots fighting lions.
-Often they would capture the animals they
-hunted alive and put them in cages so that the
-people could come and see them. This was something
-like a “zoo” such as we have nowadays.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig27.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">An Assyrian cherub.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The rulers of Assyria had very strange names.
-Sennacherib was one of the most famous. Sennacherib
-lived about 700 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Once upon a time
-Sennacherib was fighting Jerusalem. His whole<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97"></span>
-army was camped one night when as they lay
-asleep something happened, for when the morning
-came, none woke up; all were dead, both men
-and horses. An English poet named Byron has
-written a poem called “The Destruction of Sennacherib”
-describing this event. Perhaps they
-were poisoned; what do you think?</p>
-
-<p>Assur-bani-pal was another king who ruled
-later&mdash;about 650 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> He was a great fighter
-too, but he was also very fond of books and reading;
-so Assur-bani-pal started the first public
-library. The books in that first public library
-were, however, very peculiar. Of course they
-were not printed books, and they were not even
-made of paper. They were made of mud with
-the words pressed into the clay before it dried.
-This writing was cuneiform, which I have already
-told you about. The books were not arranged
-in bookcases, either, but were placed in piles on
-the floor. They were, however, kept in careful
-order and numbered so that a person who wanted
-to see a book in the library could call for it by its
-number.</p>
-
-<p>Assyria reached the height of her power during
-the reign of Sennacherib and Assur-bani-pal, and
-everything in Nineveh was so lovely for the Ninevites
-that the time when Assur-bani-pal reigned
-was called the Golden Age.</p>
-
-<p>But although everything in Nineveh was so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98"></span>
-lovely for the Ninevites, everywhere else the
-Assyrians were hated and feared, for their armies
-brought death and destruction wherever they
-went.</p>
-
-<p>So it came to pass that not long after Assur-bani-pal
-died, two of the neighbors of Nineveh
-could stand it no longer. These two neighbors
-were the king of Babylon, who lived south, and
-a people called the Medes, who lived to the east
-and belonged to the Aryan family. So the king
-of Babylon and the Medes got together and attacked
-Nineveh, and together they wiped that
-city off the face of the earth. This was in 612
-<span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>&mdash;Six-One-Two&mdash;and the power of Nineveh
-and Assyria was killed dead. This, therefore is
-called the Fall of Nineveh, the end of Nineveh.
-We might put up a tombstone:</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig28.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c18">18</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A City of Wonders and Wickedness</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> king of Babylon had beaten Nineveh.
-But he didn’t stop with that. He wanted his
-Babylon to be as great as Nineveh had been. So
-he went on conquering other lands to the left
-and right until Babylon, in its turn, became the
-leader and ruler of other countries. Was Babylon,
-also, in its turn, to fall, as Nineveh had
-fallen?</p>
-
-<p>When at last the king of Babylon died, he left
-his vast empire to his son. Now, the king’s son
-was not called John or James or Charles or anything
-simple like that. It was&mdash;Nebuchadnezzar,
-and I wonder if his father called him by all that
-long name or shortened it to a nickname like
-“Neb,” for instance, or “Chad,” or perhaps
-“Nezzar.” This is the way Nebuchadnezzar
-wrote his name, for he used cuneiform writing.
-How would you like to write your name in such
-a queer way?</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig29.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Name of Nebuchadnezzar in cuneiform writing.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_100"></span></p>
-
-<p>Nebuchadnezzar set to work and made the city
-of Babylon the largest, the most magnificent and
-the most wonderful city of that time and perhaps
-of any time. The city was in the shape of a
-square and covered more ground than the two
-largest cities in the world to-day&mdash;New York
-and London&mdash;put together. He surrounded it
-with a wall fifty times as high as a man&mdash;fifty
-times&mdash;whew!&mdash;and so broad that a chariot could
-be driven along on the top, and in this wall he
-made one hundred huge brass gates. The Euphrates
-River flowed under the wall, across the
-city, and out under the wall on the other side.</p>
-
-<p>Nebuchadnezzar could not find any one in
-Babylon who was beautiful enough to be his
-queen. The Babylonian girls must have felt
-pretty bad&mdash;or mad&mdash;about that. So he went to
-Media, the country that had helped his father
-conquer Nineveh. There he found a lovely princess,
-and so he married her and brought her home
-to Babylon.</p>
-
-<p>Now, Media was a land of hills and mountains,
-whilst Babylon was on level ground and without
-even a hill in sight. Nebuchadnezzar’s queen
-found Babylonia so flat and uninteresting that
-she became homesick, and she longed for her own
-country with its wild mountain scenery. So,
-just to please her and keep her contented Nebuchadnezzar
-set to work and <i>built</i> a hill for her,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101"></span>
-but the queer thing was he built it on top of the
-roof of his palace! On the sides of this hill he
-made beautiful gardens, and these gardens he
-planted not only with flowers but also with trees,
-so that his queen might sit in the shade and enjoy
-herself. These were called Hanging Gardens.
-The Hanging Gardens and the tremendous walls
-were known far and wide as one of the Seven
-Wonders of the world.</p>
-
-<p>Would you like to know what the other Wonders
-were?</p>
-
-<p>Well, the pyramids in Egypt were one; the
-magnificent statue of Jupiter at Olympia, where
-the Olympic Games were held, was another&mdash;so
-those with the Hanging Gardens make three.</p>
-
-<p>Nebuchadnezzar believed in idols like those
-terrible monsters the Phenicians worshiped. The
-Jews away off in Jerusalem believed in one God.
-Nebuchadnezzar wanted the Jews to worship his
-gods, but they would not. He also wanted them
-to pay him taxes, and they would not. So he
-sent his armies to Jerusalem, destroyed that city,
-burnt the beautiful Temple that Solomon had
-built, and brought the Jews and all their belongings
-to Babylon. There in Babylon Nebuchadnezzar
-kept the Jews prisoners, and there in
-Babylon the Jews remained prisoners for fifty
-years.</p>
-
-<p>Babylon had become not only the most magnificent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102"></span>
-city in the world; it had become also the
-most wicked. The people of Babylon gave themselves
-up to the wildest pleasures. Their only
-thought seemed to be, “Let’s eat, drink, and be
-merry”; they thought nothing of the morrow;
-the more wicked the pleasure the more they liked
-it.</p>
-
-<p>But although Nebuchadnezzar seemed able to
-do and able to have everything in the world he
-wanted, he finally went crazy. He thought he
-was a bull, and he used to get down on his hands
-and knees and eat grass, imagining he was a
-beast of the field.</p>
-
-<p>And Babylon, in spite of its tremendous walls
-and brass gates, was doomed. Babylon was to
-be conquered. It didn’t seem possible. How
-could it be conquered, and who was to do the
-conquering? You would probably never guess.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c19">19</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Surprise Party</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">When</span> I was a boy I was always told, and you
-have probably been told the same thing:</p>
-
-<p>“You can have no dessert until you have eaten
-your dinner.”</p>
-
-<p>No matter whether I was hungry or not, “No
-dinner, no dessert.” This was a rule which my
-father said was “like the laws of the Medes and
-Persians.”</p>
-
-<p>I didn’t know then who the Medes and Persians
-were, but I know now that they were two
-Aryan families living next to Babylon&mdash;you
-remember Nebuchadnezzar had married a
-Median girl&mdash;and that they were governed by
-laws which were fixed so hard and fast and were
-so unchangeable that we still speak of any such
-thing that does not change as like “the laws of
-the Medes and Persians.”</p>
-
-<p>The Medes and the Persians had a religion
-which was neither like that of the Jews nor like
-the idol worship of the Babylonians. It had been
-started by a Persian named Zoroaster, who was
-a wise man like Solomon. He may even have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104"></span>
-lived about the same time as Solomon, but probably
-a good deal later.</p>
-
-<p>Zoroaster went about among the people, teaching
-them wise sayings and hymns. These wise
-sayings have been gathered into a book, which is
-now the Persian Bible.</p>
-
-<p>Zoroaster taught that there were two great
-spirits in the world, the Good Spirit and the Bad
-Spirit.</p>
-
-<p>The Good Spirit, he said, was Light, and the
-Bad Spirit, Darkness. The Good or Light he
-called Mazda; where have you heard that word,
-I wonder. So the Persians kept a fire, in which
-they thought was the Good Spirit, constantly
-burning on their altars, and they had men watch
-over this flame to see that it never went out.
-These men who watched the flame were called
-Magi, and they were supposed to be able to do
-all sorts of wonderful things, so that we call such
-wonderful things “magic,” and the people who
-are able to do them we call “magicians.”</p>
-
-<p>At the time of this story which I’m telling you,
-the ruler of the Medes and the Persians was a
-great king named Cyrus.</p>
-
-<p>But before I go on with this story I must tell
-you about a little country not far from Troy.
-This little country was called Lydia. Perhaps
-you may know a girl named Lydia. I do. Lydia
-was ruled over by a king named Crœsus who was
-the richest man in the world. When we want to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105"></span>
-describe a man as very wealthy, we still say he
-is “as rich as Crœsus.”</p>
-
-<p>Crœsus owned nearly all the gold-mines, of
-which there were a great many in that country,
-and besides this he collected money in the form
-of taxes from all the cities near him.</p>
-
-<p>Before the time of Crœsus people did not have
-money such as we have now. When they wished
-to buy anything, they simply traded something
-they had for something they wanted&mdash;so many
-eggs for a pound of meat or so much wine for
-a pair of sandals. To buy anything expensive,
-such as a horse, they paid with a lump of gold or
-silver, which was weighed in the scales to see just
-how heavy it was. It is hard for us to think how
-people could get along without cents and nickels,
-dimes, quarters and dollars&mdash;with no money at
-all&mdash;and yet they did.</p>
-
-<p>Crœsus, in order to make things simpler, cut
-up his gold into small bits. Now, it was not
-easy for every one to weigh each piece each time
-it was traded, for he might not have any scales
-handy. So Crœsus had each piece weighed and
-stamped with its weight and with his name or
-initials to show that he guaranteed the weight.
-These pieces of gold and silver were only lumps
-with Crœsus’ seal pressed into them, but they
-were the first real money even though they were
-not round and beautifully engraved like our
-coins.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_106"></span></p>
-
-<p>Now, Cyrus, the great Persian king, thought
-he would like to own this rich country of Lydia
-with all its gold-mines, so he set out to conquer it.</p>
-
-<p>When Cyrus was on the way Crœsus sent in a
-hurry to the oracle in Greece to ask what was
-going to happen and who was going to win. You
-will remember what I said about the oracle at
-Delphi and how people used to ask the oracle
-questions&mdash;to have their fortunes told, as nowadays
-some people ask the ouija board.</p>
-
-<p>The oracle replied to Crœsus’ question:</p>
-
-<p>“A great kingdom shall fall.”</p>
-
-<p>Crœsus was delighted, for he thought the
-oracle meant that Cyrus’ kingdom would fall.
-The oracle <i>was</i> right, but not in the way Crœsus
-had thought.</p>
-
-<p>A great kingdom did fall, but it was his own
-kingdom of Lydia and not Cyrus’ that fell.</p>
-
-<p>But Cyrus was still not satisfied with the capture
-of Lydia, and so at last he attacked Babylon.</p>
-
-<p>Now, the people in Babylon who thought of
-nothing but pleasure were busy feasting and
-drinking and having a good time. Why
-should they worry about Cyrus? Their city had
-walls that were so high and thick and was protected
-by such strong gates of brass that it
-seemed as if no one could possibly have captured
-it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig30.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Delphic Oracle.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>But you remember that the Euphrates River
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108"></span>ran beneath the walls and crossed right through
-the city. Well, one night when the young prince
-of Babylon named Belshazzar was having a gay
-party and enjoying himself, feeling quite certain
-that no one could enter the city, Cyrus made a
-dam and turned the waters of the river to one
-side. Then Cyrus’ army marched into the city
-through the dry river-bed and captured the surprised
-Babylonians without even a fight. It is
-supposed that some of the Babylonian priests
-helped him to do this and even opened the gates,
-for Babylon had become so wicked that they
-thought it time for it to be destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>Old Lycurgus would have said: “I told you
-so. People who think of nothing but pleasure
-never come to a good end.”</p>
-
-<p>This surprise party was in 538&mdash;5 and 3 are 8.</p>
-
-<p>Two years later Cyrus let the Jews, who had
-been carried away fifty years before from Jerusalem,
-return to the home of their fathers, thus
-ending the Babylonian Captivity.</p>
-
-<p>To-day the only thing left of this great city of
-Babylon, which was once bigger than New York
-and London together&mdash;Babylon the Wicked,
-Babylon the Magnificent, Babylon with all its
-great walls and brass gates and Hanging Gardens&mdash;is
-only a mound of earth. A few miles
-away is a ruined tower. This tower, we think,
-may once have been the Tower of Babel.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_109"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c20">20</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Other Side of the World</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">There</span> used to be a “missionary box” in my
-Sunday-school, and into this box we dropped
-our pennies to send a missionary to the heathen.</p>
-
-<p>The heathen, we were told, were people who
-lived on the other side of the world and worshiped
-idols.</p>
-
-<p>There was the heathen “Chinee,” the heathen
-“Japanee,” and the heathen Indian.</p>
-
-<p>These heathen Indians were not our American
-Indians. They lived in a country called India
-on the other side of the world. India looks on the
-map like the little thing that hangs down in the
-back of your mouth when the doctor says: “Stick
-out your tongue. Say ’Ah.’” Our Indians are
-red, but the Indians from India are white. The
-white Indians belong to the Aryan family, the
-same family that Cyrus belonged to.</p>
-
-<p>Two thousand years before the time of Cyrus,
-an Aryan family had moved away from the other
-Aryan families in Persia until they had come to
-this country we now call India.</p>
-
-<p>In the course of time there came to be four
-chief classes of people in India, four chief classes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110"></span>
-of society&mdash;high society, low society, and two
-classes of society in between. These classes were
-called castes, and no one in one caste would have
-anything to do with one in another caste. A boy
-or girl in one caste would never play with a boy
-or girl in another caste. A man from one caste
-would never marry a woman in another. No one
-from one caste would eat with one in another
-caste, even though he were starving. Men in
-different castes were even afraid of touching each
-other in passing on the street. It was almost as if
-they were afraid of catching some horrible
-disease.</p>
-
-<p>The highest caste of all were the Fighters and
-Rulers. The Rulers were the Fighters, and the
-Fighters were the Rulers, for they had to be
-fighters in order to keep their rule.</p>
-
-<p>In the next caste were the Priests; and, as
-in the case of the Egyptian priests, these men
-were not what we think of as priests nowadays.
-They were what we should call professional men&mdash;doctors,
-lawyers, engineers, etc.</p>
-
-<p>Next came the farmers and tradespeople&mdash;the
-butcher, the baker, and candlestick maker.</p>
-
-<p>Fourth and last were the common laborers.
-These were the men who knew nothing and could
-do nothing but dig or chop wood or carry water.</p>
-
-<p>Below these four castes were still other people
-so low and mean that they were called outcastes
-or Pariahs. We now call any person who has<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111"></span>
-done something so disgraceful that no one, not
-even the lowest, will have anything to do with
-him a “pariah.”</p>
-
-<p>The people in India believed in a god whom
-they called Brahma, and so we call their religion
-Brahmanism. The Brahmanists believed that
-when a person died his soul was born again in the
-body of another person or perhaps of an animal.
-If he had been good while alive they thought his
-soul went into the body of a higher caste man
-when he died&mdash;as if he were promoted from one
-grade to the next. If, however, he had led a bad
-life they thought his soul went into the body of
-a lower caste man or even of an animal.</p>
-
-<p>When a man died, his body was not buried, it
-was burned. If he were a married man, his wife
-was obliged to throw herself alive upon the burning
-flames. She was not allowed to live after
-her husband was dead. If the wife died, that
-was another matter; the man simply got another
-wife. In the Brahman temples were hideous
-idols, which the people worshiped as gods. These
-idols had several heads apiece or many arms, or
-many legs, or they had tusks sticking out of their
-mouths&mdash;or they had horns coming out of their
-heads.</p>
-
-<p>About the year 500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> there was born a prince
-in India by the name of Gautama. Gautama
-saw so much suffering and trouble in the world
-that he felt it was not right that he himself, just<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112"></span>
-because he by chance had been born rich, should
-be happy while others were miserable and unhappy.
-So he gave up the life to which he had
-been born and brought up, a life of ease and
-luxury with all its good things, and spent his
-entire time trying to make things better for his
-people.</p>
-
-<p>Gautama taught the people to be good; he
-taught them to be honest; and he taught them
-to help the poor and unfortunate. After a while
-people began to call him Buddha, and he was so
-holy and pure that at last they thought he must be
-god himself, and so they worshiped him as god.</p>
-
-<p>These people who believed in Buddha were
-called Buddhists, and many, many Brahmanists
-left their hideous idols and became Buddhists.
-You see there was no such thing as a Christian
-religion as yet, for this was still five hundred
-years before Christ was born, and Buddhism
-seemed so much better than Brahmanism that
-we do not wonder that great numbers of people
-became Buddhists.</p>
-
-<p>Buddhists thought their religion was so good
-that they wanted everyone to become Buddhists;
-so they sent missionaries across country and sea
-to the island of Japan just as we send Christian
-missionaries now, and this new religion spread far
-and wide.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have never met nor seen nor even<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113"></span>
-heard of a Buddhist, and yet to-day there are
-many more Buddhists on the other side of the
-world than there are Christians!</p>
-
-<p>About the same time that Gautama was starting
-Buddhism in India, a man in China, a teacher
-by the name of Confucius, was teaching the
-people of China what they ought to do and what
-they ought not to do. His teachings filled several
-books and formed what came to be a religion
-for the Chinese.</p>
-
-<p>Confucius taught his people to obey their parents
-and teachers and to honor their ancestors.
-This sounds something like one of the Ten Commandments:
-“Honor thy father and thy mother.”</p>
-
-<p>Confucius also taught the golden rule, the same
-golden rule you are taught to-day, only instead
-of saying, “<i>Do</i> unto others as you would be done
-by,” he said, “Do <i>not</i> do to others what you
-would <i>not</i> want others to do to you.”</p>
-
-<p>In China there are still as many people who
-follow the teachings of Confucius as there are
-Christians in all the rest of the world. So here
-are two religions each as large or larger than the
-Christian religion.</p>
-
-<p>China was highly civilized, even at this time,
-500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, and many inventions were known and
-used in that country long before the rest of the
-world ever heard of them. Yet we know little of
-China’s history until a great deal later.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_114"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c21">21</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Rich Man, Poor Man</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Whenever</span> I pass a group of street boys
-playing ball, I almost always hear some one
-shout, “That’s no fair!”</p>
-
-<p>There always seem to be some players who
-think the others are not playing fair. Sides are
-always quarreling.</p>
-
-<p>They need an umpire.</p>
-
-<p>When Athens was young there were two sides
-among the people&mdash;the rich and the poor, the
-aristocrats and the common people&mdash;and they
-were always quarreling. Each side was trying
-to get more power, and each side said the other
-wasn’t playing fair.</p>
-
-<p>They needed an umpire.</p>
-
-<p>Athens had had kings, but the kings took the
-side of the rich, and so at last the Athenians
-had kicked out the last king, and after that they
-would have no more kings.</p>
-
-<p>About the year 600 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> things became so very
-bad that a man named Draco was chosen to make
-a set of rules for the Athenians to obey. These
-rules he made were called the Code of Draco.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_115"></span></p>
-
-<p>Draco’s Code made terrible punishments for
-any one who broke the rules. If a man stole
-anything, even as small a thing as a loaf of bread,
-he was not just fined or sent to jail; he was put
-to death! And no matter how small the wrong
-a man had done, he was put to death for it. Draco
-explained the reason for such a severe law by
-saying that a thief deserved to be put to death
-and should be. A man who killed another deserved
-<i>more</i> than to be put to death, but unfortunately
-there was no worse punishment to give
-him.</p>
-
-<p>You can understand how much trouble the laws
-of Draco caused. They were so hard that a
-little later another man was called upon to make
-a new set of laws. This man was named Solon,
-and his laws were very just and good. We now
-call senators and other people who make our
-laws “Solons” after this man Solon who lived so
-long ago, even though their laws are not always
-just and good.</p>
-
-<p>Still the people were not satisfied with Solon’s
-laws. The upper classes thought the laws gave
-too much to the lower classes, and the lower
-classes thought they gave too much to the upper.
-Both classes, however, obeyed the laws for a
-while, although both classes complained against
-them.</p>
-
-<p>But about 560 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> a man named Pisistratus<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116"></span>
-stepped in and took charge of things himself. He
-was not elected nor chosen by the people. He
-simply made himself ruler, and he was so powerful
-that no one could stop him. It was as if a
-boy made himself captain or umpire without
-being chosen by those on the teams.</p>
-
-<p>There were others from time to time in Greece
-who did the same thing, and they were called
-tyrants. So Pisistratus was a tyrant. Nowadays
-only a ruler who is cruel and unjust is
-called a tyrant. Pisistratus, however, settled the
-difficulties of both sides, and, though a tyrant in
-the Greek sense, he was neither cruel nor unjust.
-In fact, Pisistratus ruled according to the laws
-of Solon, and he did a great deal to improve
-Athens and the life of the people. Among other
-things he did, he had Homer’s poems written
-down, so that people could read them, for before
-this time people knew them only from hearing
-them recited. So the people put up with Pisistratus
-and also with his son for a while. But
-finally the Athenians got tired of the son’s rule
-and drove all the Pisistratus family out of Athens
-in 510 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>The next man to try and settle the quarrels of
-the two sides was named Clisthenes. It is hard,
-sometimes, to learn the name of a stranger to
-whom we have just been introduced unless we
-hear his name repeated several times. So I will<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117"></span>
-say over his name so that you can get used to
-hearing it:</p>
-
-<p>
-<span class="smcap pad6">Clisthenes;</span><br />
-<span class="smcap pad15">Clisthenes;</span><br />
-<span class="smcap pad9">Clisthenes.</span>
-</p>
-
-<p>Your father may be poor or he may be rich.</p>
-
-<p>If he is poor he has one vote when there is
-an election.</p>
-
-<p>If he is rich he has
-one vote but only one
-vote and no more.</p>
-
-<p>If he breaks the
-laws, whether he is
-rich or whether he is
-poor, he must go to
-jail.</p>
-
-<p>It was not always
-so; it is not always so
-even now. But long
-ago it was much worse.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig31.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Ostracism.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Clisthenes gave every one a vote&mdash;rich and
-poor alike&mdash;and ruled wisely and well.</p>
-
-<p>Clisthenes started something called ostracism.
-If for any reason the people wanted to get rid
-of a man, all they had to do was to scratch his
-name on any piece of a broken pot or jar they
-might find and drop it in a voting-box on a certain
-day. If there were enough such votes, the
-man would have to leave the city and stay away<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118"></span>
-for ten years. This was called ostracism, and
-a man so treated was said to be ostracized, from
-the Greek name for such a broken piece of pottery,
-on which the name was written. Even to-day
-we use this same word to speak of a person
-whom no one will have anything to do with,
-whom no one wants around, saying he has been
-ostracized.</p>
-
-<p>Have you ever been sent away from the table
-to the kitchen or to your room for being naughty?</p>
-
-<p>Then you, too, have been ostracized.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig32.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_119"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c22">22</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Rome Kicks Out Her Kings</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">In</span> 509 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> something happened in Rome.</p>
-
-<p>There were two classes of people in Rome,
-just as there were in Athens; the wealthy people
-who were called patricians and the poor people
-who were called plebeians. We use the same
-words now and call people who are rich and
-aristocratic “patricians,” and the people who are
-poor and uneducated “plebeians.” The patricians
-were allowed to vote, but the plebeians
-were not allowed to vote.</p>
-
-<p>At last, however, the plebeians had been given
-the right to vote. But in 509 Rome had a king
-named Tarquin. He didn’t think the plebeians
-should be allowed to vote, and so he said they
-should not. The plebeians would not stand this,
-and so they got together and drove Tarquin out
-of the city, as the Athenians had driven out their
-king. This was in 509, and Tarquin was the
-last king Rome ever had.</p>
-
-<p>After King Tarquin had been driven out,
-the Romans started what is called a republic,
-something like our own country, but they were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120"></span>
-afraid to have only one man as president for fear
-he might make himself king, and they had had
-enough of kings.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig33.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Lictor carrying fasces.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>So the Romans elected
-<i>two men</i> each year to be
-rulers over them, and these
-two men they called consuls.
-Each consul had a
-body-guard of twelve men&mdash;just
-a dozen. These men
-were given the name “lictors,”
-and each lictor carried
-an ax tied up in a
-bundle of sticks. This
-bundle of sticks with the
-ax-head sticking out in the
-middle or at the end was
-known as “fasces” and signified
-that the consuls had
-power to punish by whipping
-with the sticks or by
-chopping off one’s head
-with the ax.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have seen
-fasces used as ornaments
-or as a decoration around
-monuments or on buildings like a court-house, city
-hall, or capitol. Why do you suppose they are
-used in this way?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_121"></span></p>
-
-<p>One of the first two consuls was named Brutus
-the Elder, and he had two sons. The king,
-Tarquin, who had been driven out of the city,
-plotted to get back to Rome and become king
-once more. He was able to persuade some
-Romans to help him. Among those whom he
-persuaded were, strange to say, the two sons of
-Brutus&mdash;the new consul of Rome.</p>
-
-<p>Brutus found out this plot and learned that
-his own children had helped Tarquin. So Brutus
-had his sons tried. They were found guilty,
-and in spite of the fact that they were his own
-children, he had the lictors put both of them to
-death as well as the other traitors to Rome.</p>
-
-<p>Tarquin did not succeed in getting back the
-rule of Rome in this way, and so the next year he
-tried again. This time he got together an army
-of his neighbors, the Etruscans, and with this
-army he attacked Rome.</p>
-
-<p>Now, there was a wooden bridge across the
-Tiber River, which separated the Etruscans from
-the city of Rome. In order to keep the Etruscans
-from crossing into the city, a Roman
-named Horatius, who had already lost one eye
-in fighting for Rome, gave orders to have this
-bridge broken down.</p>
-
-<p>While the bridge was being chopped down,
-Horatius with two of his friends stood on the far
-side of the bridge and fought back the whole<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122"></span>
-Etruscan army. When the bridge was cracking
-under the blows of the Roman soldiers, Horatius
-ordered his two friends to run quickly to the
-other side before the bridge fell.</p>
-
-<p>Then Horatius, all by himself, kept the enemy
-back until at last the bridge crashed into the river.
-Horatius then jumped into the water with all
-his armor on and swam toward the Roman shore.
-Though arrows the Etruscans shot were falling
-all around him, and though his armor weighed
-him down, he reached the other side safely. Even
-the Etruscans were thrilled at his bravery, and,
-enemies though they were, they cheered him
-loudly.</p>
-
-<p>There is a very famous poem called “Horatius
-at the Bridge,” which describes this brave deed,
-and most boys like to learn at least a part of it.</p>
-
-<p>A few years after Horatius, there lived another
-Roman named Cincinnatus. He was only
-a simple farmer with a little farm on the bank
-of the Tiber, but he was very wise and good, and
-the people of Rome honored and trusted him.</p>
-
-<p>One day when an enemy was about to attack
-the city&mdash;for in those days there always seemed
-to be enemies everywhere ready to attack Rome
-on any excuse&mdash;the people had to have a leader
-and a general. They thought of Cincinnatus
-and went and asked him to be dictator.</p>
-
-<p>Now, a dictator was the name they gave to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123"></span>
-a man who in case of sudden danger was called
-upon to command the army and in fact all the
-people for the time being while there was danger.
-Cincinnatus left his plow, went with the people to
-the city, got together an army, went out and
-defeated the enemy, and returned to Rome, all
-in twenty-four hours!</p>
-
-<p>The people were so much pleased with the
-quick and decided way in which Cincinnatus had
-saved Rome that they wanted him to keep right
-on being their general in time of peace. Even
-though they hated kings so much, they would
-have made him king if he would have accepted.</p>
-
-<p>But Cincinnatus did not want any such thing.
-His duty done, he wanted to return to his wife
-and humble home and his little farm. So in
-spite of what many would have thought a wonderful
-chance, he did go back to his plow, choosing
-to be just a simple farmer instead of being
-king.</p>
-
-<p>The city of Cincinnati in Ohio is named after
-a society which was founded in honor of this old
-Roman, who lived nearly five hundred years
-before Christ.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_124"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c23">23</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Greece <i>vs.</i> Persia</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Do</span> you know what those two little letters “vs.”
-mean between Greece and Persia in the name of
-this story?</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have seen them used on football
-tickets when there was to be a match between two
-teams, as, for example, Harvard vs. Yale.</p>
-
-<p>They stand for “versus,” which means
-“against.”</p>
-
-<p>Well, there was to be a great match between
-Greece and Persia, but it wasn’t a game; it was
-a fight for life and death, a fight between little
-Greece and great big Persia.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus, the great Persian king, had conquered
-Babylon and other countries, as well, and he had
-kept on conquering until Persia ruled most of
-the world, all except Greece and Italy.</p>
-
-<p>About the Year 500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the new ruler of this
-vast Persian Empire was a man named Darius.
-Darius looked at the map, as you might do, and
-saw that he owned and ruled over a large part
-of it. What a pity, thought he, that there should<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125"></span>
-be a little country like Greece that did not belong
-to him!</p>
-
-<p>So Darius said to himself, “I must have this
-piece of land called Greece to complete my
-empire.” Besides, the Greeks had given him
-some trouble. They had helped some of his
-subjects to rebel against him. Darius said,
-“I must punish these Greeks for what they
-have done and then just add their country to
-mine.”</p>
-
-<p>So he called his son-in-law and told him to go
-over to Greece and conquer it.</p>
-
-<p>His son-in-law did as he was told and started
-out with a fleet and an army to do the punishing.
-But before his fleet could reach Greece it was
-destroyed by a storm, and he had to go back
-home without having done anything.</p>
-
-<p>Darius was very angry at this, mad with his
-son-in-law and mad with the gods who he thought
-had wrecked his ships, and he made up his mind
-that he himself would go and do the punishing
-and conquering the next time.</p>
-
-<p>First, however, he sent his messengers to all the
-Greek cities and ordered each of them to send
-him some earth and some water as a sign that
-they would give him their land and become his
-subjects peaceably without a fight.</p>
-
-<p>Many Greek cities were so frightened by the
-threat of Darius and by his mighty power that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126"></span>
-they gave in at once and sent earth and water
-as they were told to do.</p>
-
-<p>But little Athens and little Sparta both hotly
-refused to do so, in spite of the fact that they
-were only two small cities against the vast empire
-of Darius.</p>
-
-<p>Athens took Darius’ messenger and threw
-him into a well, saying, “There is earth and
-water for you; help yourself”; and Sparta did
-likewise. Then these two cities joined their
-forces and called on all their neighbors to join
-with them to fight for their native land against
-Darius and Persia.</p>
-
-<p>So Darius made ready to conquer Athens and
-then Sparta.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig34.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">A Trireme.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>In order to reach
-Athens his army had to
-be carried across the sea
-in boats. Of course, in
-those days there were no
-steamboats. Steamboats
-were invented thousands
-of years later. The only
-way to make a boat go
-was with sails or with
-oars. To make a large boat move with oars, it
-was necessary to have a great many rowers&mdash;three
-rows one above the other on each side of
-the boat.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_127"></span></p>
-
-<p>Such a boat was called a trireme, which means
-three rows of oars. It took about 600 of these
-boats to carry Darius’ army over to Greece.
-Each of these 600 boats carried, besides the
-rowers or crew, about 200 soldiers. So you can
-see for yourself how many soldiers Darius had
-in this army, if there were 600 ship-loads of them
-and 200 soldiers on each ship. Yes, that is an
-example in multiplication&mdash;120,000 soldiers&mdash;that’s
-right.</p>
-
-<p>So the Persians sailed across the sea; and this
-time there was no storm, and they reached the
-shore of Greece safely. They landed on a spot
-called the plain of Marathon, which was only
-about twenty-six miles away from Athens. You
-will see presently why I have told you just the
-number of miles&mdash;twenty-six.</p>
-
-<p>When the Athenians heard that the Persians
-were coming, they wanted to get Sparta in a
-hurry to help, as she had promised to do.</p>
-
-<p>Now, there were no telegraphs or telephones
-or railroads, of course, in those days. There was
-no way in which they could send a message to
-Sparta except to have it carried by hand.</p>
-
-<p>So they called on a famous runner named
-Pheidippides to carry the message. Pheidippides
-started out and ran the whole way from
-Athens to Sparta, about one hundred and fifty
-miles, to carry the message. He ran night and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128"></span>
-day, hardly stopping at all to rest or to eat, and
-on the second day he was in Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans, however, sent back word that
-they couldn’t start just then; the moon wasn’t
-full, and it was bad luck to start when the moon
-wasn’t full, as nowadays some superstitious
-people think it bad luck to start on a trip on Friday.
-They said they would come after a while,
-when the moon was full.</p>
-
-<p>But the Athenians couldn’t wait for the moon.
-They knew the Persians would be in Athens before
-then, and they didn’t want them to get as
-far as that.</p>
-
-<p>So all the fighting men in Athens left their
-city and went forth to meet the Persians on the
-plain of Marathon&mdash;twenty-six miles away.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians were led by a man named
-Miltiades, and there were only ten thousand soldiers
-of them. Besides these, there were one
-thousand more from a little near-by town, which
-was friendly with Athens and wished to stand by
-her&mdash;eleven thousand in all. If you figure it out,
-you will see that there were perhaps ten times as
-many Persians as there were Greeks, ten Persian
-soldiers to one Greek soldier.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks, however, were trained athletes,
-as we know, and their whole manner of life made
-them physically fit. The Persians were no match
-for them. And so, in spite of the small number
-of Greeks, the large number of Persians were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129"></span>
-beaten, and beaten badly. Of course the Greeks
-were far better soldiers than the Persians, for all
-their training made them so, but more than all
-this, they were fighting for themselves to save
-their homes and their families.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have heard the fable of the hound
-who was chasing a hare. The hare escaped. The
-hound was made fun of for not catching the little
-hare. To which the hound replied, “I was
-only running for my supper; the hare was running
-for his life.”</p>
-
-<p>The Persian soldiers were not fighting for their
-homes or families, which were away back across
-the sea; and it made little difference to them who
-won, anyway, for they were merely hirelings on
-slaves; they were fighting for a king because he
-ordered them to.</p>
-
-<p>Naturally the Greeks were overjoyed at this
-victory.</p>
-
-<p>Pheidippides, the famous runner, who was now
-at Marathon, started off at once to carry the joyful
-news back to Athens, twenty-six miles away.
-The whole distance he ran without stopping for
-breath. But he had not had time to rest up from
-his long run to Sparta, which he had taken only
-a few days before, and so fast did he run this
-long distance that as soon as he had reached
-Athens and gasped the news to the Athenians in
-the market-place he dropped down dead!</p>
-
-<p>In honor of this famous run, they have nowadays,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130"></span>
-in the new Olympic Games, what is called
-a Marathon race, in which the athletes run this
-same distance.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig35.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“The First Marathon Race.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>This battle of Marathon took place in 490
-<span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> and is one of the most famous battles in all
-history, for the great Persian army was beaten
-by one little city and its neighbor, and the
-Persians had to go back to their homes in
-disgrace.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131"></span></p>
-
-<p>A little handful of people, who governed themselves,
-had defeated a great king with a large
-army of only hired soldiers or slaves.</p>
-
-<p>But this was not the last the Greeks were to see
-of the Persians.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig36.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_132"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c24">24</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Fighting Mad</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Darius</span> was now angrier than ever, and still
-more determined to whip those stubborn Greeks,
-who dared to defy him and his enormous power;
-and he began to get ready for one more attempt.
-This time, however, he made up his mind that
-he would get together such an army and navy
-that there would be no chance in the world against
-it, and he made a solemn oath to destroy the
-Greeks. So for several years he gathered troops
-and supplies, but something happened, and in
-spite of his oath he did not carry out his plan.
-Why? You guessed it. He died.</p>
-
-<p>But Darius had a son named Xerxes&mdash;pronounced
-as if it began with a Z.</p>
-
-<p>When I was a boy, there was an alphabet rime
-that began, “A is for Apple,” and went on down
-to, “X is for Xerxes, a great Persian king.” I
-learned the rime, though I did not know at that
-time anything either about Xerxes or Persia.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes was just as determined as his father
-had been that the Greeks must be beaten, so he
-went on getting ready.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_133"></span></p>
-
-<p>But the Greeks also were just as determined
-that they must <i>not</i> be beaten, so they, too, went
-on getting ready, for they knew the Persians
-would sooner or later come back and try again.</p>
-
-<p>At this time there were two chief men in
-Athens, and each was trying to be leader. One
-was named Themistocles&mdash;pronounced The-mis-to-klees&mdash;and
-the other Aristides&mdash;pronounced
-Air-is-tie-dees. Notice how many Greek names
-seem to end in “es.”</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles urged the Athenians to get ready
-for what he knew was coming, the next war with
-Persia. Especially did he urge the Athenians to
-build a fleet of boats, for they had no boats and
-the Persians had a great many.</p>
-
-<p>Aristides, on the other hand, didn’t believe in
-Themistocles’ scheme to build boats. He thought
-it a foolish expense and talked against it.</p>
-
-<p>Aristides had always been so wise and fair that
-people called him Aristides the Just. Some of
-the people wanted to get rid of him, because they
-thought he was wrong and Themistocles was
-right. So they waited till the time came to vote
-to ostracize any one they wanted to get rid of.
-Do you remember who started this custom?
-Clisthenes&mdash;about 500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>When the day for voting came, a man who
-could not write and did not know Aristides by
-sight happened to ask his help in voting. Aristides<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134"></span>
-inquired what name he should write, and
-the man replied, “Aristides.”</p>
-
-<p>Aristides did not tell who he was, but merely
-said:</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you want to get rid of this man?
-Has he done anything wrong?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no,” the voter replied. “He hasn’t done
-anything wrong”; but with a long sigh he said,
-“I’m so tired of hearing him always called ’The
-Just.’”</p>
-
-<p>Aristides must have been surprised by this unreasonable
-answer, but nevertheless he wrote his
-own name for the voter, and when the votes
-were counted there were so many that he was
-ostracized.</p>
-
-<p>Though it did not seem quite fair that Aristides
-should be ostracized, it was fortunate, as it turned
-out, that Themistocles had his way, and it was
-fortunate the Athenians went on preparing for
-war.</p>
-
-<p>They built a fleet of triremes. Then they got
-all the cities and towns in Greece to agree to join
-forces in case of war. Sparta, on account of its
-fame as a city of soldiers, was made the leader
-of all the others in case war should come.</p>
-
-<p>And then, just ten years after the battle of
-Marathon, in 480 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>, the great Persian army
-was again ready to attack Greece. It had been,
-brought together from all parts of the vast Persian<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135"></span>
-Empire and was far bigger than the former
-army with its 120,000 men, although that was a
-large army for those days.</p>
-
-<p>This time the army is supposed to have consisted
-of over two million soldiers&mdash;two million;
-just think of that! The question then was how
-to get so many soldiers over to Greece. Such a
-multitude could not be carried across to Greece
-in boats, for even the largest triremes only held
-a few hundred men, and it would have taken&mdash;well,
-can you tell how many boats, to carry over
-two million? Probably many more triremes than
-there were in the whole world at that time. So
-Xerxes decided to have his army march to Greece,
-the long way but the only way round. So they
-started.</p>
-
-<p>Now, there is a strip of water called a strait,
-something like a wide river, right across the path
-the Persian army had to take. This strait was
-then called the Hellespont. It is, of course, still
-there, but if you look on the map now you will
-find it is now called the Dardanelles. But there
-was no bridge across the Hellespont, for it was
-almost a mile wide, and they didn’t have bridges
-as long as that in those days. So Xerxes fastened
-boats together in a line that stretched from one
-shore to the other shore, and over these boats he
-built a floor to form a bridge so that his army
-could cross upon it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136"></span></p>
-
-<p>Hardly had he finished building the bridge,
-however, when a storm arose and destroyed it.
-Xerxes, in anger at the waves, ordered that the
-water of the Hellespont be whipped as if it were
-a slave he were punishing. Then he built another
-bridge, and this time the water behaved
-itself, and his soldiers were able to cross over
-safely.</p>
-
-<p>So vast was Xerxes’ army that it is said to
-have taken it seven days and seven nights marching
-continuously all the time in two long unbroken
-lines to get over to the opposite shore.
-Xerxes’ fleet followed the army as closely as they
-could along the shore, and at last they reached
-the top of Greece. Down through the north of
-Greece the army came, overrunning everything
-before it, and it seemed as though nothing on
-earth could stop such numbers of men.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c25">25</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">One Against a Thousand</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">There</span> is a little narrow passageway with the
-mountains on one side and the water on the other
-through which the Persians had to go to reach
-Athens. This pass is called Thermopylæ, and
-you might guess what Thermopylæ means if you
-notice that the first part is like Thermos bottle,
-which means “hot” bottle. As a matter of fact,
-Thermopylæ meant Hot Gateway, and was so
-named because this natural gateway to Greece
-had hot springs near-by.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks decided that it was best to stop
-the Persians at this gate&mdash;to go to meet them
-there first before they reached Athens. In such
-a place a few Greek soldiers could fight better
-against a much larger number.</p>
-
-<p>It also seemed wise to send picked Greek
-troops to meet the Persians, the very best soldiers
-in Greece with the very bravest general to lead
-them.</p>
-
-<p>So the Spartan king, who was named Leonidas&mdash;which
-in Greek means “like a lion”&mdash;was
-chosen to go to Thermopylæ, and with him seven<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138"></span>
-thousand soldiers&mdash;seven thousand soldiers to
-block the way of two million Persians! Three
-hundred of these were Spartans, and a Spartan
-was taught that he must never surrender, never
-give up. A Spartan mother used to say to her
-son:</p>
-
-<p>“Come back <i>with</i> your shield or <i>on</i> it.”</p>
-
-<p>When Xerxes found his way blocked by this
-ridiculously small band of soldiers, he sent his
-messengers ordering them to surrender, to give
-themselves up.</p>
-
-<p>And what do you suppose Leonidas replied?</p>
-
-<p>It was what we should expect a Spartan to
-answer, brief and to the point; that is, “Laconic.”
-He said simply:</p>
-
-<p>“Come and take us.”</p>
-
-<p>As there was nothing left for Xerxes to do but
-fight, he started his army forward.</p>
-
-<p>For two days the Persians fought the Greeks,
-but Leonidas still held the pass, and the Persians
-were unable to get through.</p>
-
-<p>Then a Greek traitor and coward, who thought
-he might save his own life and be given a rich
-prize by Xerxes, told that king of a secret path
-over the mountains by which he and his army
-might slip through and get around Leonidas and
-his soldiers who blocked the way.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning Leonidas learned that the
-Persians had found out this path and were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139"></span>
-already on the way to pen him in from behind.
-There was still a chance, however, for his men
-to escape, and Leonidas told all those who wanted
-to do so to leave. Those that remained knew
-that the fight was absolutely hopeless and that
-it meant certain death for all them. In spite of
-this, however, one thousand men, including all
-the three hundred Spartans stood by their leader,
-for, said they:</p>
-
-<p>“We have been ordered to hold the pass, and
-a Spartan obeys orders, and never surrenders, no
-matter what happens.”</p>
-
-<p>So there Leonidas and his thousand men
-fought to the bitter end until all except one of
-their number was killed.</p>
-
-<p>The gateway to the city of Athens was now
-open, and things looked very black for the
-Greeks, for there was nothing to prevent the
-Persians from marching over the dead bodies of
-Leonidas and his men straight on to Athens.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians, wondering what was to happen
-to them, hurriedly went to the oracle at Delphi
-and asked what they should do.</p>
-
-<p>The oracle replied that the city of Athens itself
-was doomed, that it would be destroyed, there
-was no hope for it, but that the Athenians themselves
-would be saved by wooden walls.</p>
-
-<p>This answer, as was usually the case in whatever
-the oracle said, was a riddle, the meaning of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140"></span>
-which seemed hard to solve. Themistocles, however,
-said that he knew the answer. You remember
-that it was he who had been working so hard
-to have a fleet of ships built. Themistocles said
-that the oracle meant these ships when it spoke
-of the wooden walls.</p>
-
-<p>So the Athenians, following the supposed advice
-of the oracle, left their city as Themistocles
-told them and went on board the ships, which
-were not far away, in a bay called Salamis.</p>
-
-<p>The Persian army reached Athens and found
-it deserted. So they burned and destroyed the
-city as the oracle said. Then they marched on
-to the Bay of Salamis, where the Athenians were
-on board the ships. There, on a hill overlooking
-the bay, Xerxes had a throne built for himself
-so that he could sit, as if in a box at the theater
-looking at a play, and watch his own large fleet
-destroy the much smaller one of the Greeks with
-all the Athenians on board.</p>
-
-<p>The Greek fleet was commanded, of course, by
-Themistocles. His ships were in this narrow bay
-or strait of water, somewhat in the same way that
-the soldiers of Leonidas had been in the narrow
-valley at Thermopylæ.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig37.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Xerxes on his throne watching battle of Salamis.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Themistocles, seeing that the Bay of Salamis
-looked somewhat like the Pass of Thermopylæ,
-had an idea. He made believe he was a traitor
-like the traitor at Thermopylæ and sent word to
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142"></span>Xerxes that if the Persian fleet divided and one
-half stayed at one end of the strait and the other
-half closed off the other end of the strait, the
-Greeks would be penned in between and caught
-as in a trap.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes thought this a good idea, so he gave
-orders to have his ships do as Themistocles had
-suggested. But Xerxes, sitting smiling on his
-throne, had the surprise of his life. The result
-was just the opposite of what he had expected.
-With the Persian fleet separated in two parts,
-the Greeks in between could fight both halves of
-the divided fleet at the same time, and the space
-was so narrow that the Persians’ ships got in
-the way of each other and rammed and sank their
-own boats.</p>
-
-<p>And so the Persian fleet was completely beaten,
-and the proud and boastful Xerxes, with most of
-his army and all the navy that was left, made a
-hasty retreat back to Persia the way they had
-come.</p>
-
-<p>And this was the last time the Persians ever
-tried to conquer little Greece.</p>
-
-<p>If Themistocles had not had his way and built
-such a strong fleet, what do you think would have
-become of Athens and Greece!</p>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_143"></span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c26">26</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Golden Age</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">When</span> we were talking about the Stone Age
-and the Bronze Age, I told you that later we
-should also hear of a Golden Age.</p>
-
-<p>Well, we have come to the Golden Age now.
-This doesn’t mean that people at this time used
-things made of gold, nor that they had a great
-deal of gold money. It means&mdash;well, let us see
-what sort of a time it was, and then you can tell
-what it means.</p>
-
-<p>After the wars with Persia, Athens seemed to
-have been cheered up by her victory to do wonderful
-things, and the next fifty years after the
-Persians were driven out of Greece&mdash;that is, 480
-to 430 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>&mdash;were the most wonderful years in
-the history of Greece and perhaps the most wonderful
-years in the history of the world.</p>
-
-<p>Athens had been burned down by Xerxes.
-At the time it happened this seemed like a terrible
-misfortune. But it wasn’t. The people
-set to work and built a much finer and much
-more beautiful city than the old one had been.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_144"></span></p>
-
-<p>Now, the chief person in Athens at this time
-was a man named Pericles. He was not a king
-nor a ruler, but he was so very wise and such a
-wonderful speaker and such a popular leader
-that he was able to make the Athenians do as he
-thought best. He was like the popular captain of
-a football team, who is a fine player himself and
-can make fine players of all the others on his
-team. Athens was his team, and he trained it so
-well that any one of the team would have been
-able to fill any position no matter how important
-it was. Some men became great artists. Some
-men became great writers. Some men became
-great philosophers. Do you know what philosophers
-are? They are wise men who know a great
-deal and love knowledge.</p>
-
-<p>The artists built many beautiful buildings,
-theaters, and temples. They made wonderful
-statues of the Greek gods and goddesses and
-placed them on the buildings and about the city.</p>
-
-<p>The philosophers taught the people how to be
-wise and good.</p>
-
-<p>The writers composed fine poems and plays.
-The plays were not like those we have nowadays
-but were all about the doings of the gods and
-goddesses.</p>
-
-<p>The theaters were not like those we have nowadays,
-either. They were always out of doors,
-usually on the side of a hill, where a “grand<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145"></span>
-stand” could be built facing the stage. There
-was little or no scenery, and instead of an
-orchestra of musicians there was a chorus of
-singers to accompany the actors. The actors
-wore false faces or masks to show what their feelings
-were, a “comic” mask with a grinning face
-when they wanted to be funny and a “tragic”
-mask with a sorrowful face when they wanted
-to seem sad.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have seen pictures of these masks,
-for in the decorations of our own theaters these
-same comic and tragic masks are sometimes used.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig38.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Tragic and comic masks.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Athens had been
-named after the
-goddess Athene,
-who was supposed
-to watch out for
-and look after the
-city. So the
-Athenians thought she should have a special
-temple. Accordingly, they built one to her on
-the top of a hill called the Acropolis. This
-temple they called in her honor the Parthenon,
-meaning the “maiden,” one of the names by
-which she was known.</p>
-
-<p>The Parthenon is considered the most beautiful
-building in the world, though as you see by
-the picture, as it is to-day, it is now in ruins. In
-the center of this temple was a huge statue of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146"></span>
-Athene made of gold and ivory by a sculptor
-named Phidias. We are told that it was the most
-beautiful statue in the world as the Parthenon
-was the most beautiful building, but it has completely
-disappeared, and no one knows what became
-of it. One might guess, however, that the
-gold and ivory tempted thieves, who may have
-stolen it piece by piece.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig39.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">The Parthenon.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Phidias made many other statues on the outside
-of the Parthenon, but most of these have
-been carried away and put in museums or have
-been lost or destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>This statue of Athene and the other sculptures<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147"></span>
-on the Parthenon made Phidias so famous that
-he was asked to make a statue of Jupiter to be
-placed at Olympia, where the Olympic Games
-were held. The statue of Jupiter was finer even
-than the one he had made of Athene and was so
-splendid that it was called one of the Seven
-Wonders of the World. You remember the
-pyramids of Egypt and the Hanging Gardens
-of Babylon were two others of the Seven
-Wonders.</p>
-
-<p>Phidias is probably the greatest sculptor that
-ever lived, but he did a thing which the Greeks
-considered a crime and would not forgive. We
-do not see anything so terribly wrong in what he
-did, but the Greeks’ idea of right and wrong was
-different from ours. This is what he did. On
-the shield of the statue of Athene that he had
-made, Phidias carved a picture of himself and
-also one of his friend Pericles. It was merely
-a part of the decoration of the shield, and hardly
-any one would have noticed it. But according to
-the Greek notion it was sacrilege to make a picture
-of a human being on a statue of a goddess.
-So when the Athenians found out what Phidias
-had done they threw him into prison, and there
-he died.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks used different kinds of columns
-on their buildings, and these columns are used
-in many public and in some private buildings<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148"></span>
-to-day. I’ll tell you what each kind is like;
-then see how many you can find.</p>
-
-<p>The Parthenon
-was built in a style
-called Doric.</p>
-
-<p>The top of the
-column is called the
-capital, and the capital
-of the Doric
-column is shaped like
-a saucer with a
-square cover on top
-of it. There was no
-base or block at the
-bottom of the
-column. It rested
-directly on the floor. As the Doric column is
-so plain and strong-looking it is called the man’s
-style.</p>
-
-<p>The second style is called <i>Ionic</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The capital of the Ionic column has a base, and
-the capital has ornaments like curls underneath
-the square top, and the column has a base.</p>
-
-<p>As this column is more slender and more ornamental
-than the Doric, it is called the woman’s
-style.</p>
-
-<p>The third style is called <i>Corinthian</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig40.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="captiona">1. Doric.<br /> 2. Ionic.<br /> 3. Corinthian.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The capital of the Corinthian column is higher
-than either of the other two and still more ornamental.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149"></span>
-It is said that the architect who first
-made this column got his idea for its capital
-from seeing a basketful of toys that had been
-placed on a child’s grave as was the custom instead
-of flowers. The basket had been covered
-with a slab, and leaves of the thistle called the
-acanthus had grown up around the basket. It
-looked so pretty that the architect thought it
-would make a beautiful capital for a column,
-and so he copied it.</p>
-
-<p>I asked some boys which one could find the
-most columns. The next day one boy said he had
-seen two Ionic columns, one on each side of the
-door of his house. The second had seen ten Doric
-columns on the savings-bank. But the third said
-he had seen 138 Corinthian columns.</p>
-
-<p>“Where on earth did you see so many?” I
-asked.</p>
-
-<p>“I counted the lamp-posts from my house to
-the school,” he said. “They were kind of
-Corinthian columns.”</p>
-
-<p>One of the friends of Pericles was a man named
-Herodotus. He wrote in Greek the first history
-of the world. For this reason Herodotus is
-called the Father of History, and some day if
-you study Greek you may read what he wrote
-in his own language. Of course, at that time
-there was very little history to write. What has
-happened since <i>hadn’t</i> happened then, and before<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150"></span>
-his time little was known of what had taken place.
-So Herodotus’s history was chiefly a story of the
-wars with Persia, which I have just told you
-about. After that he had to stop; there was
-nothing more to write about.</p>
-
-<p>In those days every once in a while a terrible
-contagious disease, called a plague, would
-break out, and people would be taken sick and
-die by the thousands, for the doctors knew very
-little about the plague or how to cure it. Such
-a plague came upon Athens, and the Athenians
-died like poisoned flies. Pericles himself nursed
-the sick and did all he could for them, but finally
-he, too, was taken sick with the plague and died.
-So ended the Golden Age, which has been called
-in honor of its greatest man the Age of Pericles.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig41.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_151"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c27">27</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">When Greek Meets Greek</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Golden Age, when Athens was so wonderful,
-lasted for only fifty years.</p>
-
-<p>Why, do you suppose, did it stop at all?</p>
-
-<p>It stopped chiefly because of a fight.</p>
-
-<p>This time, however, the fight was not between
-Greece and some one outside, as in the Persian
-Wars. The fight was between two cities that
-had before this been more or less friendly&mdash;mostly
-less&mdash;between Sparta and Athens. It
-was a family quarrel between Greeks. And the
-fight was all because one of these cities&mdash;Sparta&mdash;was
-jealous of the other&mdash;Athens.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans, as you know, were fine soldiers.
-The Athenians were fine soldiers, too. But ever
-since Themistocles with the ships he had built
-had beaten the Persians at Salamis, Athens had
-also a fine fleet, and Sparta had no fleet.
-Furthermore, Athens had become the most
-beautiful and most cultured city in the whole
-world.</p>
-
-<p>Sparta did not care much about Athens’s
-beautiful buildings and her education and culture<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152"></span>
-and that sort of thing; that did not interest
-her. What did make her jealous was Athens’s
-fleet. Sparta was inland, not on nor near the
-sea-shore as Athens was; so she could not have
-a fleet at all. Sparta did not intend, however,
-to let Athens get ahead of her, and so on one
-excuse or another Sparta with all of <i>her</i> neighbors
-started a war against Athens with all of <i>her</i>
-neighbors.</p>
-
-<p>Sparta was in a part of Greece which was
-called by the hard name, the Peloponnesus.
-But in those days the boys did not think this a
-hard name, for they were as familiar with it as
-you are with such a name as Massachusetts, for
-instance, which would seem just as hard to a
-Greek as Peloponnesus does to you. This war
-between Athens and Sparta was therefore
-called the Peloponnesian War from the fact
-that it was not only Sparta but all of the Peloponnesus
-that fought against Athens.</p>
-
-<p>We think a war lasts entirely too long if it
-lasts four or five years, but the Peloponnesian
-War lasted twenty-seven years! There is a saying,
-“When Greek meets Greek then comes a
-tug of war!” which means to say, “When two
-equal fighters such as Athens and Sparta, both
-Greek, meet each other in battle, who knows
-how it will end?”</p>
-
-<p>I am not going to tell you about all the battles<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153"></span>
-that took place during these twenty-seven years,
-but at the end of this long and bloody war both
-cities were tired and worn out, and the glory of
-Athens was gone. Although Sparta was ahead,
-neither city ever amounted to much afterward.
-The Peloponnesian War ruined them both.
-That’s the way war does!</p>
-
-<p>All during the Peloponnesian War there
-was a man at Athens by the name of Socrates
-who, many think, was one of the wisest and best
-men who ever lived. He was called a philosopher
-and went about the city teaching the
-people what was right and what they ought to
-do. But instead of actually <i>telling</i> the people
-what he thought was right, he asked them questions
-which made them see what was right. In
-this way, chiefly by asking questions, he led
-people to find out for themselves what he wanted
-them to know. This kind of teaching, simply by
-asking questions, has ever since been called
-Socratic.</p>
-
-<p>Socrates had a snub nose and was bald and
-quite ugly, and yet he was very popular with
-the Athenians, which may seem strange, for the
-Athenians loved beautiful faces and beautiful
-figures and beautiful things, and Socrates was
-anything but beautiful. It must have been the
-beauty of Socrates’s character that made them
-forget his ugliness, as I know some boys and girls<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154"></span>
-who think their teacher is perfectly beautiful just
-because she is so good and kind that they love
-her, although she is really not pretty at all.</p>
-
-<p>Socrates had a wife named Xantippe. She
-had a bad temper and was the worst kind of a
-crosspatch. She thought Socrates was wasting
-his time, that he was a loafer, as he did no work
-that brought in any money. One day she
-scolded him so loudly that he left the house,
-whereupon she threw a bucket of water on him.
-Socrates, who never answered back, merely remarked
-to himself:</p>
-
-<p>“After thunder, rain may be expected.”</p>
-
-<p>Socrates didn’t believe in all the Greek gods,
-Jupiter, Venus, and the rest, but he was careful
-not to say so himself, for the Greeks were very
-particular that no one should say or do anything
-against their gods. Phidias, you remember, was
-thrown into prison for merely putting his picture
-on the shield of the goddess Athene, and
-one would have been put to death for teaching
-young men not to believe in the gods.</p>
-
-<p>At last, however, Socrates, as he had feared
-he would be, was charged with not believing in
-the Greek gods and with teaching others not to
-believe in them. And so for this he was condemned
-to death. He was not hanged or put to
-death as prisoners are now, however. He was
-ordered to drink a cup of hemlock, which was a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155"></span>
-deadly poison. Socrates’s pupils, or disciples, as
-they were then called, tried to have him refuse
-to drink the cup, but he would not disobey the
-order; and so, when he was nearly seventy years
-old, he drank the cup of hemlock and died with
-all his disciples around him.</p>
-
-<p>Although this was four hundred years before
-Christ was born, and before, therefore, there
-were any such things as Christians or a Christian
-religion, yet Socrates believed and taught
-two things that are just what Christians also
-believe.</p>
-
-<p>One of these things he believed was that each
-of us has inside a conscience, which tells us what
-is right and what is wrong; we don’t have to
-read from a book or be told by another what is
-right or what is wrong.</p>
-
-<p>Another thing he taught was that there is a
-life after death and that when we die our souls
-live on.</p>
-
-<p>No wonder he was not afraid himself to die!</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_156"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c28">28</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Wise Men and Otherwise</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever been playing in your yard
-when a strange boy who had been watching from
-the other side of the fence asked to be let into
-the game, saying he would show you how to
-play? You didn’t want him around, and you
-didn’t want him in, but somehow or other he
-got in and was soon bossing everybody else.</p>
-
-<p>Well, there was a man named Philip who
-lived north of Greece, and he had been watching
-Sparta and Athens&mdash;not playing but fighting&mdash;and
-he wanted “to get into the game.”
-Philip was king of a little country called Macedonia,
-but he thought he would like to be king
-of Greece, also, and it seemed to him a good
-time, when Sparta and Athens were “down and
-out” after the Peloponnesian War, to step in
-and make himself king of that country. Philip
-was a great fighter, but he didn’t want to fight
-Greece unless he had to. He wanted to be made
-king peaceably, and he wanted Greece to do it
-willingly. So he thought up a scheme to bring
-this about, and this was his scheme.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_157"></span></p>
-
-<p>He knew, as you do, how the Greeks hated
-the Persians whom they had driven out of their
-country over a hundred years before. Although
-the Persian Wars had taken place so long ago,
-the Greeks had never forgotten the bravery of
-their forefathers and the tales of their victories
-over the Persians. These stories had been told
-them over and over by their fathers and grandfathers,
-and they loved to read and reread them
-in Herodotus’s history of the world.</p>
-
-<p>So Philip said to the Greeks:</p>
-
-<p>“Your ancestors drove the Persians out of
-Greece, to be sure, but the Persians went back
-to their country, and you didn’t go after them
-and punish them as you should have done. You
-didn’t try ’to get even’ with them. Why don’t
-you go over to Persia and conquer it now, and
-make the Persians pay for what they did to
-you?” Then he slyly added:</p>
-
-<p>“Let me help you. I’ll lead you against
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>No one seemed to see through Philip’s
-scheme&mdash;nobody except one man. This man
-was an Athenian named Demosthenes.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes, when he was a boy, had decided
-that he would some day be a great speaker
-or orator, just as you might say you are going
-to be a doctor, or an aviator, or a lawyer when
-you grow up.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_158"></span></p>
-
-<p>But Demosthenes had picked the one profession
-which by nature he was worst fitted for. In
-the first place, he had such a very soft, weak
-voice that one could hardly hear him. Besides
-this, he st-st-stammered very b-b-badly and
-could not re-cite even a sh-sh-short p-p-poem
-without hesit-t-tating and st-st-stumbling so that
-people laughed at him. It seemed absurd, therefore,
-that he should aim to be a great speaker.</p>
-
-<p>But Demosthenes practised and <i>practised</i> and
-<i>practised</i> by himself. He went down on the
-sea-shore and put pebbles in his mouth to make
-it more difficult to speak clearly. Then he
-spoke to the roaring waves, making believe that
-he was addressing an angry crowd, who were
-trying to drown the sound of his voice, so that
-he would have to speak very loud indeed.</p>
-
-<p>So at last, by keeping constantly at it,
-Demosthenes did become the greatest speaker
-that ever lived. He spoke so wonderfully that
-he could make his audience laugh or make them
-cry whenever he wanted to, and he could persuade
-them to do almost anything he wished.</p>
-
-<p>Now, Demosthenes was the man who saw
-through Philip’s scheme for conquering Persia.
-He knew that Philip’s real aim was to become
-king of Greece. So he made twelve speeches
-against him. These speeches were known as
-Philippics, as they were against Philip. So<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159"></span>
-famous were they that even to-day we call a
-speech that bitterly attacks any one a Philippic.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks who heard Demosthenes were
-red-hot against Philip while they listened to
-him. But as soon as they got away from the
-sound of Demosthenes’s words the same Greeks
-became lukewarm and did nothing to stop
-Philip.</p>
-
-<p>So at last, in spite of everything that Demosthenes
-had said, Philip had his way and became
-king over all Greece.</p>
-
-<p>Before, however, he could start out, as he had
-promised, to conquer Persia, he was killed by
-one of his own men, so that he was unable to
-carry out his plan.</p>
-
-<p>But Philip had a son named Alexander.
-Alexander was only twenty years old, not old
-enough even to vote if he had lived in our country,
-but when his father died he became king of
-Macedonia and also of Greece.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander was a mere child, he saw
-some men trying without success to tame a
-young and very wild horse that shied and reared
-in the air so that no one was able to ride it.
-Alexander asked to be allowed to try to ride
-the animal. Alexander’s father made fun of
-his son for wanting to attempt what those older
-than he had been unable to do, but at last gave
-his consent.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_160"></span></p>
-
-<p>Now, Alexander had noticed what the others,
-although much older, had not noticed. The
-horse seemed to be afraid of its own shadow,
-for young colts are easily frightened by anything
-black and moving, as some children are
-afraid of the dark.</p>
-
-<p>So Alexander turned the horse around facing
-the sun, so that its shadow would be behind, out
-of sight. He then mounted the animal and, to
-the amazement of all, rode off without any further
-trouble.</p>
-
-<p>His father was delighted at his son’s cleverness
-and gave him the horse as a reward. Alexander
-named the horse Bucephalus and became
-so fond of him that when the horse died Alexander
-built a monument to him and named several
-cities after him.</p>
-
-<p>Now, Alexander was a wonderful boy, but
-he had such a wonderful teacher named Aristotle
-that some people think part, at least, of
-his greatness was due to the teacher.</p>
-
-<p>Aristotle was probably the greatest teacher
-that ever lived. If there were more great
-teachers like Aristotle, it seems likely there
-would have been more great pupils like
-Alexander.</p>
-
-<p>Aristotle wrote books about all sorts of
-things&mdash;books about the stars called astronomy,
-books about animals called zoölogy, and books<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161"></span>
-on other subjects that you probably have never
-even heard of, such as psychology and politics.</p>
-
-<p>For thousands of years these books that
-Aristotle wrote were the school-books that boys
-and girls studied, and for a thousand years they
-were the <i>only</i> school-books. Nowadays, a school-book
-is usually old-fashioned a few years after
-it is written and is then no longer used. So you
-see how remarkable it was that Aristotle’s school-books
-should have been used for so long a time.</p>
-
-<p>Aristotle had been taught by a man named
-Plato, who was also a great teacher and philosopher.
-Plato had been a pupil of Socrates, so
-that Aristotle was a kind of “grand-pupil” of
-Socrates. You have heard of the Wise Men of
-the East. These were the three Wise Men of
-Greece.</p>
-
-<p>
-<span class="smcap pad6">Socrates</span>,<br />
-<span class="smcap pad15">Plato</span>,<br />
-<span class="smcap pad9">Aristotle.</span>
-</p>
-
-<p>Some day you may read what they wrote or
-said over two thousand years ago.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_162"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c29">29</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Boy King</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">When</span> you are twenty years old, what do
-you think you will be doing?</p>
-
-<p>Will you be playing football on your college
-team?</p>
-
-<p>Will you be working in a bank, or what?</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander was twenty he was king of
-both Macedonia and Greece. But Macedonia
-and Greece were entirely too small for this
-wonderful young man. He wanted to own a
-much bigger country; in fact, he thought he
-would like to own the whole world; that was
-all&mdash;nothing more.</p>
-
-<p>So Alexander went right ahead with his
-father’s plan to conquer Persia. The time had
-come to pay back Persia for that last invasion
-one hundred and fifty years before.</p>
-
-<p>He got together an army and crossed the
-Hellespont into Asia and won battle after
-battle against the first Persian armies sent out
-to stop him.</p>
-
-<p>He kept moving on, for Persia was a vast
-empire.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163"></span></p>
-
-<p>Soon he came to a town where in a temple
-there was kept a rope tied into a very far-famed
-and puzzling knot. It was called the Gordian
-Knot, and it was very famous because the oracle
-had said that whoever should undo this knot
-would conquer Persia. But no one had ever
-been able to untie it.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander heard the story, he went to
-the temple and took a look at the knot. He
-saw at once that it would be impossible to untie
-it, so, instead of even trying, as others had done,
-he drew his sword and with one stroke cut the
-knot in two.</p>
-
-<p>So now when a person settles something difficult,
-not by fussing with it as one untangles a
-snarl, but at a single stroke, cutting through all
-difficulties, we say he “cuts the Gordian Knot.”</p>
-
-<p>From that time on, Alexander conquered one
-city after another and never lost any battle of
-importance until he had conquered the whole of
-Persia.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig42.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">A scroll, pens and ink.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Then he went into Egypt, which belonged to
-Persia, and conquered that country, too. To
-celebrate this victory, he founded a town near
-the mouth of the Nile and named it after himself,
-Alexandria. Then he started there a great
-library which later grew to be so big that there
-were said to be five hundred thousand books in
-it&mdash;that is, half a million&mdash;and was the largest<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164"></span>
-library of ancient times. The books were not
-like those in the library of Assur-bani-pal nor
-the kind we have
-now, of course,
-because printing
-had not been invented.
-They
-were every one of
-them written by
-hand, and not on
-pages, but on long sheets which were rolled up
-on sticks to form a scroll.</p>
-
-<p>In the harbor of Alexandria was a little island
-called Pharos, and on this island some years
-later was built a remarkable lighthouse named
-from the island, the Pharos, and its light could
-be seen for many miles. It was really a building
-more like a modern sky-scraper with a tower.
-It was over thirty stories high, which seemed
-most remarkable at that time when most buildings
-were only one or two stories high, and its
-light could be seen for many miles. So the
-Pharos of Alexandria was called one of the
-Seven Wonders of the World. You have
-already heard of three others, so this makes
-the fourth.</p>
-
-<p>Alexandria grew in the course of time to be
-the largest and most important seaport of the
-ancient world. Now, however, the Pharos and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165"></span>
-the library and all the old buildings have long
-since disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>But Alexander did not stay very long in any
-one place. He was restless. He wanted to
-keep on the move. He wanted to see new
-places and to conquer new people. He almost
-forgot his own little country of Macedonia and
-Greece. Instead of being homesick, however, as
-most any one would have been, he kept going
-farther and farther away from home all the
-time. We should call such a man an adventurer
-or an explorer, as well as a great general. And
-so he kept on conquering and didn’t stop conquering
-until he had reached far-off India.</p>
-
-<p>There in India his army, which had stayed on
-with him all the way, became homesick and
-wanted to go back. They had been away from
-home for more than ten years and were so far
-off that they were afraid they would never
-get back.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was now only thirty years old, but
-he was called Alexander the Great, for he was
-ruler of the whole world&mdash;at least, all of it that
-was then known and inhabited by civilized
-people, except Italy, which was still only a collection
-of little, unimportant towns at that time.
-When Alexander found there were no more
-countries left for him to conquer, he was so disappointed
-that he wept!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166"></span></p>
-
-<p>And so at last, when there was nothing more
-to conquer, he agreed to do what his army
-begged him and started slowly back toward
-Greece.</p>
-
-<p>He got as far as Babylon, the city once so
-large and so magnificent. There he celebrated
-with a feast, but while feasting and drinking he
-suddenly died. So he never reached Greece.</p>
-
-<p>This was in 323 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> when he was but 33
-years old. You can remember these figures
-easily, for they are all 3’s except the middle figure
-in the date, which is one less than 3.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander the Great had conquered the
-largest country that has ever been under the rule
-of one man, and yet this was not the only reason
-we call him the “Great.”</p>
-
-<p>He was not only a great ruler and a great
-general, but&mdash;this may surprise you&mdash;he was
-also a great teacher. Aristotle had taught him
-to be that.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander taught the Greek language to the
-people whom he conquered so that they could
-read Greek books. He taught them about
-Greek sculpture and painting. He taught
-them the wise sayings of the Greek philosophers,
-Socrates and Plato and his own teacher,
-Aristotle. He trained the people in athletics
-as the Greeks did for their Olympic Games.
-And so we can say that he taught far more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167"></span>
-people than any other teacher who has ever
-lived.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander had married a beautiful Persian
-girl named Roxana, but their only child was a
-baby, not born until after his father’s death; so
-when the great king died there was no one to rule
-after him. He had told his generals before he
-died that the strongest one of them should be
-the next ruler; to fight it out among themselves,
-as we sometimes say, “May the best man win.”</p>
-
-<p>So his generals did fight to see who should
-win, and finally four of them, who were victorious,
-decided to divide up this great empire
-and each have a share.</p>
-
-<p>One of his generals was named Ptolemy I,
-and he took Egypt as his share and ruled well;
-but the others did not amount to much, and
-after a while their shares became unimportant
-and went to pieces. Like a red toy balloon
-which stretches and stretches as you blow it up,
-Alexander’s empire grew bigger and bigger until&mdash;all
-of a sudden&mdash;“<i>pop</i>”&mdash;nothing was left but
-the pieces.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_168"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c30">30</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Picking a Fight</p>
-
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Every</span> dog has his day.”</p>
-
-<p>A tennis or golf champion wins over the one
-who was champion before him and then has a
-few years during which he is unbeaten. Sooner
-or later, however, some younger and better man
-beats him and in turn takes the championship.</p>
-
-<p>It seems almost the same way with countries
-as with people. One country wins the championship
-from another, holds it for a few years,
-and then, when older, finally loses it to some
-new-comer.</p>
-
-<p>We have seen that</p>
-
-<p>
-<i>Nineveh</i> was champion for a while; then<br />
-<span class="pad6b"><i>Babylon</i> had her turn; then</span><br />
-<span class="pad6d"><i>Persia</i>, had her turn; then</span><br />
-<span class="pad6f"><i>Greece</i>; and, lastly,</span><br />
-<span class="pad6g"><i>Macedonia</i>.</span>
-</p>
-
-<p>You may wonder who was to be the next
-champion after Alexander’s empire went to
-pieces&mdash;who was to have the next turn.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander was conquering the world
-he went east toward the rising sun, and south.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169"></span>
-He paid little attention to the country to the
-west toward the setting sun. Rome, which we
-have not heard of for some time, was then only
-a small town with narrow streets and frame
-houses. It was not nearly important enough
-for Alexander to think much about. Rome herself
-was not thinking of anything then except
-keeping the neighboring towns from beating her.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig43.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Map of Mediterranean showing Carthage, Spain, etc.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>It is usual to speak of a city as “her” or “she”
-as if a city were a girl, but Rome was more like
-a small boy whom all the other boys were
-“picking” on. In the course of time, however,
-Rome began to grow up and was not only able
-to take care of herself but could put up a very
-stiff fight. She was then no longer satisfied
-with just defending herself. So she fought and
-won battles with most of the other towns in
-Italy, until at last she found herself champion
-of the whole of the “boot.” Then she began to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170"></span>
-look around to see what other countries there
-were outside of Italy that she might conquer.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have noticed that Italy, the
-“boot,” seems about to kick a little island as if
-it were a football. This island is Sicily, and just
-opposite Sicily was a city called Carthage.</p>
-
-<p>Carthage had been founded by the Phenicians
-many years before and had become a very rich
-and powerful city. As she was by the sea, she
-had built many ships and traded with all the
-other seaports along the Mediterranean, just as
-the old Phenician cities of Tyre and Sidon
-had done.</p>
-
-<p>Carthage did not like to see Rome getting so
-strong and growing so big and becoming so
-powerful. In other words, Carthage was jealous
-of Rome.</p>
-
-<p>Rome, on her side, was jealous of the wealth
-and trade of Carthage. So Rome anxiously
-looked around for some excuse to get into a fight
-with her.</p>
-
-<p>Now, you know how easy it is to pick a quarrel
-and start a fight when you are “looking for
-trouble.” One boy sticks out his tongue, the
-other gives him a kick, and the fight is on.</p>
-
-<p>Well, two countries are at times just like
-little boys; they start a fight with just as little
-excuse, and though they call the fight “war” it
-is nothing but a “scrap.” Only there are no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171"></span>
-fathers to come along and give them both a
-spanking and send them to bed without any
-supper.</p>
-
-<p>So it didn’t take long for Rome and Carthage
-to find an excuse, and a war was started between
-them. The Romans called this fight a
-Punic War, for “Punic” was their name for
-Phenician, and the Carthaginians were Phenicians.</p>
-
-<p>As Carthage was across the water, the
-Romans could not get to her except in boats.
-But Rome had no boats. She was not on the
-sea-shore, and she knew nothing about making
-boats, nor about sailing them, if she had
-had them.</p>
-
-<p>The Carthaginians, on the other hand, had
-many, many boats, and, like all the Phenicians,
-were old and experienced sailors.</p>
-
-<p>But Rome happened to find the wreck of a
-Carthaginian ship that had been cast ashore,
-and she at once set to work to make a copy of
-it. In a remarkably short time she had built
-one ship, then another and another, until she
-had a great many ships. Then, though she was
-new at the game, she attacked the Carthaginian
-fleet.</p>
-
-<p>It would seem that the Carthaginians could
-easily have won, for the Romans knew so little
-about boats. But in sea battles, before this, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172"></span>
-fighting had been done by running into the
-enemy and ramming and sinking their ships.</p>
-
-<p>The Romans knew they were no match for
-the Carthaginians in this sort of fighting. So
-they thought up a way in which they could
-fight them as on land.</p>
-
-<p>To do this they invented a kind of big hook
-which they called a “crow.” The idea was for
-a ship to run close alongside a Carthaginian
-ship and, instead of trying to sink her, to throw
-out this big hook or “crow,” catch hold of the
-other ship, and pull both boats dose together.
-The Roman soldiers would then scramble over
-the sides into the enemy’s boat and fight them
-the same way they would on land.</p>
-
-<p>The scheme worked.</p>
-
-<p>This new kind of fighting took the Carthaginians
-by surprise, and they were no match for
-the Romans at first.</p>
-
-<p>But Rome did not have things all her own
-way by any means. The Carthaginians soon
-learned how to fight in this fashion, too. So
-Rome lost, as well as won, battles both on land
-and on sea. But at last she did win, and the
-Carthaginians were beaten. Thus ended the
-first Punic War.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_173"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c31">31</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Boot Kicks and Stamps</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">But</span> the Carthaginians were not beaten for
-good. They were only waiting for another
-chance to get even. As, however, they had been
-unsuccessful in attacking Italy from in front
-as they had been doing, they made up their
-minds to attack her from the back. Their
-scheme was to go the long way round through
-Spain and down into Italy from the north.</p>
-
-<p>In order to do this, they had first of all to
-conquer Spain so that they could get through.
-They did this, however, rather easily, for the
-Carthaginians had a very great general named
-Hannibal. But then came the great difficulty,
-to get into Italy by this back way.</p>
-
-<p>Across the top of the “boot,” at the north of
-Italy, there are the great mountains called the
-Alps. They are miles high and covered even
-in summer with ice and snow. There are crags
-and steep cliffs along which any one passing
-who made a single misstep would be dashed to
-death thousands of feet below.</p>
-
-<p>It was the Alps, therefore, that formed a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174"></span>
-bigger and better wall than any city or country
-could possibly build. Of course the Romans
-thought it impossible for any army to climb
-over such a terribly high and dangerous wall.</p>
-
-<p>Time and again there have been things that
-people call impossible to do, and then some one
-has come along and done them.</p>
-
-<p>People said it was impossible to fly.</p>
-
-<p>Then some one did it.</p>
-
-<p>People said it was impossible to cross the
-Alps with an army.</p>
-
-<p>Then Hannibal came along, and before the
-Romans knew what had happened he had done
-it. He had crossed the Alps with his army and
-was in at the back door!</p>
-
-<p>The Romans were unable to keep him from
-marching on toward their city, winning battle
-after battle as he came along. They were unable
-to prevent him marching up and down
-Italy, conquering other towns in Italy and doing
-pretty much as he pleased. It seemed as
-if Rome were beaten and she were to lose all
-of Italy.</p>
-
-<p>Now, in some games, if you can’t defend
-your own goal, it may be a good plan to try
-attacking your opponent’s goal.</p>
-
-<p>Rome thought she would try this plan. While
-Hannibal was attacking her, she herself would
-attack Carthage while its general was away and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175"></span>
-there was no strong goal-keeper to defend that
-city.</p>
-
-<p>So the Romans sent a young man named
-Scipio with an army to do this.</p>
-
-<p>First, however, Scipio went to Spain to cut
-Hannibal off from the way he had come, and
-this country Scipio reconquered.</p>
-
-<p>Then he went over to Africa to attack Carthage
-itself.</p>
-
-<p>The Carthaginians, frightened at being attacked
-with their general and his army far off
-in Italy, sent as fast as they could for Hannibal
-to come home. When at last he arrived, it was
-too late. Scipio fought a famous battle at
-Zama near Carthage, and the Carthaginians
-were beaten, beaten a second time by the
-Romans. Thus ended the second Punic War
-in 202 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> This is another easy name and
-easy date&mdash;just like a telephone number:</p>
-
-<p class="c">
-Zama&mdash;two-O-two.
-</p>
-
-<p>The Romans had won two wars against
-Carthage; you would think that they would now
-have been satisfied. But they weren’t. They
-thought they had not beaten Carthage badly
-enough. They were afraid she was not quite
-dead or that she might come to life. They
-thought there might be a little spark left that
-might start a fire if it weren’t trampled out.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_176"></span></p>
-
-<p>Now, it is bad sport to pummel your opponent
-after he is beaten, and Carthage was
-beaten&mdash;beaten, black and blue&mdash;there was no
-hope of her “coming back.” And yet a few
-years later the Romans attacked her again for
-the third and last time.</p>
-
-<p>Carthage was unable to defend herself, and
-the Romans viciously burned the city to the
-ground. It is said they even plowed over the
-land so that no trace of the city should remain,
-and sowed it with salt which prevented anything
-growing there. After that Carthage was
-never rebuilt, and now it is hard to tell even
-where the old city once was.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig44.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_177"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c32">32</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The New Champion of the World</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">You</span> can well imagine how proud all the
-Romans now were that they <i>were</i> Romans, for
-Rome was the champion fighter of the world.
-If a man could toss his head and say, “I am a
-Roman citizen,” people were always ready to
-do something for him, afraid to do him any
-harm, afraid what might happen to them if they
-did. Rome was ruler not only of Italy but of
-Spain and Africa. Like other nations before
-her, once she had started conquering, she kept
-on conquering, until by 100 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> she in her turn
-was ruler of almost all the countries bordering
-the Mediterranean Sea&mdash;all except Egypt.</p>
-
-<p>The New Champion of the World, who was
-to be champion for a great many years, was
-very businesslike and practical.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks loved beautiful things, beautiful
-buildings, beautiful sculpture, beautiful poems.
-The Romans copied the Greeks and learned
-from them how to make many beautiful things,
-but the Romans were most interested in practical
-and useful things.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178"></span></p>
-
-<p>For example, now that Rome ruled the
-world, she had to be able to send messengers
-and armies easily and quickly in every direction
-to the end of her empire and back again. So
-it was necessary for her to have roads, for of
-course there were no railroads then. Now, an
-ordinary road made by simply clearing away
-the ground gets full of deep ruts and in rainy
-weather becomes so muddy that it can hardly
-be used at all.</p>
-
-<p>So Rome set to work and built roads. These
-roads were like paved streets. Large rocks were
-placed at the bottom for a foundation, smaller
-stones placed on top, and large, flat paving-stones
-laid over all. Thousands of miles of such
-roads she built to all parts of her empire. One
-could go from almost anywhere all the way to
-Rome on paved roads. We still have an expression,
-“All roads lead to Rome.” So well were
-these roads made that many of them still exist
-to-day, two thousand years after they were built.</p>
-
-<p>The Romans also showed their practical
-minds by making two very important city improvements.
-If you live in a city, you turn on
-a spigot and you get plenty of pure water
-whenever you want it. The people in cities at
-that time, however, usually had to get their
-water both for drinking and for washing from
-wells or springs near-by. These springs and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179"></span>
-wells often became dirty and made the people
-very sick. And so every once in a while because
-of such dirty water there were those terrible
-plagues, those terribly contagious diseases like
-the one I told you about in Athens when people
-died faster than they could be buried.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig45.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Roman Aqueduct.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Romans wanted pure water, and so
-they set to work to find lakes from which they
-could get pure water. As oftentimes these
-lakes were many miles away from the city, they
-then built big pipes to carry the water all the
-way to the city. Such a pipe was not made of
-iron or terra-cotta as nowadays, but of stone
-and concrete, and was called an “aqueduct,”
-which in Latin means “water-carrier.” If this
-aqueduct had to cross a river or a valley, they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180"></span>
-built a bridge to hold it up. Many of these
-Roman aqueducts are still standing and in use
-to-day.</p>
-
-<p>Now, up to this time waste water, after it
-had been used, and also every other kind of dirt
-and refuse, was simply dumped into the street.
-This naturally made the city or town filthy and
-unhealthy and was another cause of plagues.
-But the Romans built great underground sewers
-to carry off this dirt and waste water and
-empty it into the river or into some other place
-where it would do no harm and cause no sickness.
-Nowadays, every large city has aqueducts
-and sewers as a matter of course, but the
-Romans were the first to build them on a large
-scale.</p>
-
-<p>One of the most important things that Rome
-did was to make rules that every one had to
-obey; laws, we call them. Many of these laws
-were so fair and just that some of our own laws
-to-day are copied from them.</p>
-
-<p>All the cities and towns of the Roman Empire
-had to pay money or taxes to Rome. So Rome
-became the richest city in the world. Millions
-of this money, which was brought to her, was
-spent in putting up beautiful buildings in the
-city, temples to the gods, splendid palaces for
-the rulers, public baths and huge open-air
-places called amphitheaters where the people
-could be amused.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_181"></span></p>
-
-<p>The amphitheaters were something like our
-football and baseball fields or stadiums. They
-did not have football or baseball, however. They
-had chariot-races, and deadly fights between
-men, or between men and animals. Chariots
-were small carts with large wheels drawn by
-two or by four horses and driven by a man
-standing up. Perhaps you have seen chariot-races
-in the circus.</p>
-
-<p>But the sport that the Romans enjoyed most
-of all was a Fight of Gladiators. Gladiators
-were very strong and powerful men who had
-been captured in battle by the Romans. They
-were made to fight with one another or with
-wild animals for the amusement of the crowd.
-These gladiatorial fights were very cruel, but
-the Romans enjoyed seeing blood shed. They
-liked to see one man kill another or a wild
-animal. It was so amusing. The movies would
-not have interested them half so much. Usually
-the gladiators fought until one or the other was
-killed, for the people were not, as a rule, satisfied
-until this was done.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes, however, if a gladiator, who had
-been knocked out, had shown himself particularly
-brave and a good fighter or a good sport,
-the people seated all around the amphitheater
-would turn their thumbs <i>up</i> as a sign that his
-life was to be spared by the other gladiator. So
-the winning gladiator, before killing his opponent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182"></span>
-whom he had down, would wait to see what
-the people wished. If they turned their thumbs
-<i>down</i>, it meant he was to finish the fight by killing
-his man.</p>
-
-<p>But although Rome had become such a fine
-and beautiful and healthy city in which to live,
-the rich people were getting most of the money
-that came there from all over the empire. They
-were getting richer and richer all the time, while
-the poor people, who got nothing, were getting
-poorer and poorer all the time. The Romans
-brought the people whom they conquered in
-battle to Rome and made them work for them
-without pay. These were slaves and they did
-all the work. It is said that there were more
-than twice as many slaves as Romans&mdash;two
-slaves for every Roman citizen.</p>
-
-<p>Now, Scipio, who had conquered Hannibal
-in the Punic War, had a daughter named Cornelia
-Graccha, and she had two sons. They
-were very fine boys, and Cornelia was naturally
-very proud of them.</p>
-
-<p>One day a very rich Roman woman was visiting
-Cornelia and showing off all her rings and
-necklaces and other ornaments, of which she
-had a great many and was very proud.</p>
-
-<p>When she had shown off all she had, she
-asked to see Cornelia’s jewels.</p>
-
-<p>Cornelia called to her two boys, who were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183"></span>
-playing outside, and when they came in to
-their mother she put her arms around them and
-said:</p>
-
-<p>“<i>These</i> are <i>my</i> jewels.”</p>
-
-<p>But boys who are jewels when they are young
-do not always turn out to be jewels when they
-grow up. So you may wonder how Cornelia’s
-jewels tinned out.</p>
-
-<p>When they grew up, the Gracchi, as they
-were called, saw such great extravagance among
-the rich and such great misery among the poor
-that they wanted to do something about it.
-They saw that the poor had hardly anything to
-eat and no place to live. This did not seem fair.
-So they tried to lower the price of food, so that
-the poor might be able to buy enough to eat.
-Then they tried to find some way to give the
-poor at least a small piece of land where they
-might raise a few vegetables. They were partly
-successful in bringing this about. But the rich
-people didn’t like giving up anything to the
-poor, and they killed one of the Gracchus
-brothers, and later they killed the other one,
-also. These were Cornelia’s jewels.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c33">33</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Noblest Roman of Them All</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Here’s</span> a puzzle for you:</p>
-
-<p>A man once found a very old piece of money
-that had on it the date “100 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>”</p>
-
-<p>That couldn’t be so. Why not? See if you
-can tell without looking at the answer at the
-bottom of the page.<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="label">[1]</a> People living 100 years before Christ was born could not have
-known when he was to be born and so could not put such a date
-on the coins they made.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In the year 100 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> was born in Rome a boy
-who was named Julius Cæsar.</p>
-
-<p>If you had asked him when he was born, he
-would have said in the Year 653.</p>
-
-<p>Why do you suppose?</p>
-
-<p>Because Roman boys counted time from the
-founding of Rome in 753 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>, and Cæsar was
-born 653 years after the city was founded. That
-makes it 100 years before Christ, doesn’t it?</p>
-
-<p><i>Pirates</i> seemed to be everywhere in the
-Mediterranean Sea at that time&mdash;<i>Pirates</i>. Now
-that Rome was ruler of the world, there were
-many ships carrying gold from different parts<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185"></span>
-of the empire to Rome. So the pirates sailed up
-and down, lying in wait to capture and rob these
-ships laden with gold.</p>
-
-<p>When Cæsar grew to be a young man, he was
-sent off to sea to fight these pirates, and he was
-captured by them. The pirates kept Cæsar a
-prisoner and sent to Rome saying they would not
-let him go unless Rome sent them a great deal
-of money. Cæsar knew that he would be killed
-if the money was not sent. He knew, too, that
-he might be killed, anyway. But he was not only
-not afraid but he told the pirates that if he lived
-to get back home he would return with a fleet and
-punish every one of them. When at last the
-money came they let him go, nevertheless. They
-thought Cæsar would not dare to do what he said.
-They thought he was just “talking big.” At any
-rate, they did not believe he would be able to
-catch them. Cæsar, however, kept his word, came
-back after them as he said he would do, and took
-them prisoners. Then he had them all put to
-death on the cross, which was the Roman way of
-punishing thieves.</p>
-
-<p>The far-off places of the Roman Empire were
-always fighting against Rome trying to get rid
-of her rule, and had to be kept in order by a
-general with an army. As Cæsar had shown such
-bravery in fighting the pirates he was given an
-army and sent to fight two of these far-off places&mdash;Spain<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186"></span>
-and a country north of Spain then
-known as Gaul, which is now France.</p>
-
-<p>Cæsar conquered these countries, and then he
-wrote a history of his battles in Latin, which
-of course was his own language. Nowadays this
-book, called “Cæsar’s Commentaries,” is
-usually the first book which those who study
-Latin read.</p>
-
-<p>In 55 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> Cæsar crossed over in ships to the
-island of Britain, which is now England, conquered
-it, and went back again next year in
-54 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span></p>
-
-<p>Cæsar was becoming famous for the way he
-conquered and ruled over the western part of the
-Roman Empire. Besides this, he was very
-popular with his soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>Now there was in Rome at this time another
-general named Pompey. Pompey had been successfully
-fighting in the eastern part of the
-Roman Empire while Cæsar had been fighting in
-the west. Pompey had been a great friend of
-Cæsar, but when he saw how much land Cæsar
-had conquered and how popular he was with his
-soldiers, he became very jealous of him. Notice
-how many quarrels and wars are caused simply
-by jealousy. You have heard of at least two
-already.</p>
-
-<p>So while Cæsar was away with his army
-Pompey went to the Roman Senate and persuaded<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187"></span>
-the senators to order Cæsar to give up the
-command of his army and return to Rome.</p>
-
-<p>When Cæsar received the order from the
-Senate to give up his command and return to
-Rome, he thought over the matter for some time.
-Then at last he made up his mind that he would
-return to Rome, but he would <i>not</i> give up his
-command. Instead, he decided that he and his
-army would take command of Rome itself.</p>
-
-<p>Now, there was a little stream called the
-Rubicon which separated the part of the country
-over which Cæsar was given charge from that of
-Rome. The Roman law forbade any general to
-cross this stream with an army ready to fight&mdash;this
-was the line beyond which he must not pass,
-for the Romans were afraid that if a general with
-an army got too close to Rome he might make
-himself king.</p>
-
-<p>When Cæsar decided not to obey the Senate,
-he crossed this stream&mdash;the Rubicon&mdash;with his
-army and marched on to Rome.</p>
-
-<p>People now speak of any dividing line from
-danger as “the Rubicon” and say that a person
-“crosses the Rubicon” when he takes a step from
-which there is no turning back, when he starts
-something difficult or dangerous which he must
-finish.</p>
-
-<p>When Pompey heard that Cæsar was coming
-he took to his heels and fled to Greece. In a few<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188"></span>
-days Cæsar had made himself head not only of
-Rome but of all Italy. Cæsar then went after
-Pompey in Greece and in a battle with his army
-beat him badly.</p>
-
-<p>Now that Pompey was out of the way, Cæsar
-was the chief ruler of the whole of the Roman
-Empire.</p>
-
-<p>Egypt did not yet belong to Rome. So Cæsar
-next went there and conquered that country.
-Now, in Egypt there was ruling a beautiful queen
-named Cleopatra. Cleopatra was so charming
-that she seemed able to make every one fall in
-love with her. Cleopatra flirted with Cæsar and
-so fascinated him that he almost forgot everything
-else except making love to her. So although
-he had won Egypt he made Cleopatra
-queen over that country.</p>
-
-<p>Just at this time some people in the far eastern
-part of the empire started a war to get rid of the
-rule of Rome. Cæsar left Egypt, traveled
-rapidly to the place where the enemy were, made
-quick work of conquering them, then sent back
-the news of his victory to Rome in the most
-laconic (do you remember what that means?)
-description ever given of a battle. There were
-only three words in the message. Although the
-messenger could have carried three thousand as
-easily as three words, Cæsar sent a message that
-would have been short even for a telegram. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189"></span>
-wrote, “Veni, vidi, vici,” which means, “I came,
-I saw, I conquered.”</p>
-
-<p>When Cæsar at last got back to Rome, the
-people wanted to make him king, or said they
-did. Cæsar was already more than king, for he
-was head of the whole Roman Empire. But he
-wasn’t called king, for there had been no kings
-since 509 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>, when Tarquin was driven out.
-The Romans had been afraid of kings and hated
-them, or were supposed to hate them.</p>
-
-<p>A few of the people thought that Cæsar was
-getting too much power and believed it would
-be a terrible thing to make him a king. They,
-therefore, decided on a plot to prevent such a
-thing happening. One of these plotters was a
-man named Brutus who had been Cæsar’s very
-best friend.</p>
-
-<p>One day when Cæsar was expected to visit the
-Roman Senate they lay in wait for him until he
-should appear&mdash;in the same way I have seen boys
-hide around the corner for some schoolmate,
-against whom they had a grudge, until he should
-come out of school.</p>
-
-<p>Cæsar came along, and just as he was about
-to enter the Senate the plotters crowded around
-him, and one after another they stabbed him.</p>
-
-<p>Cæsar, taken by surprise, tried to defend himself;
-but all he had was his stylus, which was a
-kind of pen he used for writing, and he could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190"></span>
-not do much with that, in spite of a famous saying,
-“The pen is mightier than the sword.”</p>
-
-<p>When at last Cæsar saw Brutus&mdash;his best
-friend&mdash;strike at him, his heart seemed broken
-and he gave up. Then, exclaiming in Latin,
-“Et tu, Brute!” which means, “And thou, O
-Brutus!” he fell down dead. This was in 44 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>Antony, one of Cæsar’s true friends, made a
-speech over Cæsar’s dead body, and his words so
-stirred the crowd of people that gathered round
-that they would have torn the murderers to pieces
-if they could have caught them.</p>
-
-<p>Shakspere has written a play called “Julius
-Cæsar,” and the month of July is named after
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Now whom do you suppose Antony called
-“The Noblest Roman of Them All”?</p>
-
-<p>“Julius Cæsar”?</p>
-
-<p>No, you’re wrong. Brutus, the friend who
-stabbed Cæsar, was called, “The Noblest Roman
-of Them All.”</p>
-
-<p>Why, do you suppose?</p>
-
-<p>You’ll have to read Antony’s speech at the
-end of the play to find out.</p>
-
-<p>Cæsar was pronounced in Latin “Kaiser”; and
-in later years the rulers of Germany were called
-this, and those of another country by the
-shortened form, “Czar.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_191"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c34">34</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">An Emperor Who Was Made a God</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">A man</span> is famous who has a town or a street
-named after him.</p>
-
-<p>Will you ever do anything great enough to
-have even an alley named after you?</p>
-
-<p>But just suppose a month, one of the twelve
-months of the year, was given your name!</p>
-
-<p>Millions upon millions of people would then
-write and speak your name forever!</p>
-
-<p>But I’m going to tell you about a man who
-not only had a month named after him but who
-was made a god!</p>
-
-<p>After Cæsar had been killed, three men ruled
-the Roman Empire. One of these three men
-was Antony, the friend of Cæsar, who made the
-famous speech over his dead body. The second
-was Cæsar’s adopted son, who was named
-Octavius. The name of the third you don’t need
-to know now, for Antony and Octavius soon got
-rid of him. Then no sooner had they forced
-him out than each of these two began to plot to
-get the share of the other.</p>
-
-<p>Antony’s share, over which he ruled, was the
-eastern part of the empire. The capital of this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192"></span>
-part was Alexandria in Egypt, and so Antony
-went there to live.</p>
-
-<p>In Egypt Antony fell in love with Cleopatra,
-as Cæsar before him had done, and he finally
-married her.</p>
-
-<p>Octavius, in the west, which was his share, then
-made war on Antony and Cleopatra together,
-and in the end beat them both. Antony felt so
-bad at being beaten by Octavius that he committed
-suicide.</p>
-
-<p>His widow, Cleopatra, thereupon, flirted with
-Octavius as she had with Julius Cæsar and
-Antony, hoping to make him also fall in love
-with her and so win him in that way.</p>
-
-<p>But it was no use. Octavius was a different
-kind of man from both Julius Cæsar and Antony.
-He was cold-blooded and businesslike. He had
-no heart for love-making. He would not let a
-woman charm him or turn him aside from his
-plan, which was to be the greatest man in the
-world!</p>
-
-<p>Cleopatra saw that it was no use trying her
-tricks on him. Then she heard that she was going
-to be taken back to Rome and paraded through
-the streets, as was done with any other prisoners
-taken in battle. She could not stand such a shame
-as that, and so she made up her mind she would
-not be taken back to Rome.</p>
-
-<p>Now, in Egypt there is a kind of snake called<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193"></span>
-an asp, which is deadly poisonous. Taking one
-of these asps in her hand, she uncovered her breast
-and let it bite her, and so she died.</p>
-
-<p>Octavius was now ruler over all the countries
-that belonged to Rome, and when he returned
-home to that city, the people hailed him “Emperor.”
-He then gave up the name Octavius and
-had himself called “Augustus Cæsar,” which is
-like saying, “His Majesty, Cæsar.” This was
-in 27 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Rome had got rid of her kings in
-509. From now on she had emperors, who were
-more than kings, for they ruled over many
-countries.</p>
-
-<p>Octavius, now with his name changed to
-Augustus Cæsar, was only thirty-six years old
-when he became sole master of the Roman world.
-Rome was the great capital of this vast empire.
-The city of Rome had probably as many people
-as New York City proper now has, and the
-Roman Empire had perhaps as many people as
-the United States has at present.</p>
-
-<p>Augustus set to work to make Rome a beautiful
-city. He tore down a great many of the old
-buildings made of brick and put up in their place
-a remarkable number of new and handsome buildings
-of marble. And so Augustus always
-bragged that he found Rome brick and left it
-marble.</p>
-
-<p>One of the finest buildings in Rome, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194"></span>
-Pantheon, was built. Pantheon means the temple
-of all the gods. Do not mix this with the
-Parthenon in Athens, for the two buildings are
-quite different, and though the names look something
-alike and sound something alike, they mean
-quite different things; Parthenon is from the
-goddess Athene Parthenos; Pantheon is from the
-two words “Pan theon,” which means “all gods.”</p>
-
-<p>The Pantheon has a dome built of concrete.
-This dome is shaped like a bowl turned upside
-down, and in the top of the dome is a round
-opening called an eye. Though this eye is uncovered,
-the height is so great above the floor that
-it is said that rain coming through the eye does
-not wet the floor beneath but evaporates before
-reaching it.</p>
-
-<p>So magnificent did the city become with all
-these wonderful buildings, and so permanently
-did it seem to be built, that it was known as The
-Eternal City and is still so spoken of.</p>
-
-<p>There was a public square in Rome called the
-Forum. Here markets were held and the people
-came together for all sorts of things. Around
-the Forum were erected temples to the gods,
-court-houses, and other public buildings. These
-court-houses were something like the temples that
-the Greeks built, only the columns were put on
-the inside of the building instead of on the outside.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_195"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig46.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Roman forum.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Triumphal arches also were erected to celebrate
-great victories. When a conquering hero returned
-from the war, he and his army passed
-through this arch in a triumphal parade.</p>
-
-<p>There had been in Rome a great amphitheater
-that is supposed to have held more people than
-any structure that has ever been built&mdash;two
-hundred thousand, it is said, or more than all the
-people who live in some good-sized cities. This
-was called the Circus Maximus. It was at last
-torn down to make room for other buildings.</p>
-
-<p>Another amphitheater was the Colosseum, but
-this was not built until some time after Augustus<span class="pagenum" id="Page_196"></span>
-had died. It held about the same number as the
-largest stadium in this country does to-day.
-Here were held those fights between men, called
-gladiators, and wild animals that I have already
-told you about. It is still standing, and, though
-it is in ruins, you can sit in the same seats where
-the old Roman emperors did, see the dens where
-the wild animals were kept, the doors where they
-were let into the arena, and even bloody marks
-that are said to be the stains made by the slain
-men and beasts.</p>
-
-<p>So many famous writers lived at the time of
-Augustus that this has been called the Augustan
-Age. Two of the best known Latin poets, whom
-every school-boy now reads after he has finished
-“Cæsar’s Commentaries,” lived at this time.
-These poets were Vergil and Horace. Vergil
-wrote the “Æneid,” which told of the wanderings
-of Æneas, the Trojan, who settled in Italy,
-and was the great-great-great-grandfather of
-Romulus and Remus. Horace wrote many short
-poems called Odes. They were love-songs of
-shepherds and shepherdesses and songs of the
-farm and country life. People liked his songs,
-and many still name their sons after him.</p>
-
-<p>When Augustus Cæsar died, he was made a
-god, because he had done so much for Rome;
-temples were built in which he was worshiped,
-and the month of August was named after him.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_197"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c35">35</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">“Thine is the Kingdom, the Power, and<br />
-the Glory”</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Augustus Cæsar</span> had been Ruler of the
-World.</p>
-
-<p>He had found Rome brick and left it marble.</p>
-
-<p>He had had a month named after him, and</p>
-
-<p>He had been made a god!</p>
-
-<p>Surely no one could ever be greater than he!
-Yet a greater than he was living at the very same
-time&mdash;a greater ruler of a greater kingdom with
-greater power and greater glory, although
-Augustus himself knew nothing about Him and
-lived and died without ever having heard of Him.
-This Man was born in the eastern part of Augustus’s
-empire in a tiny little village called
-Bethlehem, and His name was Jesus Christ.</p>
-
-<p>For many, many years after Christ was born
-no one except His family and friends knew or
-cared anything about His birth or paid the slightest
-attention to it.</p>
-
-<p>Christ was a Jew, the son of a carpenter. As
-a boy and young man He led a very simple and
-quiet life working in His father’s shop. He did<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198"></span>
-not begin to preach until He was more than thirty
-years old. Then He went about teaching the
-people what we learn to-day as the Christian
-religion.</p>
-
-<p>He taught that there was one God over all.</p>
-
-<p>He taught brotherly love, that one should love
-one’s neighbor as oneself.</p>
-
-<p>He taught the golden rule; that is, “do unto
-others as you would be done by.”</p>
-
-<p>He taught that there was a life after death
-for which this short life on earth was only a
-preparation; that therefore you should “lay up
-your treasures in heaven” by doing good works
-here.</p>
-
-<p>The poorer Jews listened to Christ and believed
-what He taught them. But they thought
-He was going to set them free from the rule of
-the Romans, which they hated. The Jewish
-priests, however, were afraid of what Christ
-taught. He was teaching some things that were
-just the opposite of what they themselves taught.
-So they plotted to have Him put to death.</p>
-
-<p>Now, the Jews could not put Christ to death
-without the permission of the Roman ruler of
-that part of the empire where Christ lived. This
-ruler was named Pilate. So they went to Pilate
-and told him that Christ was trying to make
-himself king. Christ of course meant and always
-said that He was a heavenly ruler and not an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199"></span>
-earthly king. The Jews knew that Pilate would
-not care at all what religion Christ taught.
-There were all sorts of religions in the Roman
-Empire&mdash;those that believed in mythological
-gods and those that believed in idols and those
-that believed in the sun, moon, and so on&mdash;one
-more new religion made little difference to the
-Romans, and Christ would not be put to death
-simply for teaching another. But the Jews knew
-if they could make Pilate believe that Christ was
-trying to make himself a king, that was a thing
-He could be crucified for. Pilate did not believe
-much in what the Jews said against Christ. It
-was a small matter to him, one way or the other,
-however. But he wanted to please the Jews, so
-he told them to go ahead and put Christ to death
-if they wanted to. So He was crucified.</p>
-
-<p>Christ had chosen twelve men to teach what
-He told them. These twelve men were called
-apostles. After Christ was crucified these
-apostles went through the land teaching the
-people what Christ had taught them. Those who
-believed in and followed His teachings were
-called disciples of Christ or Christians. The
-apostles were teachers; the disciples were pupils.</p>
-
-<p>The Romans thought these disciples of Christ
-were trying to start a new world empire, and
-that they were against Rome and the emperor and
-should be arrested and put in prison. So the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200"></span>
-Christians usually held their meetings in secret
-places, sometimes even underground, so that they
-would not be found and arrested.</p>
-
-<p>But after a while the leaders of the Christians
-became bolder. They came out of their secret
-places and taught and preached openly, although
-they knew they would sooner or later be thrown
-into prison and perhaps killed. Indeed, so
-strongly did they believe in the teachings of
-Christ that they seemed even glad to die for His
-sake, as He had died on the cross for them.</p>
-
-<p>In the first hundred years after Christ, there
-were a great many Christians put to death because
-they were thought traitors. Christians who
-died for Christ’s sake were called martyrs.
-The first martyr was named Stephen. He was
-stoned to death about 33 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></p>
-
-<p>One of the men who helped in putting Stephen
-to death was a man named Saul. Saul was a
-Roman citizen and, like other Roman citizens,
-was proud of that fact. He thought the Christians
-were enemies of his country, and he did
-everything he could to have the Christians
-punished. Then, all of a sudden, Saul had a
-change of heart and came to believe in the religion
-of the very people whom he had been fighting.
-Whatever Saul did or whatever he believed he
-did or believed with his whole soul. Though he
-had never seen Christ, he became one of the chief<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201"></span>
-Christians and then was made an apostle and was
-called by his Roman name, Paul.</p>
-
-<p>Paul preached the new religion far and wide
-just as earnestly as he had fought against it at
-first. Then he, too, was condemned to death.
-Paul, however, was, as I have said, a Roman
-citizen, and a Roman citizen could not be put to
-death by the ordinary judges who were not
-Roman citizens nor in the ordinary way by crucifying.
-So Paul appealed to the emperor.
-Nevertheless, he was put in prison in Rome and
-afterward beheaded. And so he is called St.
-Paul.</p>
-
-<p>Peter was another of the chief apostles. Christ
-had said to him, “I will give unto thee the keys
-of the kingdom of heaven.”<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> Peter, too, was
-thrown into prison, and was sentenced to be
-crucified. But he asked to be crucified with his
-head downward. He thought it too great an
-honor to die in just the same way as his Lord.
-On this spot in Rome where Peter was put to
-death was built long afterward the largest church
-in the world, the Cathedral of St. Peter.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="label">[2]</a> Matthew, xvi, 19.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>As everything before Christ’s birth is called
-<span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> and everything since His birth is called <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>,
-you would naturally suppose that 0 would be the
-date of His birth.</p>
-
-<p>But it was not until some five hundred years<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202"></span>
-later that people began to date from Christ’s
-birth. And then, when they did begin to date
-from this event, they made a mistake. It was
-found out that Christ was really born four years
-before He was supposed to have been born&mdash;that
-is, in 4 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>&mdash;but when the mistake was found
-out, it was then too late to change.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig47.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_203"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c36">36</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Blood and Thunder</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">I once</span> had a big Newfoundland dog, and he
-was one of the best friends a boy ever had. I
-don’t know who it was that named him; he was
-named before I got him; but whoever it was must
-either have been ignorant of history or a bad
-chooser of names. He was called Nero, and even
-a dog would have hated such a name, had he
-known whose it once was.</p>
-
-<p>Every good story usually has a villain to make
-it interesting. Nero is the prize villain of history.
-He was a Roman emperor who lived not long
-after Christ, and he is considered the most
-terribly cruel and wicked ruler that ever lived.</p>
-
-<p>He killed his mother.</p>
-
-<p>He killed his wife.</p>
-
-<p>He killed his teacher, who was named Seneca.
-He was not a bad teacher, either.</p>
-
-<p>We think that Nero ordered both St. Peter and
-St. Paul put to death, for they were executed at
-this same time.</p>
-
-<p>Nero seemed to take great pleasure in making
-others suffer. He loved to see men torn to pieces
-by wild beasts; it amused him greatly. I have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204"></span>
-seen boys who liked to throw stones at dogs just
-to hear them yelp, or tear the wings off of butterflies.
-Such boys must have some Nero in them;
-don’t you think?</p>
-
-<p>If a man was a Christian, that gave Nero
-an excuse to torture him horribly. Nero had
-some of the Christians wrapped in tar and
-pitch, then placed around the garden of his
-palace and set fire to, as if they were torches. It
-is even said that Nero set Rome on fire just for
-the fun of seeing the city burn. Then he sat
-in a tower and, while he watched the blaze spreading,
-played on a harp. The saying is that “Nero
-fiddled while Rome burned”; but there were no
-fiddles at that time, and so we know it must have
-been a harp. The fire burned day and night for
-a whole week and destroyed more than half of
-the city. Then Nero laid the blame on the Christians,
-who, he said, started the fire. Did you ever
-blame another for something you had done?</p>
-
-<p>Some think Nero really was crazy, and we
-hope he was, for it is hard to think any human
-being who was not crazy could act as he did.</p>
-
-<p>Nero built himself an immense palace and
-overlaid it extravagantly with gold and mother-of-pearl.
-It was known as Nero’s House of
-Gold. At its front door he put up a colossal
-statue of himself in bronze fifty feet high. Both
-the House of Gold and the statue were later<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205"></span>
-destroyed, but the Colosseum, which was built a
-few years afterward, was named Colosseum from
-this “coloss-al” statue of Nero that was once
-there.</p>
-
-<p>Nero was very conceited. He thought he could
-write poetry and sing beautifully. Although he
-did both very badly, he liked to show off, and no
-one dared to laugh at him. Had any one been
-so bold as to make fun of him or even to smile,
-he would have had that person put to death
-instantly.</p>
-
-<p>Even the Roman people who were not Christians
-feared and hated Nero. So they voted to
-have him put out of the way. But before they
-had a chance to do anything, Nero heard what
-they were planning, and in order to save himself
-the disgrace of being put to death by his own
-people he decided to kill himself. He was such
-a coward, however, that he couldn’t quite bring
-himself to plunge the sword into his heart. But as
-he hesitated, holding the sword to his breast and
-whimpering, his slave, impatient to finish the job,
-shoved the blade in. Thus was Rome rid of its
-worst ruler.</p>
-
-<p>So much for the first part of this “blood and
-thunder” story. Here is the second part:</p>
-
-<p>The Jews in Jerusalem didn’t like to have
-Rome rule over them. They never had. But
-they were afraid to do much about it. But in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206"></span>
-the Year 70 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> they rebelled; that is, they said
-they would no longer obey Rome or pay her
-money. The emperor sent his son, who was
-named Titus, with an army to put an end to the
-rebellion, to punish them as if they were disobedient
-children.</p>
-
-<p>The Jews crowded into their city of Jerusalem
-to make a last stand against the Romans. But
-Titus destroyed that city completely and the
-Jews in it, a million of them, it is supposed. Then
-he robbed the great temple of all its valuable
-ornaments and brought them back to Rome.</p>
-
-<p>To celebrate this victory over Jerusalem an
-arch was built in the Forum at Rome, and
-through this arch Titus and his army marched in
-triumph. On this arch was carved a procession,
-showing Titus leaving the city of Jerusalem with
-these ornaments. Chief among these ornaments
-was a golden seven-branched candlestick he had
-taken from the temple. To-day we see many
-copies in brass of this famous seven-branched
-candlestick. Perhaps you may have one in your
-home on the mantelpiece.</p>
-
-<p>The city was rebuilt later, but most of the Jews
-who were left have ever since been living in all
-the other countries of the earth.</p>
-
-<p>Titus became emperor, but in spite of the way
-in which he had massacred so many Jews, he was
-not such a bad emperor as you might suppose.
-He thought he was doing right in killing these<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207"></span>
-men because they had rebelled against Rome.
-But Titus had a rule of life, much like that the
-Boy Scouts now have. This rule was, “Do at
-least one good turn a day.”</p>
-
-<p>The third part of this story is the “thunder.”</p>
-
-<p>In Italy there is a volcano named Vesuvius.
-You remember that “volcano” came from the
-name “Vulcan,” the blacksmith god, and people
-imagined that his forge in the heart of a volcano
-made the smoke and flame and ashes. From time
-to time this volcano, Vesuvius, thunders and
-quakes and spouts forth fire and throws up stones
-and gas and boils over with red-hot melted rock
-called lava. It is the hot inside of the earth exploding.
-Yet people build houses and towns
-near-by and live even on the sides of the volcano.
-Every once in a while their homes are destroyed
-when the volcano quakes or pours forth fire. Yet
-the same people go right back and build again
-in the same place!</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig48.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Vesuvius erupting, Pompeii in foreground.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>There was at the time of Titus a little town<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208"></span>
-named Pompeii near the base of Vesuvius.
-Wealthy Romans used to go there to spend the
-summer. Suddenly, one day in the year 79 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>,
-just after Titus had become emperor, Vesuvius
-began to spout forth fire. The people living in
-Pompeii rushed for their lives, but they hadn’t
-time to get away. They were smothered with the
-gases from the volcano before they hardly had
-time to move and, falling down dead, were buried
-deep in a boiling rain of fire and ashes, just where
-they happened to be when the eruption, as it was
-called, took place.</p>
-
-<p>The people and their houses lay buried beneath
-the ashes for nearly two thousand years, and in
-the course of time every one had forgotten there
-ever had been such a place. People came back
-as they had before and built houses over the spot
-where every one had forgotten there once was
-a city. Then one day a man was digging a well
-over the spot where Pompeii had once been. He
-dug up a man’s hand&mdash;no, not a real hand, but
-the hand of a statue. He told others, and they
-set to work and dug and dug to see what else
-they could find until the whole town was dug out.
-And now one can go to Pompeii and see it very
-much as it was in 79 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, before it had ever been
-destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>There are houses of the Romans who went
-there to spend their vacations. There are shops<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209"></span>
-and temples and palaces and public baths and the
-theater and the market place or forum. The
-streets were paved with blocks of lava, once
-melted stone. They still show ruts which were
-worn into them by the wheels of the chariots that
-the Romans used to drive. Stepping-stones were
-placed at some crossings, so that in case of heavy
-rains, when the streets were full of water, one
-could cross on them from curb to curb. These
-stepping-stones are still there. The floors of the
-houses were made of bits of colored stone to form
-pictures. They are still there. In the vestibule
-of one house, there is in the floor a mosaic picture
-of a dog. Under it are the Latin words, “Cave
-canem.” What does that mean? Can you guess?
-It means, “Look out for the dog!” That was a
-Roman’s idea of a joke two thousand years ago!</p>
-
-<p>The bones of the people who were caught and
-buried alive in the ashes were also found. There
-were also found bronze ornaments worn by the
-women, vases that decorated the home, lamps
-which they used to light the houses, pots and pans
-and dishes. Beds and chairs were found just as
-they had been buried. Still more remarkable,
-cakes were found on the table, a loaf of bread
-half eaten, meat ready to be cooked, a kettle on
-the fire with the ashes still underneath it&mdash;beans
-and peas and <i>one egg</i> unbroken&mdash;probably the
-oldest egg in the world!</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_210"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c37">37</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Good Emperor and a Bad Son</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever said, “I don’t care,” when you
-really did care?</p>
-
-<p>I have. Every one has.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have been naughty and have been
-told you could have no dessert or must go to bed
-early, and you tossed your head and said, “I
-don’t care.”</p>
-
-<p>Well, once upon a time there was a society or
-club formed of grown-up people who said they
-weren’t ever going to care what happened to
-them; whether it was good or whether it was bad
-would make no difference. I should call them
-the “Don’t Care Club,” but they called themselves
-“Stoics,” and they thought the way to be
-good was “not to care.”</p>
-
-<p>If a Stoic’s house burned down, he would say
-to himself and try to make himself believe, “I
-don’t care; it doesn’t matter.”</p>
-
-<p>If some one gave him a million dollars, he
-would say, “I don’t care; it doesn’t matter.”</p>
-
-<p>If he was told by the doctor he was going to
-die next week, he would say, “I don’t care; it
-doesn’t matter.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_211"></span></p>
-
-<p>This Society of Stoics was started by a Greek
-philosopher named Zeno.</p>
-
-<p>Zeno lived in Athens later than those philosophers,
-Socrates and Plato, whom you have already
-heard about. Zeno said that the only way
-to be good and the only way to be happy was
-not to care for pleasure and not to mind pain or
-suffering but calmly to put up with everything,
-no matter how unpleasant or disagreeable it was,
-and the Stoics believed him. Even to-day people
-who bear troubles and pain and hardships without
-a murmur are called stoics.</p>
-
-<p>One of the chief members of the society was a
-Roman emperor.</p>
-
-<p>Rome’s worst emperor, Nero, had been dead
-a hundred years when there came to the throne
-this new emperor, who was just as good as Nero
-was bad. This emperor was named Marcus
-Aurelius. Although he was so very good and
-pious, he was not a Christian. Indeed, Marcus
-Aurelius treated the Christians terribly, as they
-had been treated terribly by the previous emperors,
-for he thought them traitors to the empire.</p>
-
-<p>At this time most of the Romans had very little
-religion of any sort. They were not Christians,
-but neither did they put much faith in their own
-gods, Jupiter and Juno and the rest. They
-honored them because they were brought up to
-honor them and because they thought if they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212"></span>
-didn’t honor them they might have bad luck, so
-they took no chances. But instead of believing
-in such gods, people usually believed in the teachings
-of some wise man or philosopher and obeyed
-more or less the rules he made. Zeno was one of
-these philosophers, and the Stoics were the members
-of this society.</p>
-
-<p>Although Marcus Aurelius was an emperor, he
-would rather have been a Stoic philosopher or a
-priest. Although he had to be a soldier and a
-general, he would rather have been a writer.
-When he was off, fighting with his army, he
-carried his writing-materials with him, and he
-would go to his tent at night and write out his
-thoughts. These thoughts he called his “Meditations.”
-Here is one of the things he wrote:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquota">
-
-<p>When you find you do not want to get up early in the
-morning, make this short speech to yourself. I am getting
-up now to do the business of a man. Was I made to do
-nothing but doze and keep warm under the covers?</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>That was written long years ago, yet your
-father might have told you the same thing this
-morning.</p>
-
-<p>People read this book of Marcus Aurelius to-day,
-either in the Greek in which it was written
-or translated into English.</p>
-
-<p>A great many of Marcus Aurelius’ sayings
-seem almost as if they might have been in the
-Bible. Indeed, some people keep his book by
-their bedside as if it were a Bible.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_213"></span></p>
-
-<p>One of his rules was, “Forgive your enemies,”
-and he seemed almost glad to have enemies so
-that he might have a chance to forgive them. Indeed,
-he took such a special delight in forgiving
-his enemies that he even went out of his way to
-do so. Though Marcus Aurelius was not a Christian,
-nevertheless he was more Christian in the
-way he acted than some of the later emperors
-who were supposed to be Christians.</p>
-
-<p>But like many people who are very good
-themselves, Marcus Aurelius was unable to
-bring up his son to be so. His son was named
-Commodus, and Commodus was just as bad as
-his father was good. He may have been bored
-when a child by too many of his father’s instructions,
-for when he grew up and was able to
-choose for himself and do as he pleased, instead
-of following Zeno and joining the Stoics, he
-joined the society of another philosopher called
-Epicurus.</p>
-
-<p>Epicurus had lived about the same time as
-Zeno. But he had taught what at first seems
-almost the opposite of what Zeno taught. Epicurus
-said that the chief end and aim of man
-and the only good in the world was pleasure;
-<i>but</i>, said he, the pleasure must be of the right
-kind. Nowadays people who are very fond of
-eating nice things, whose whole thought in life
-is the pleasure of eating, are called “epicures.”</p>
-
-<p>Commodus’s one thought was pleasure, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_214"></span>
-the worst kind of pleasure at that. A friend of
-mine thought Marcus Aurelius was such a fine
-man that he named his son after him, “Marcus
-Aurelius Jones,” but when the son grew up he
-was not at all like his namesake. The name
-“Commodus” would have suited him much better,
-for instead of being good and pious, he thought
-of nothing but pleasure and he was so bad that
-he ended in jail.</p>
-
-<p>Commodus thought nothing of giving his
-people a good government; he only thought of
-giving himself a good time. He was an athlete
-and had beautiful muscles and a handsome figure,
-of which he was so proud that he had a
-statue made of himself. The statue showed him
-as the strong and muscular god Hercules.
-Commodus made the people worship him as if
-he were this god. Just to show off his muscles
-and his muscular ability, he himself took part in
-prize-fights&mdash;quite bad taste for an emperor.
-He poisoned or killed any one who found fault
-with or criticized him. He led a wild and dissipated
-life, but at last he met the end he deserved.
-He was strangled to death by a
-wrestler.</p>
-
-<p>Lycurgus would have said again:</p>
-
-<p>“I told you so.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_215"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c38">38</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">I &mdash; H &mdash; &mdash; S &mdash; &mdash; &mdash; &mdash; V &mdash; &mdash; &mdash; &mdash; &mdash;</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> name of this story I’m going to put at
-the end, for you wouldn’t know what it means,
-anyway, until you have heard the story, and so
-it’s no use looking ahead.</p>
-
-<p>All through the years since Christ was crucified,
-those who said they believed in Christ had
-been terribly treated&mdash;“persecuted,” we call it&mdash;because
-they were Christians. They had been
-flogged; they had been stoned; they had been
-torn with iron hooks; they had been roasted and
-burned to death. Yet, strange as it may seem,
-in spite of this terrible treatment, more and more
-people were becoming Christians every day.
-They believed so strongly in life after death, and
-they believed that they would be so much happier
-after death if they died for Christ’s sake, that
-they seemed even glad to suffer and to be killed.
-But at last the emperor himself put a stop to all
-these persecutions. This is how it happened.</p>
-
-<p>About the year 300 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> Rome had an emperor
-by the name of Constantine. Constantine was
-not a Christian. His gods were the old Roman
-gods. He probably did not put much faith in
-them, however.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_216"></span></p>
-
-<p>Well, once upon a time Constantine was
-fighting with an enemy when he dreamed one
-night that he saw in the sky a flaming cross.
-Beneath this cross were written the Latin
-words, “In hoc signo vinces.” In English this
-is, “In this sign thou shalt conquer.” Constantine
-thought this meant that if he carried the
-Christian cross into battle he would conquer.
-He thought it would at least be worth while to
-give the Christian God a trial. So he had his
-soldiers carry the cross, and he did win the battle.
-Then immediately he became a Christian himself
-and asked every one in the Roman Empire to
-become a Christian also. From that time on, all
-the Roman emperors who came after Constantine,
-all except one, were Christians.</p>
-
-<p>To celebrate Constantine’s victory the Roman
-Senate built a triumphal arch in the Forum of
-Rome and called it the Arch of Constantine. If
-has three openings; the Arch of Titus has
-only one.</p>
-
-<p>Constantine’s mother was named Helena.
-She was one of the very first to become a Christian
-and be baptized. Then she gave up her
-life to Christian works and built churches at
-Bethlehem and on the Mount of Olives. It is
-said that she went to Palestine and found the
-actual cross on which Christ had been crucified
-three hundred years before and sent part of it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217"></span>
-to Rome. When she died she was made a saint,
-and so she is now called St. Helena.</p>
-
-<p>Constantine built a church over the spot
-where St. Peter was supposed to have been crucified.
-Many years later, this church was torn
-down so that a much larger and grander church
-to St. Peter might be built there.</p>
-
-<p>But Constantine did not care for Rome. He
-preferred to live in another city in the Eastern
-part of the Roman Empire. This city was
-called Byzantium. So he moved from Rome to
-Byzantium and made that city his capital.
-Byzantium was called New Rome, and then the
-name was changed to Constantine’s city. In
-Greek, the word for “city” is “polis.” We see
-the word used in Anna<i>polis</i> and Indiana<i>polis</i>.
-So Constantine’s City became Constantinepolis,
-and then shortened to Constantinople.</p>
-
-<p>Hardly had the Roman Empire become
-Christian before a quarrel arose between those
-Christians who believed one thing and those who
-believed another. The chief thing they quarreled
-about was whether Christ was equal to God the
-Father or not equal to Him. Constantine called
-the two disagreeing sides together at a place
-called Nicæa to settle the question. There the
-leaders of each side argued the matter hotly.
-Finally, it was decided that the Christian Church
-should believe that God the Son and God the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218"></span>
-Father were equal. Then they agreed to put
-what they believed in words. This was called a
-creed, which means “believe,” and because it
-was made at Nicæa it was known as the Nicene
-Creed, which many Christians still say every
-Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>Before the time of Constantine, there were
-no weekly holidays. Sunday was no different
-from any other day. People worked or did just
-the same things on Sunday as they did on other
-days. Constantine thought Christians should
-have one day a week for the worship of God&mdash;a
-“holy day,” or holiday, as we call it&mdash;so he
-made Sunday the Christian day of rest, a “holy
-day” such as Saturday was for the Jews.</p>
-
-<p>But although Constantine was head of the
-Roman Empire, there was another man whom
-all Christians throughout the world looked to as
-their spiritual head. This man was the Bishop
-of Rome. In Latin he was called “papa,”
-which means the same thing in Latin that it does
-in English, “father.” So the bishop of Rome
-was called “papa,” and this became “pope.” St
-Peter was supposed to have been the first
-Bishop of Rome. For many centuries the pope
-was the spiritual ruler of all Christians everywhere,
-no matter in what country they lived.</p>
-
-<p>As now you know what the name of this story
-means I’m putting it here:</p>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">In Hoc Signo Vinces</p>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_219"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c39">39</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Our Tough Ancestors</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">But</span> Rome with the Roman Empire had had
-her day. She had risen as high as she could.
-It was her turn to fall. She had become as
-large as she ever was to be. It was her turn to
-be conquered. But you cannot guess what
-people were to do the conquering and to be next
-in power.</p>
-
-<p>When I was a boy there was a gang of toughs
-who lived down by the gas-house and railroad
-tracks. They were ragged, unwashed, unschooled,
-but terrible fighters. Their leader
-was known to us as Mug Mike, and the very
-mention of him and his gang struck terror to
-our souls. Every now and then they paid our
-neighborhood a visit. Once we had offered
-fight, but with such terrible results that ever
-after at word of their approach the alarm would
-be sounded and we would hide indoors.</p>
-
-<p>For ages there had been such a gang of half-civilized
-toughs living on the northern borders
-of the Roman Empire. Every now and then
-they tried to cross over the border into the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220"></span>
-Roman lands, and the Romans had to be constantly
-fighting them to keep them back where
-they belonged. Julius Cæsar had fought with
-them. So had Marcus Aurelius and so had Constantine.
-These wild and warlike people were
-called Teutons and&mdash;you may be shocked to
-hear it, but&mdash;they are the ancestors of most of us!</p>
-
-<p>They had light hair and blue eyes; that is,
-they were what we call blonds. The Greeks
-and Romans and other people who lived around
-the Mediterranean Sea had black hair and dark
-eyes. They were what we call brunettes. If
-you have light or brown hair, you are probably
-a Teuton. If you have black hair, you are probably
-not.</p>
-
-<p>The Teutons were white people, and they
-were Aryans, but they were uneducated toughs
-and could neither read nor write.</p>
-
-<p>They wore skins of animals instead of clothes
-made of cloth. They lived in huts made of
-wood, sometimes of branches woven together&mdash;like
-a large basket. The women raised vegetables
-and took care of the cows and horses.
-The men did the hunting and fighting and
-blacksmithing. Blacksmithing was very important,
-for the blacksmith made the swords and
-spears with which they fought and the tools with
-which they worked. That is why the name
-“Smith” was so honored among them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_221"></span></p>
-
-<p>When the men went to battle they wore the
-heads of animals they had killed, an ox’s head,
-horns and all, or the head
-of a wolf or bear or fox.
-This was to make themselves
-look fierce and to
-frighten the enemy.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig49.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Teuton warrior.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><i>Bravery</i> was the chief
-thing the Teuton thought
-good. A man might lie,
-he might steal, he might
-even commit murder, but
-if he was a brave warrior,
-he was called a “good”
-man.</p>
-
-<p>The Teutons did not
-have a king. They elected
-their chiefs, and of course
-they always chose the man
-who was the bravest and
-strongest. But he could
-not make his son ruler
-after him. So he was
-more like a president
-than a king.</p>
-
-<p>The Teutons had an
-entirely different set
-of gods from those of Greece and Rome. Their
-chief god, as you might guess, was the god of
-war, and they called him Woden. Woden was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222"></span>
-also the god of the sky. He was like the two
-Greek gods, Jupiter and Mars, put together.
-Woden was supposed to live in a wonderful
-palace in the sky called Valhalla, and many
-tales are told of the wonderful things he
-did and of the adventures he had. Wednesday,
-which was once Wodensday, is named after
-him. That is why there is a letter “d” in this
-word, although we don’t pronounce it.</p>
-
-<p>After Woden, Thor was the next most important
-god. He was the god of thunder and
-lightning. He carried a hammer with which
-he fought great giants who lived in the far-off
-cold lands and were called “ice-giants.” Thursday,
-which was once Thorsday, is named after
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Another god was named Tiu, and from his
-name we get Tuesday, and another Freya, from
-whom we get Friday, so that four out of seven
-of our days are named after Teuton gods, in
-spite of the fact that we are&mdash;most of us&mdash;Christians
-and no longer believe in these gods.</p>
-
-<p>Of the other three days of the week, Sunday
-and Monday of course are named after the sun
-and moon, and Saturday is named after a Greek
-god, Saturn.</p>
-
-<p>From these wild people all fair-haired people
-to-day are said to be descended&mdash;the English,
-French, German, and such of us whose forefathers
-are English or French or German.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_223"></span></p>
-
-<p>About the Year 400 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> these Teuton toughs
-were becoming particularly troublesome to the
-Romans. They began to push their way down
-into the northern part of the Roman Empire,
-and after a few years the Romans could hold
-them back no longer. Two of these Teuton
-gangs, or tribes, as they were called, went over
-into Britain, and the Romans who were living
-there found it wisest to get out, go back to Rome,
-and leave the country to the Teutons.</p>
-
-<p>These tribes who settled in Britain were
-known as Angles and Saxons. So the country
-came to be called the land of the Angles, or,
-for short, “Angle-land.” After the words
-“Angle-land” were said over for many years,
-they became “England,” which is what we call
-the country to-day. The people of England
-are still known by the full name “Anglo-Saxons,”
-and this is the name by which we call
-everything descended from these old Teuton
-tribes of Angles and Saxons who settled in
-Britain about 400 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></p>
-
-<p>Another gang or tribe called the Vandals
-went into Gaul. Gaul is where France is now.
-Then they kept on down into Spain, stealing,
-smashing, and burning like Mug Mike’s gang
-of toughs on Hallowe’en. They crossed over
-by boats into Africa. They injured or destroyed
-everything they came upon. So to-day
-when any one damages or destroys property<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224"></span>
-wickedly, we call him a vandal. If you cut up
-your desk, tear your books, or scratch names
-on walls or fences, you, too, are a vandal.</p>
-
-<p>A tribe called the Franks followed the Vandals
-into Gaul, and there they stayed, giving
-the name “France” to that country.</p>
-
-<p>The Teutons north of Italy were the Goths.
-They had a leader by the name of Alaric. He
-was the “Mug Mike” of the gang of Goths.
-Alaric and his Goths crossed over the mountains
-into Italy and robbed or destroyed everything
-of value they could lay their hands on. They
-then entered Rome and carried away whatever
-they wanted, and the Romans could not stop
-them. But the worst was yet to come.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig50.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_225"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c40">40</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">White Toughs and Yellow Toughs Meet<br />
-the Champions of the World</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Teutons were wild toughs but they were
-white.</p>
-
-<p>Farther north of the Teutons and to the east
-was a tribe of people who were still more savage
-and fierce. They were called Huns. They
-lived far off in the forests and wilds way beyond
-the Teutons, in a part of the country that no
-one then knew much about.</p>
-
-<p>The Huns were, we think, not white as the
-Teutons were, but yellow. Even the Teutons
-themselves, fierce fighters though they were,
-feared the Huns, and it was chiefly because
-they were afraid of them and wanted to get
-away from them as far as they could that the
-Teutons went over the borders into the Roman
-Empire. It was much easier to fight the
-Romans than it was to fight the Huns.</p>
-
-<p>The Huns seemed more like wild beasts than
-human beings. Their leader was a dreadful
-creature named Attila. He boasted that nothing
-ever grew again where his horse had trod.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226"></span>
-He and his Huns had conquered and laid waste
-the country all the way from the East almost
-to Paris. At last the Teutons made a stand
-against them and fought a great battle at a
-place not so very far from Paris, a place called
-Châlons.</p>
-
-<p>The Teutons fought desperately; they fought
-madly. It was white toughs against yellow
-toughs, and the Huns were beaten. It was
-lucky they were beaten, for if they had won,
-these dreadful wild, yellow people might have
-conquered and ruled the world. The white
-toughs were bad enough, but the yellow would
-have been worse. So the battle of Châlons, 451
-<span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, is written in history in capital letters and
-large figures&mdash;<span class="xlarge">CHÂLONS 451</span>.</p>
-
-<p>After Attila and his Huns had been beaten
-at Châlons they left the Teutons alone, but
-they then went after the Romans. Turning
-back they went down into Italy, where there
-was no one able to stop them. They destroyed
-everything as they moved on. The people of
-the country didn’t even attempt to fight. They
-thought the Huns were monsters and simply
-fled before them. So on to Rome the Huns
-went.</p>
-
-<p>Now, there was at Rome at this time a Pope
-named Leo I, which means Lion. Leo, of
-course, was neither a soldier nor a fighting man,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227"></span>
-but he and his cardinals and bishops went out
-from Rome to meet Attila. They were not clad
-in armor, and none of them carried any weapons
-with which to fight. The pope and those with
-him were dressed in gorgeous robes and richly
-colored garments. It seemed as if they must
-be slaughtered by Attila and his Huns like
-lambs before wolves.</p>
-
-<p>But something strange happened when Attila
-and the pope met; exactly what no one
-knows. Perhaps Attila was awed by the pomp
-and splendor of those Christians. Perhaps he
-feared what Heaven might do to him if he destroyed
-those holy beings who had come out to
-meet him as if from heaven. At any rate, he
-did not destroy them, nor did he enter Rome,
-but turned about and left Italy, left it for good
-and all, and he and his Huns returned to the
-unknown land to the north from which they had
-come.</p>
-
-<p>Now that the dreaded Attila was out of the
-way, the Vandals in Africa saw their chance to
-attack Rome. Attila had barely left Italy before
-the Vandals crossed over from Africa and
-sailed up the Tiber to Rome. They captured
-the city without any difficulty, helped themselves
-to everything they wanted, and carried
-away all Rome’s treasures.</p>
-
-<p>Poor old Rome! She was at last beaten,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228"></span>
-beaten for good! She had been the Champion
-for a great many years. But now all her
-strength was gone. She was old and weak and
-no longer able to defend herself against these
-gangs of toughs. Rome’s last emperor had the
-high-sounding name “Romulus Augustulus,”
-the same name as the first king, Romulus, with
-the addition of Augustulus, which means the
-little Augustus. But in spite of his high-sounding
-name, Romulus Augustulus could do nothing.
-He was like the little boy living in the
-marble house on the avenue, the little boy with
-curls and a velvet suit, whom Mug Mike caught
-out one day and&mdash;you can guess the rest.
-“Great Cæsar’s ghost!” How Cæsar’s ghost
-must have felt!</p>
-
-<p>It was the Year 476 that Rome was beaten.
-The western half of the empire, of which Rome
-had been the capital, broke up into pieces, and
-the pieces were ruled over by Teutons. Like
-Humpty Dumpty, Rome had had a great fall,
-and all the king’s horses and all the king’s men
-couldn’t put it together again. Only the eastern
-part, of which Constantinople was the capital,
-still went on. This eastern half was not
-conquered by the barbarians, and it still kept
-going for nearly a thousand years longer until&mdash;but
-wait till we come to that time in history.</p>
-
-<p>People speak of this date, 476, as the end of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229"></span>
-Ancient History. After Ancient History,
-there was a time over five hundred years long
-which was known as the Dark Ages&mdash;the Night-time
-of History. The Dark Ages lasted from
-476 to about 1000 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> These centuries are
-called the Dark Ages, because during that long
-time the Teutons, those uneducated toughs who
-were unable even to read and write, were the
-chief people in Europe, and they ruled over
-those who had once been the educated and cultured
-people.</p>
-
-<p>The Teutons, though such rough toughs, barbarians
-as they were called, were, strange to
-say, quick to learn many things from the
-Romans whom they had conquered. Even before
-they had conquered Rome, most of the
-Teutons had already become Christians.</p>
-
-<p>Of course they had to learn the Latin language
-in order to talk to their subjects. But
-they changed the Latin a good deal and mixed
-it with their own language. This mixture of
-their own language with the Latin at last became
-Italian. The Teutons who went to Spain
-in a like way mixed their language with the
-Latin, and this mixture was Spanish. In
-France the mixture of the two languages became
-French.</p>
-
-<p>In Britain, however, the Anglo-Saxons would
-have nothing to do with the Romans and would<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230"></span>
-not use the Roman language but kept their own
-language. After a while this language of the
-Anglo-Saxons was called English. The Anglo-Saxons
-also kept their own religion, and they
-worshiped Thor and Woden and their other
-gods until about one hundred years later, or
-about 600 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></p>
-
-<p>At that time some English slaves were being
-sold in the slave-market at Rome. They were
-very handsome. The pope saw them and asked
-who they were.</p>
-
-<p>“They are Angles,” he was told.</p>
-
-<p>“Angles!” exclaimed he; “they are handsome
-enough to be ’angels,’ and they should certainly
-be Christians.”</p>
-
-<p>So he sent some missionaries to England to
-convert the English; to change Angles to
-Angels. So at last the English, too, became
-Christians.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_231"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c41">41</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Nightfall</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was 500 o’clock by History Time.</p>
-
-<p>Night was coming on.</p>
-
-<p>The Dark Ages had begun.</p>
-
-<p>At least, that is what people call it now. But
-people didn’t call it so then.</p>
-
-<p>Crazy people don’t think they are crazy.</p>
-
-<p>Ignorant people don’t think they are ignorant.</p>
-
-<p>So the Dark Ages didn’t think they were
-dark.</p>
-
-<p>The ignorant Teutons were ruling over the
-pieces of the Western Empire.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent0">They couldn’t read; they couldn’t write.</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">They didn’t know much except to fight.</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">They didn’t know ’twas dark as night.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>At Constantinople, however, a Roman was
-still ruling over the Eastern Empire. This
-Roman was named Justinian. Now, up to this
-time there had been a great many rules or laws
-by which the people were governed. But there
-were so many of these rules and they were so
-mixed up that one law would tell you you could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232"></span>
-do one thing and another would tell you you
-couldn’t. It was as if your mother said you
-could stay up till nine o’clock to-night and your
-father said you must go to bed at eight. It was
-hard for people to tell, therefore, what one must
-do and what one must not do.</p>
-
-<p>In order to untangle this snarl, Justinian had
-a set of laws made for the government of his
-people, and many of these were so good and so
-just that they are still the law to-day. If you
-notice that Justinian begins with “Just,” this
-will help you to remember that he was the one
-who made <i>just</i> laws.</p>
-
-<p>Another thing Justinian did that has lasted
-to the present time. He built in Constantinople
-a very beautiful church called Santa Sophia.
-Though it is no longer a church, it is still standing
-after all these years and is a beautiful sight
-to see. Still another thing he did which you
-could never guess. It had nothing to do with
-war or law or buildings.</p>
-
-<p>Travelers from the Far East, where China
-now is, had brought back tales of a wonderful
-caterpillar that wound itself up with a fine, thin
-thread over a mile long, and they told stories of
-how the Chinese unwound this thread and wove
-it into cloth of the finest and smoothest kind.
-This thread, as you might guess, was called silk,
-and the caterpillar that made it was called the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233"></span>
-silkworm. People in Europe had seen this
-beautiful silk cloth, but how it was made had
-been a mystery&mdash;a secret. They thought it so
-wonderfully beautiful that it was supposed to
-have been made by fairies or elves or even sent
-down from heaven. Justinian found out about
-these caterpillars and had men bring these silkworms
-into Europe so that his people also might
-make silk cloth and have silk ribbons and fine
-silk garments, and therefore we give him the
-honor of starting the manufacture of silk in
-Europe.</p>
-
-<p>Outside of Justinian’s empire the ignorant
-Teutons were living. It took them nearly a
-thousand years to learn as much as any school-boy
-now knows, and the first thing they learned
-was not reading, nor writing, but the Christian
-religion.</p>
-
-<p>About the same time that Justinian lived
-there was a king in France named Clovis.
-Clovis, of course, was a Teuton and belonged
-to the tribe called the Franks, which gave the
-name “France” to that country. Clovis believed
-in Thor and Woden as all of his people
-did. Clovis had a wife named Clotilda, whom
-he loved very dearly. Clotilda, though a
-Teuton, thought all the fighting and cruelty
-which her people seemed to like was wrong.
-She had heard about the religion of Christ,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234"></span>
-which did not believe in quarreling and fighting,
-and she thought she would like to be a
-Christian. So she was baptized. Then she
-tried to persuade her husband, Clovis, to become
-a Christian, also.</p>
-
-<p>Clovis was just then going to war&mdash;the very
-thing the Christians preached against. But,
-just to please his wife, he promised her, if he
-won the battle, he would become a Christian.
-He did win, and he kept his word and was baptized
-and had his soldiers baptized, also. Clovis
-made Paris his capital, and Paris is still the capital
-of France.</p>
-
-<p>It was about this same time, also, that a king
-named Arthur was ruling in England. Many
-stories and poems have been written about him,
-which, however, we know are fairy-tales and not
-history. But although we know these stories
-are not true, they are, nevertheless, interesting&mdash;like
-those tales that are told about the heroes of
-the Trojan War.</p>
-
-<p>It was said that there was a sword called
-Excalibur stuck so fast in a stone that no one
-could draw it out except the man who should
-be king of England. All the nobles had tried
-without success to draw the sword, when one
-day a young boy named Arthur pulled it out
-with the greatest ease, and he was accordingly
-proclaimed king.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_235"></span></p>
-
-<p>King Arthur chose a company of the nobles
-to rule with him, and as they sat with him at a
-Round Table, they were known as the Knights
-of the Round Table. Tennyson, the great
-English poet, has written in verse an account of
-all the doings of King Arthur and his knights
-in a long poem called “The Idylls of the King,”
-which you will have to read yourself, for we
-must go on to the next story.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig51.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_236"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c42">42</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">“Being Good”</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">What</span> do you mean by “being good”?</p>
-
-<p>The Teutons thought “being good” meant
-being brave.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians thought whatever was beautiful
-was “good.”</p>
-
-<p>The Stoics thought “not caring” was “being
-good.”</p>
-
-<p>The Epicureans thought having a good time
-was “being good.”</p>
-
-<p>The martyrs thought “being good” meant suffering
-and dying for Christ’s sake.</p>
-
-<p>Ever since the time of the martyrs, Christians
-who wanted to be very, very good indeed,
-went off into the wilderness and lived by themselves.
-They wished to be far away from other
-people, so that they could spend all their time
-praying and thinking holy thoughts. This, they
-believed was “being good.”</p>
-
-<p>One of the strangest of these men who
-wanted to get away from others was named St.
-Simeon Stylites. He built for himself a pillar<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237"></span>
-or column fifty feet high, and on the top of it
-he lived with room only to sit but not to lie down.
-There on the top he lived for many years, day
-and night, winter and summer, while the sun
-shone on him and the rain rained on him, and he
-never came down at all. He could be reached
-only by a ladder, which his friends used to bring
-him food. High up out of the world, he thought
-he could best lead a holy life. That was his idea
-of “being good” although we should think such
-a person simply crazy.</p>
-
-<p>In the course of time, however, men who
-wanted to lead holy lives, instead of living alone
-as they had done at first, gathered in groups
-and built themselves homes. These men were
-called monks, and the house where they lived
-was known as a monastery or abbey. The head
-monk of such an abbey was called an abbot, and
-he ruled over the other monks like a father over
-his children, giving them orders and punishing
-them when he thought they needed it.</p>
-
-<p>In the five hundreds there lived an Italian
-monk named Benedict. He believed very
-strongly that one must work if he was to be
-holy, that work was a necessary part of being
-holy. He thought, also, that monks should
-have no money of their own, for Christ had said
-in the Bible, “If thou wilt be perfect, go and
-sell that thou hast, and give to the poor.” So<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238"></span>
-Benedict started a club or order of monks for
-those people who would agree to three things:</p>
-
-<p>The first thing they were to agree to was to
-have no money.</p>
-
-<p>The second thing was to obey.</p>
-
-<p>The third thing was not to marry.</p>
-
-<p>Monks who joined this club were called
-Benedictines.</p>
-
-<p>Now, you might think there would have been
-hardly any one who would promise for life three
-such things as to have no money, to obey the
-abbot&mdash;no matter what he told them to do&mdash;and
-never to marry. Nevertheless, there were
-a great many men in every country of Europe
-who did become Benedictines.</p>
-
-<p>Usually the monks lived in little bare rooms
-like prison cells, and ate their very simple meals
-together at a single table in a room called the
-refectory. They prayed at sunrise and sunset,
-and many times during the day besides, and
-they even woke up at midnight to say their
-prayers. But praying was not all they had to
-do. Work of every kind they were obliged to
-do, and they did it joyfully, whether the work
-was scrubbing floors or digging in the garden.</p>
-
-<p>Oftentimes the monastery was situated in a
-barren or swampy spot on land that had been
-given the monks because it was no good, or even
-worse than no good, dangerously unhealthy.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239"></span>
-But the monks set to work and drained off the
-water, tilled the soil, and made the waste places
-bloom like the rose. Then they raised vegetables
-for their table, fodder for their horses
-and cattle and sheep. Everything they ate or
-used or needed, they raised or made.</p>
-
-<p>But they did not only the rougher hand-work;
-they did fine hand-work, too. Printing
-had not been invented at
-this time; all books had to
-be written by hand, and the
-monks were the ones who
-did this. They copied the
-old books in Latin and
-Greek. Sometimes one
-monk would slowly read
-the book to be copied, and
-several other monks at one
-time would copy what he
-dictated. In this way a
-number of copies would be made.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig52.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Monk writing a manuscript.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The pages of the books were not made of
-paper but of calfskin or sheepskin, called vellum,
-and this vellum was much stronger and
-lasted much longer than paper.</p>
-
-<p>These old books which the monks wrote were
-called “manuscripts,” which means “hand-written.”
-Many of these may now be seen in museums
-and libraries. Some of these manuscripts<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240"></span>
-have been beautifully hand-printed with loving
-care and the initial letters and borders ornamented
-with designs of flowers and vines and
-birds and pictures in red and gold and other
-colors. If the monks hadn’t done this copying,
-many of the old books would have been lost and
-unknown to us.</p>
-
-<p>The monks also kept diaries, writing down
-from day to day and year to year an account of
-the important things that happened. These old
-diaries, or chronicles, as they were called, tell us
-the history of the times. As there were then no
-newspapers, if these chronicles had not been written
-we should not know what went on at that
-time.</p>
-
-<p>The monks were the best educated people of
-those days, and they taught others&mdash;both young
-and old&mdash;the things they themselves knew. The
-monasteries were also inns for travelers, for
-any one who came and asked for lodging was
-received and given food and a place to sleep,
-whether he had any money to pay or not.</p>
-
-<p>The monks helped the poor and needy. The
-sick, too, came to the monastery to be treated
-and taken care of, so that a monastery was often
-something like a hospital, too. Many people
-who had received such help or attention made
-rich gifts to the monasteries, so they became
-very wealthy, although the monks could own
-not so much as a spoon for themselves.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_241"></span></p>
-
-<p>So you see the monks were not merely holy
-men; they were most useful citizens. They
-were in many ways more nearly everything
-that Christ would have wished than perhaps any
-one large group of men has ever been since. They
-were really “<span class="smcap">Good for Something</span>.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig53.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_242"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c43">43</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Camel-Driver</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Every</span> hundred years is called a century, but
-a thing that seems a little strange is this&mdash;the
-hundred years from 500 to 600 is called the <i>sixth</i>
-century, not the fifth; the hundred years from
-600 to 700 is called the <i>seventh</i> century, not the
-sixth; and so on. Thus 615, 625, 650, and so on
-are all <i>seventh</i> century.</p>
-
-<p>Well, we have now reached the seventh century&mdash;the
-six hundreds, and we are to hear of a
-man who was to make a change in the whole
-world. He was neither a Roman nor a Greek
-nor a Frank nor a Goth nor a Briton. He was
-neither a king nor a general, but only a&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>What do you suppose?</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">A Camel-Driver!</span></p>
-
-<p>and he lived in a little town called Mecca in
-far-off Arabia. His name was Mohammed.
-Mohammed went on an errand for a wealthy
-Arabian lady, and the lady fell in love with
-him. Although he was a poor camel-driver and
-only a servant and she was rich, they were married.
-They lived happily together, and nothing
-remarkable happened until Mohammed was
-forty years old.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_243"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig54.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Map of Saracenic empire showing Mecca, Medina, Constantinople, Tours, Cordova, Bagdad, Jerusalem, also<br />
-Europe.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_244"></span>Mohammed had been in the habit of going
-out to a cave in the desert to study and think.
-One day when he visited this cave he had a
-dream, or a vision, as it is called when such
-things happen in the daytime when one is awake.
-In this vision, so Mohammed said, the angel
-Gabriel had appeared and told him that God,
-whom the Arabs called Allah, said he must go
-forth and teach the people a new religion.</p>
-
-<p>So Mohammed went home to his wife and
-told her what had happened, and she believed
-his story and became his first follower. Mohammed
-then went forth as he had been directed
-and taught his relatives and friends what he said
-Allah had told him, and they, too, believed what
-he said and became his followers.</p>
-
-<p>But when he set out to teach others, who were
-not his friends nor relatives, they simply
-thought him crazy and perhaps dangerous. So
-they got together and planned to get rid of
-him&mdash;even kill him if necessary. But he heard
-what they were planning, and so he packed up
-all his belongings and, with his wife and those
-who believed in him, left the city of Mecca and
-fled to the town of Medina, a little way off.
-This was in 622&mdash;Six-Two-Two&mdash;and was
-called the Hegira, which in the Arabic language
-means “flight.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_245"></span></p>
-
-<p>I have told you this exact date, for later as
-you will see this religion, which Mohammed
-started, grew bigger and bigger, and now at
-this very day there are one third as many people
-who believe in Mohammed and the religion he
-started as there are who believe in Christ and
-the religion He started; that is, there are now
-one third as many Mohammedans in the world
-as there are Christians. The Mohammedans began
-to count from the Hegira, 622, calling it the
-Year 1 as the Christians did from the Birth of
-Christ, as the Greeks did from the First Olympiad,
-as the Romans did from the Founding of
-Rome. So the Greeks, the Romans, the Mohammedans,
-and the Christians each had a different
-Year 1.</p>
-
-<p>This new religion was called Islam. From
-time to time Mohammed received messages
-which he said came from God. Mohammed
-himself could neither read nor write, and so he
-had some one else write down these messages
-on palm-leaves. There were so many of these
-messages that when they were finally gathered
-together they made a big book. This book is
-called the “Koran,” and it is the Mohammedan
-Bible and tells what Mohammedans must do
-and what they must not do.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig55.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Muezzin on minaret<br />
-calling to prayer.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>As Mohammed was born in Mecca, Mecca is
-the sacred city of the Mohammedans. To
-Mecca each good Mohammedan tries to go at
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246"></span>least once in his lifetime, no matter
-how far off from it he may
-live; and toward Mecca he always
-faces when he prays. There
-are always pilgrims, as such
-travelers are called, wending
-their way to Mecca. The Mohammedans
-worship in a temple
-called a <i>mosque</i>, but they also
-pray five times each day wherever
-they may be. A man
-called a muezzin cries out this
-time for prayer. He goes out
-on a little balcony on the minaret
-of the mosque and calls aloud:
-“Come to prayer; come to prayer. There is but
-one god and he is Allah.” Then, no matter who
-the Mohammedan is, no matter where he may be
-or what he may be doing, even though he is in
-the street or market-place, whether he is working
-or playing, he faces toward Mecca, falls on
-his knees, bows
-his head and
-hands to the
-ground and
-prays. Sometimes
-he carries
-a small rug
-called a prayer-rug<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247"></span>
-with him so that he may have something holy
-to kneel on when he prays.</p>
-
-<p>Many people liked this new religion. Those
-who believed in Islam were known as Moslems,
-and before long, as I have told you, there were
-as many Moslems or Mohammedans as there
-were Christians. At first the Moslems tried to
-persuade others to join simply by talking to them
-and telling them how fine their religion was, and
-how much better than what they had already had.
-But very soon they began to <i>force</i> others to become
-Moslems whether they wanted to or not.
-Like the highway robber who says, “Money or
-your life,” they gave every one a choice. “Money
-or your life, or be a Moslem!” This may seem a
-strange way for people to make others believe
-their religion, but the Moslems said that Allah
-wanted all people to be Mohammedans, and
-didn’t want any one who was not.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig56.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Mohammedan praying.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mohammed only lived for ten years after the
-Hegira; that is, until 632. But those who came
-after Mohammed went on with the new religion
-and kept on conquering and making people
-Mohammedans with the sword.</p>
-
-<p>The new leaders and rulers of the Mohammedans
-were called caliphs. The second caliph
-was named Omar. Omar went on to Jerusalem
-and built a Mohammedan mosque in the place
-where the temple of Solomon had stood. This<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248"></span>
-mosque which Omar built still stands to-day in
-the same place in Jerusalem.</p>
-
-<p>The Arabs, or Saracens, as they are also
-called, kept on northward toward Europe and
-conquered and converted every one to Islam as
-they went along. Those they could not convert
-they put to death. At last they reached the
-City of Constantine, Constantinople, where the
-people were Christians. This was the gateway
-from Asia to Europe, and the Arabs tried to
-get by. But the Christians poured down red-hot
-tar and burning oil from the walls of the
-city, and the Moslems had to stop. They could
-get no farther. Again and again the Moslems
-tried to capture the city, but without success.
-Finally, they had to give up trying to get into
-Europe by this way.</p>
-
-<p>Then they tried the opposite direction from
-Mecca, the long, long, way round to Europe.
-Across Egypt they went with little difficulty,
-converting every one to Islam. Further on still
-they kept going, along the coast of Africa, conquering
-everything before them until they
-reached the ocean. Then they turned north,
-took boats, and crossed over the Strait of Gibraltar
-and marched on up into Spain. Farther
-and farther on they went up into France. It
-seemed as if they would soon conquer all of
-Europe and make the whole civilized world<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249"></span>
-Mohammedan. But finally, near the town of
-Tours in France, they met their match. The
-king of France had a right-hand man named
-Charles who had been nicknamed Charles the
-Hammer because he could strike such terrific
-blows. Charles was called Mayor of the Palace,
-which merely meant that he was the chief servant
-of the king, but he was much more able
-than the king himself. In fact, the king was
-of very little account.</p>
-
-<p>Charles the Hammer, with his French soldiers,
-went forth to meet the Moslems, and near
-Tours he beat them so badly that they never attempted
-to go farther. So Europe at last was
-saved from Islam and the Saracens. This battle
-of Tours was in 732, just 110 years from the
-time of the Hegira. The Mohammedan religion
-had only been started 110 years before; yet
-in this short time the Mohammedans had conquered
-and converted the whole of the country
-bordering the Mediterranean from Constantinople
-all the way round the southern edge and
-as far up into France as Tours. The people
-south and east of the Mediterranean are still
-Mohammedans to-day.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_250"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c44">44</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquota">
-<p>Perhaps you have read the “Arabian Nights.”
-This is the story of</p></div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Arabian Days</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Moslems had tried to get into Europe
-by the front gate and failed.</p>
-
-<p>They had then tried the back gate and failed.</p>
-
-<p>Burning tar and oil had stopped them at
-Constantinople.</p>
-
-<p>Charles the Hammer had stopped them at
-Tours.</p>
-
-<p>So Europe was saved from the Moslems and
-from the Moslem religion of Islam. Yet we
-may wonder what Europe would have been like
-if the Moslem Arabs had conquered, for the
-Arabs were in many ways a great people, and
-we have learned many things from them. Here
-are some of the things.</p>
-
-<p>The Phenicians invented our alphabet, but
-the Arabs invented the figures which we use to-day
-in arithmetic. 1, 2, 3, 4, and so on are
-called Arabic figures. The Romans used letters
-instead of figures, V stood for 5, X for 10, C<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251"></span>
-for 100, M for 1000, and so on. Think how
-difficult it must have been for a Roman boy to
-add such numbers as</p>
-
-<table cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="table">
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">IV</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">XII</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><span class="large padr">+</span></td>
- <td class="tdl">MC</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">CXII</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">VII</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td>
- <td class="tdl">&mdash;&mdash;</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<p>They could not be added up in columns as we
-do. And when you think of multiplying and
-dividing with Roman numbers, it seems almost
-impossible, for example:</p>
-
-<p class="c">
-MCMCXVII<br />
-× XIX
-</p>
-
-<p>Occasionally you may see Roman figures still
-used&mdash;on clock-faces, for instance&mdash;but all the
-figures that you use every day in your arithmetic
-and that your father uses at the bank or
-store or office are Arabic figures.</p>
-
-<p>Another thing:</p>
-
-<p>The Arabs built many beautiful buildings;
-but these buildings look quite different from
-those that the Greeks and Romans and Christians
-built. The doors and window-openings,
-instead of being square or round, were usually
-horseshoe-shaped. On the top of their mosques
-they liked to put domes shaped something like<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252"></span>
-an onion, and at the corners they put tall spires
-or minarets from which the muezzin could call
-aloud the hour for prayer. They covered the
-walls of their buildings with beautiful mosaics
-and designs. The Mohammedans, however,
-were very careful that these designs were not
-copies of anything in nature, for they had a
-commandment in the “Koran” something like
-the Christian commandment, “Thou shalt not
-make ... any likeness of anything that is in
-heaven above, or that is in the earth beneath, or
-that is in the water under the earth.” Because
-of this commandment they never made drawings
-or pictures of any living thing, neither of
-plants nor flowers nor animals. They thought
-they would be breaking the commandment if
-they did. So they made designs out of lines
-and curves without copying anything from nature.
-These designs were called Arabesques,
-and although they were not like anything in
-nature, they were often very beautiful.</p>
-
-<p>Still another thing:</p>
-
-<p>In Arabia there grew a little bush on which
-were small berries with seeds inside. The sheep
-seemed to like these berries and, when they ate
-them, became very lively. The Arabs themselves
-tried eating the seeds of these berries with
-the same effect. Then they made a drink out
-of these seeds by roasting and grinding them<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253"></span>
-and boiling them in water. This was coffee&mdash;which
-the Arabs had discovered and which is
-now drunk all over the world.</p>
-
-<p>Still another thing:</p>
-
-<p>The Arabs found out that when the juice of
-grapes or other fruits or grains spoiled, or fermented,
-as we call it, a peculiar change took
-place. Any one who drank this changed juice
-became greatly excited and even crazy. They
-called the new thing to which these juices
-changed, “alcohol,” and they were so much
-afraid of it and what it did to those who drank
-it that they forbade every Mohammedan to
-drink anything containing alcohol, such as wine,
-beer, or whisky. So the Moslems not only discovered
-alcohol, but, believing it to be poison,
-they prohibited its use. They have been prohibitionists,
-therefore, for more than a thousand
-years, while all the rest of the world has been
-using wine and beer and other drinks containing
-alcohol until the United States only recently
-forbade their use in this country.</p>
-
-<p>Still another thing:</p>
-
-<p>Woolen cloth which people used for clothes
-was made from the hair of sheep or goats. As
-it took the hair of a great many such animals to
-make a very little cloth, woolen cloth was expensive.
-The Arabs found out a way of making
-cloth from a plant, the cotton plant, which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254"></span>
-of course was much cheaper. Then in order to
-decorate the cloth and make it pretty and attractive,
-they stamped the plain cloth with
-wooden blocks shaped in different forms and
-dipped in color. This printed cloth that the
-Arabs had invented was called calico.</p>
-
-<p>Still another thing:</p>
-
-<p>The Arabs made swords and knives of such
-wonderful steel that the blades could be bent
-double without breaking. The blades were said
-to be so keen they could cut through the finest
-hair if floated on water, a thing that only the
-sharpest razor will do, and yet at the same time
-so strong that they could cut through a bar of
-steel. Such swords were made in the East at
-a place called Damascus, which is in Arabia,
-and in the West at a place called Toledo, which
-is in Spain; and these swords and knives were
-known as Damascus or Toledo blades. Unfortunately,
-no one now knows the Arab’s secret
-for making such marvelous blades. It is what
-is called a lost art.</p>
-
-<p>Near where Babylon once was the Arabs
-built a city named Bagdad. You have heard
-of it if you have ever read any of the “Arabian
-Nights,” for most of these stories were told
-about Bagdad. It was the eastern capital of
-the Moslems. There at Bagdad the Arabs built
-a great school that was famous for many, many
-years. At Cordova in Spain was the western<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255"></span>
-capital of the Moslems, and there they built another
-great school.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig57.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Mohammedan veiled woman standing by Saracenic ornamented<br />
-arch.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>I might tell you many other things these
-people did&mdash;how they invented the game of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256"></span>
-chess, of all games the one that needs the most
-thought; how they made clocks with pendulums
-to keep time&mdash;people had no real clocks before;
-how they started wonderful libraries of books;
-and so on&mdash;but this is enough for the present to
-show you what intelligent people they were.</p>
-
-<p>The Arabs were not Aryans. They belonged
-to the Semite family, the same family to which
-the Phenicians and Jews belong. The Arabs
-were as clever as their cousins the Phenicians,
-who, you remember, were very clever, but they
-were also as religious as their other cousins the
-Jews, who, you remember, were very religious.</p>
-
-<p>But the Moslems had peculiar ideas about
-women. They thought it was immodest for a
-woman to show her face to men, and so every
-woman had to wear a thick veil which hid her
-face all except her eyes whenever she went out
-where there were men. With such a veil she
-could see but not be seen.</p>
-
-<p>But here are their two most peculiar ideas:
-they believed women were only fit to be slaves to
-the men, and they thought that a man might have
-as many wives as he wished all at one time!</p>
-
-<p>So we may wonder, then, what Europe would
-really have been like if the Moslems had conquered
-all the rest of the world at that time&mdash;if
-they had left no country Christian&mdash;<i>if we were
-all of us Moslems to-day instead of Christians</i>!</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_257"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c45">45</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Light in the Dark Ages</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Europe</span> had been “dark” for three hundred
-years. You know what I mean.</p>
-
-<p>There were not enough “bright” people to
-make it light. Ignorant Teutons had been ruling
-over the pieces of the old Roman Empire.</p>
-
-<p>The Arabs were bright, but they were not in
-Europe.</p>
-
-<p>But in 800 there was a very “bright light”&mdash;a
-man&mdash;a king&mdash;who by his might and power
-was able to join the pieces of Europe together
-once again to form a new Roman Empire. He
-was not a Roman, however, but a Teuton, as you
-can tell from his name, which was Charles. He
-was a grandson of that Charles the Hammer
-who had stopped the Moslems at Tours, and he
-was called by the French name Charlemagne,
-which means Charles the Great.</p>
-
-<p>Charlemagne at first was king of France alone,
-but he was not satisfied to be king of that country
-only, and so he soon conquered the countries on
-each side of him, parts of Spain and Germany.
-Then he moved the capital of his empire from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258"></span>
-Paris to a place in Germany called Aix-la-Chapelle,
-which was more convenient than Paris
-to this larger empire, and besides at Aix-la-Chapelle
-there were warm springs which made
-fine baths, and Charlemagne was very fond of
-bathing and was a fine swimmer.</p>
-
-<p>Italy was then ruled over by the pope. But
-the pope was having a good deal of trouble with
-some tribes in the north of Italy, and he asked
-Charlemagne if he wouldn’t come down and
-conquer them. Charlemagne was quite ready
-and willing to help the pope, so he went over into
-Italy and easily settled those troublesome tribes.
-The pope was grateful to Charlemagne for this
-and wished to reward him.</p>
-
-<p>Now, Christians everywhere used to make trips
-to Rome in order to pray at the great Church
-of St. Peter, which had been built over the spot
-where St. Peter had been crucified. Well, at
-Christmas-time in the Year 800 Charlemagne
-paid such a visit to Rome. On Christmas day
-he went to the Church of St. Peter and was praying
-at the altar when suddenly the pope came
-forward and put a crown on his head. The pope
-then hailed him “Emperor,” and as the pope
-at that time could make kings and emperors,
-Charlemagne became emperor of Italy added to
-the other countries over which he already ruled.
-These countries together were really about the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259"></span>
-same as the western part of the old Roman Empire.
-So Charlemagne’s empire was now like a
-new Roman Empire, but with this big difference:
-it was ruled over not by a Roman, but by a Teuton.</p>
-
-<p>Charlemagne started out an ignorant uneducated
-Teuton, but he was not like most other
-Teutons who didn’t know they were ignorant
-and didn’t care whether they were ignorant or
-not. He was anxious to know everything there
-was to be known. He wanted to be able to do
-everything any one could do.</p>
-
-<p>In those days when the Teutons were ruling,
-few people had any education, and hardly any
-one could read or write. Charlemagne wanted
-an education, but there was no one in his own
-country who knew enough or was able to teach
-him. In England, however, there was a very
-learned monk named Alcuin. He knew more
-than any one of that time, and so Charlemagne
-invited Alcuin to come over from England and
-teach him and his people. Alcuin taught Charles
-about the sciences; he taught him Latin and
-Greek poetry; he taught him the wisdom of the
-Greek philosophers.</p>
-
-<p>Charlemagne learned all these things very
-easily, but when it came to the simple matter of
-learning to read and write he found this too hard.
-He did learn to read a little, but he seemed unable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260"></span>
-to learn to write. It is said that he slept
-with his writing-pad under his pillow and practised
-whenever he awoke. And yet he never
-learned to write anything more than his name.
-He did not begin to study until he was a grown
-man, but he kept on studying all the rest of his
-life. Except for reading and writing, he became,
-next to his teacher, Alcuin, the best-educated
-man in Europe.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the fact that Charlemagne’s daughters
-were princesses, he had them taught how to
-weave and sew and make clothes and cook just
-as if they had to earn their own living.</p>
-
-<p>Although Charlemagne was such a rich and
-powerful monarch and could have everything he
-wanted, he preferred to eat plain food and dress
-in plain clothes. He did not like all the finery
-that those about him loved. One day, just to
-make his nobles see how ridiculously dressed they
-were in silks and satins, he took them out hunting
-in the woods while a storm was going on, so that
-he could laugh at them. That was his idea of
-a good joke. You can imagine how their silk
-and satin robes looked after being soaked with
-rain, covered with mud, and torn by briers.
-Charlemagne thought it was very funny.</p>
-
-<p>But although his tastes were simple in matters
-of dress, he made his home a magnificent palace.
-He furnished it with gold and silver tables and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_261"></span>
-chairs and other gorgeous furniture. He built
-in it swimming-pools and a wonderful library and
-a theater and surrounded it with beautiful gardens.</p>
-
-<p>At this time and all through the Dark Ages
-people had a strange way of finding out whether
-a person had stolen or committed a murder or
-any other crime. The person suspected was not
-taken into court and tried before a judge and a
-jury to see whether he was telling the truth and
-had done the thing or not. Instead he was made
-to carry a red-hot iron for ten steps, or to dip
-his arm into boiling water, or to walk over red-hot
-coals. If he was not guilty it was thought
-no harm would come to him, or if he were burned
-it was thought that the burn would heal right
-away. This was called <i>trial by ordeal</i>. It probably
-started from the story told in the Bible of
-Shadrach, Meshech, and Abednego, who, you remember,
-in the time of Nebuchadnezzar, had
-walked through the fiery furnace unharmed because
-they had done no wrong. Strange to say,
-though Charlemagne was so intelligent, he believed
-in the trial by ordeal. To-day we have
-no such cruel and unfair way of finding out
-whether one is guilty or not. Yet we say of a
-person who has a lot of trouble that seems to
-be a test of his character, “He is going through
-an ordeal.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_262"></span></p>
-
-<p>While Charlemagne was living, there was a
-caliph in far-off Bagdad named Haroun, which is
-the Moslem spelling of Aaron. You may have
-heard of him if you have read any of the “Arabian
-Nights,” for the “Arabian Night” stories
-were written at this time, and Haroun is described
-in them. Although Haroun was a Mohammedan,
-not a Christian, and though he was ruler
-of an empire that hated the Christians, nevertheless
-he admired Charlemagne very much. To
-show how much he thought of him, he sent him
-valuable presents; among other things, a clock
-which struck the hours, which you remember, was
-an invention of the Arabs. This was a great
-curiosity, for there were then no clocks in Europe.
-People had to tell time by the shadow the
-sun cast on a sun-dial, or else by the amount of
-water or sand that dripped or ran out from one
-jar to another.</p>
-
-<p>Haroun was a very wise and good ruler over
-the Moslems, and so he came to be called “al
-Rashid,” which means “the Just.” Do you remember
-what Greek was also called “the Just”?<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>
-Haroun used to disguise himself as a workman
-and go about among his people. He would
-talk with those he met along the street and in the
-market-place, trying to find out how they felt
-about his government and about things in general.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263"></span>
-He found they would talk freely to him
-when dressed in old clothes, for then they did not
-know who he was but thought him a fellow-workman.
-In this way, Haroun learned a great
-deal about his people’s troubles and what they
-liked or didn’t like about his rule. Then he
-would go back to his palace and give orders to
-have rules and laws made to correct anything
-that seemed wrong or unjust.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="label">[3]</a> Aristides.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>After Charlemagne died there was no one
-great enough or strong enough to hold the new
-Roman Empire together, and once again it broke
-up into small pieces, and “all the king’s horses
-and all the king’s men could not put it together
-again.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig58.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_264"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c46">46</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Getting a Start</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">I once</span> knew a boy who had a red birthmark
-on his arm. It was just the shape of England
-on the map, and he used to call it “My England.”</p>
-
-<p>England is just a little island.</p>
-
-<p>It was quite an unimportant little island in
-900 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></p>
-
-<p>England is still just a little island.</p>
-
-<p>But it is now the most important island in the
-world!</p>
-
-<p>About one hundred years after Charles the
-Great&mdash;that is, 900&mdash;there was a king of England
-named Alfred. When Alfred was a boy
-he had a hard time learning to read, for he did
-not like to study. In those days many of the
-hand-written books made by the monks had
-pretty drawings and letters made in bright colors
-and even in gold. One day Alfred’s mother
-showed such a book to her children and promised
-to give it to the one who could read it first. That
-was a game. Alfred wanted to win the book,
-and so, for the first time in his life, he really
-tried. He studied so hard that in a very short
-time he had learned to read before his brothers
-and so he won the book.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_265"></span></p>
-
-<p>When Alfred grew up, England was being
-troubled by pirates. These pirates were cousins
-of the English&mdash;a tribe of Teutons called Danes.
-The English had long ago become Christians and
-civilized, but their cousins, the Danes, were still
-rough and wild. They came over from their own
-country across the water, landed on the coast of
-England, robbed the towns and villages, and then
-sailed back to their homes, carrying off everything
-valuable they could lay their hands on&mdash;like
-bad boys who climb a farmer’s fence and
-steal apples from his orchard. At last the Danes
-became so bold that they didn’t even run away
-after robbing the country; they were like the
-bad boys who stick out their tongues and throw
-stones at the farmer who comes after them.
-The king’s armies went out to punish these
-pirates, but, instead of beating, they were beaten.
-It began to look as if these Danes, who were
-able to do pretty much as they pleased, might
-conquer England and rule over the English.</p>
-
-<p>Once when things looked pretty black for
-England, King Alfred was without an army.
-Alone, ragged, tired out, and hungry, he came
-to the hut of a shepherd and asked for something
-to eat. The shepherd’s wife was baking some
-cakes by the fire, and she told Alfred he should
-have one if he watched them while she went out
-to milk the cow. Alfred sat down by the fire,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266"></span>
-but in thinking about what he could do to beat
-the Danes he forgot all about the cakes, and
-when the shepherd’s wife returned they were all
-burned. Thereupon she scolded him roundly
-and drove him off, not knowing that it was her
-king that she was treating in this way, for he
-never told her who he was.</p>
-
-<p>Alfred decided that the best way to fight the
-Danes was not on land but on the water, and
-so he set to work to build boats bigger and better
-than those the Danes had. After a while he
-had something of a fleet, and the boats he built
-were bigger than those of the Danes, but they
-were so big that they could not go into shallow
-water without running aground. The Danes’
-boats, on account of their small size, could go
-safely close in to shore. In deep water, however,
-Alfred’s fleet was very strong and powerful.
-This was the first navy that England ever had.
-England’s navy is now the largest in the world,
-and Alfred the Great was the one who started it
-more than a thousand years ago.</p>
-
-<p>After fighting with the Danes for many years,
-Alfred finally thought it best to make an agreement
-with them and give them a part of England
-to live in if they would promise to stop
-stealing and live peaceably. So the Danes did
-agree to this, and they settled down peaceably on
-the land that Alfred gave them&mdash;and then became<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267"></span>
-Christians. After that there was no further
-trouble.</p>
-
-<p>Alfred made very strict laws and severely
-punished those who did wrong. Indeed, it is
-said that the people of England were so careful
-to obey the law in his reign that one might leave
-gold by the roadside, and no one would steal it.</p>
-
-<p>Alfred also brought over learned men from
-Europe to show his people how to make things
-and to teach the boys and girls and the older people
-how to read and write. He is also said to
-have started a school that is now one of the
-greatest places of learning in the world, a university
-called Oxford that is now more than a
-thousand years old.</p>
-
-<p>But Alfred not only built a navy and made
-wise laws and started schools and colleges which
-the English had not had before; he did many
-other useful things, besides.</p>
-
-<p>He invented, for instance, a way of telling time
-by a burning candle. You have heard how wonderful
-the clock, that which Haroun-al-Rashid
-sent to Charlemagne one hundred years before
-was thought to be. Although striking clocks
-are, of course, very common nowadays, it was
-an extraordinary thing then when there were no
-clocks nor watches at all in England. Alfred
-found out how fast candles burned down and
-marked lines around them at different heights&mdash;just<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268"></span>
-the distance apart that they burned in one
-hour. These were called time-candles.</p>
-
-<p>Candles were also used for lighting, but when
-they were carried outdoors they were very likely
-to be blown out by the wind. So Alfred put the
-candle inside of a little box, and in order that the
-light might shine through the box, he made sides
-of very thin pieces of cow’s-horn, for glass then
-was very scarce. This box with horn sides was
-called a horn lamp or “lamphorn,” and after a
-while this word when said rapidly became “lanthorn,”
-and finally “lantern,” which we still call
-such a thing to-day, although horn is, of course,
-no longer used, but glass. This is one explanation
-of the word as the old spelling was
-“lanthorn,” but it seems more likely that lantern
-came from the Latin word “lanterna.”</p>
-
-<p>Such inventions may seem very small and unimportant,
-and they are when you think of the
-marvelous inventions and wonderful machines
-that are made by the thousands nowadays. These
-inventions of Alfred were no more than the
-household ideas for which some magazines now
-offer only a dollar apiece. But I have told you
-about them just to show you how ignorant and
-almost barbarian the English, as well as other
-Teuton tribes of Europe, were in those days.
-How much superior were the Arab thinkers with
-their striking clocks. The English were just
-“getting a start.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_269"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c47">47</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The End of the World</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">What</span> would you do if you knew the world
-was coming to an end next week, or even next
-year?</p>
-
-<p>The people who lived in the tenth century
-thought the Bible said<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> something that meant
-that the world was coming to an end in the Year
-1000&mdash;which was called the millennium from the
-Latin word meaning a thousand years.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="label">[4]</a> Book of Revelations, chapter xx.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Some people were glad that the world was
-coming to an end. They were so poor and
-miserable and unhappy here that they were
-anxious to go to heaven, where everything would
-be fine and lovely&mdash;if they had been good here.
-So they were particularly good and did everything
-they could to earn a place for themselves in
-heaven when this old world should end.</p>
-
-<p>Others were not so anxious to have the world
-come to an end. But, they thought, if it were
-coming to an end so soon, they might as well
-hurry up and enjoy themselves here while they
-still had a chance.</p>
-
-<p>Well, the Year 1000 came, and nothing happened.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270"></span>At first people simply thought that a
-mistake had been made in counting the years&mdash;that
-there had not really been one thousand years
-since Christ’s birth. The years went by, and
-still people waited for the end. They re-read
-their Bibles and thought perhaps it meant a
-thousand years after Christ’s <i>death</i>, instead of his
-birth. As time went on, without any change,
-they began to think the end was delayed for some
-reason they could not explain. But it was not
-for many years after the millennium that people
-came at last to realize that the world was not
-going to stop after all.</p>
-
-<p>Every once in a while some one who thinks he
-knows more than others says the end of the world
-is not far off, but we may be quite sure that the
-world will keep on going and that it will keep on
-going long after we have all grown up and died
-and our children have done the same.</p>
-
-<p>At this time, when people were looking for
-the end of the world there was in the north of
-Europe a tribe of Teutons who were not Christians
-and knew and cared nothing about what
-the Bible said as to the end of the world. They
-belonged to the same family as the Danes who
-had come to England in the time of King Alfred.
-They were called Norsemen or Vikings. They
-were bold seafaring men, even more hardy and
-unafraid than the Phenician sailors of old. Their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271"></span>
-boats were painted black and had prows carved
-with figures of sea-monsters or dragons. They
-sailed the northern seas and went farther westward
-toward the setting sun than any sailors
-had ever gone. They had discovered Iceland
-and Greenland, and at last under their chief
-who was named Leif Ericson they reached the
-shores of America. So about the same year that
-the Christians in Europe were expecting the end
-of the world&mdash;the Year 1000&mdash;the Vikings had
-gone to what they thought was “the end of the
-world.”</p>
-
-<p>They called the new country Vineland or
-Wineland, because they found grapes, from
-which wine is made, growing there. They did
-not go far on shore, however, and they thought
-this new land was only another small island.
-They had no idea it was a new world. But it
-was too far away from their own country, and
-they found wild savages there who made it so
-uncomfortable for them that they sailed back
-home leaving the country for good. The Vikings
-did nothing more about their discovery, and
-people forgot all about this new country until
-nearly five hundred years later.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_272"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c48">48</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Real Castles</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">You</span> may think that castles belong only in
-fairy-tales of princes and princesses.</p>
-
-<p>But about the Year 1000 there were castles
-almost everywhere over Europe, and they were
-not fairy-castles but real ones with real people
-in them.</p>
-
-<p>After the downfall of Rome in 476, the Roman
-Empire was broken to pieces like a cut-up puzzle-map,
-and people built castles on the pieces, and
-they kept on building castles up to the fourteen
-hundreds. And this is why and how people built
-them and why they at last stopped building
-them.</p>
-
-<p>Whenever any ruler, whether he was a king
-or only a prince, conquered another ruler, he
-gave to his generals, who had fought with him
-and helped him to win, pieces of the conquered
-land as a reward instead of paying them in
-money. The generals in turn gave pieces of their
-land to the chief men who had been under them
-and helped them in battle. These men who were
-given land were called lords or nobles, and each<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273"></span>
-lord was called a vassal of him who gave the
-land. Each vassal had to promise to fight with
-his lord whenever he was needed. He could not
-make this promise lightly in an offhand way,
-however. He had to do it formally so that it
-would seem more binding. So the vassal had to
-kneel in front of
-his lord, place
-his folded hands
-between the
-folded hands of
-his lord, and
-make the solemn
-promise to fight
-when called upon.
-This was
-called “doing
-homage.” Then
-once a year, at
-least, thereafter,
-he had to make
-the same promise
-over again. This method of giving away land
-was known as the Feudal System.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig59.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Castle, drawbridge, moat and knights.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Each of these lords or nobles then built himself
-a castle on the land that was given him, and
-there he lived like a little king with all his work-people
-about him. The castle was not only his
-home, but it had to be a fort as well to protect<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274"></span>
-him from other lords who might try to take his
-castle away from him. So he usually placed it
-on the top of a hill or a cliff, so that the enemy
-could not reach it easily, if at all. It had great
-stone walls often ten feet or more thick. Surrounding
-the walls there was usually a ditch
-called a moat filled with water to make it more
-difficult for an enemy to get into the castle.</p>
-
-<p>In times of peace when there was no fighting
-the men farmed the land outside of the castle;
-but when there was war between lords, all the
-people went inside the castle walls, carrying all
-the food and cattle and everything else they had,
-so that they could live there for months or even
-years while the fighting was going on. A castle,
-therefore, had to be very large to hold so many
-people and animals for so long a time, and often
-it was really like a walled town.</p>
-
-<p>Inside the walls of the castle were many
-smaller buildings to house the people and animals
-and for cooking and storing the food. There
-might even be a church or chapel. The chief
-building was, of course, the house of the lord himself
-and this was called the <i>keep</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The main room of the keep was the hall, which
-was like a very large living-room and dining-room
-combined. Here meals were served at
-tables which were simply long and wide boards
-placed on something to hold them up. These<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275"></span>
-boards were taken down and put away after the
-meal was over. That is where we get the names
-“boarding” and “boarding-house.” There were
-no forks nor spoons nor plates nor saucers nor
-napkins. Every one ate with his fingers and
-licked them or wiped them on his clothes. Table
-manners were more like <i>stable</i> manners. The
-bones and scraps they threw on the floor or to
-the dogs, who were allowed in the room. Itchy-scratchy!
-At the end of the meal a large bowl
-of water and towels were brought in so that those
-who wished might wash their hands.</p>
-
-<p>After dinner the household was entertained
-during the long evenings with songs and stories
-by men called minstrels, who played and sang
-and amused the company.</p>
-
-<p>Shut up within the castle walls, it seemed as
-if the lord and his people would be absolutely
-safe against any attacks of his enemies. In the
-first place, any enemy would have had to cross
-the moat or ditch which surrounded the castle.
-Across this moat there was a drawbridge to the
-entrance or gate of the castle. In the entrance
-itself was an iron gate called a portcullis, which
-was usually raised like a window to allow people
-to pass. In time of war the drawbridge was
-raised. But in case an enemy was seen approaching
-and there was no time to raise the drawbridge,
-this portcullis could be dropped at a moment’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_276"></span>
-notice. When the drawbridge was raised there
-was no way of getting into the castle except
-by crossing the moat filled with water. Any one
-trying to do this would have had stones or melted
-tar thrown down on him. Instead of windows
-in the wall of the castle there were only long
-slits through which the fighters could shoot arrows
-at the enemy. At the same time, it was
-very difficult for any one on the outside to hit
-the small crack-like opening with an arrow.</p>
-
-<p>And yet attacks <i>were</i> made on castles. Sometimes
-the enemy built a tall wooden tower on
-wheels. This they would roll up as closely as
-they could get to the walls, and from its top shoot
-directly over into the castle.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes they built tunnels from the outside
-right under the ground, under the moat, and
-under the castle walls into the castle itself.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes they built huge machines called
-battering-rams, and with these they battered
-down the walls.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes they used machines like great slingshots
-to throw stones over the walls. Of course
-there were no cannons nor cannon-balls nor guns
-nor gunpowder then.</p>
-
-<p>The lord and his family were the society people;
-all the others were little better than slaves.
-In times of peace most of the common people
-lived outside the castle walls on the land called<span class="pagenum" id="Page_277"></span>
-the <i>manor</i>. The lord gave them just as little as
-he could and took from them just as much as he
-could. He had to feed and take some care of
-them so that they could fight for him and serve
-him, just as he had to feed and take care of his
-horses that carried him to battle, and the cattle
-that provided him with milk and meat. But he
-didn’t treat them as well as he did his domestic
-animals. The common people had to give their
-time and labor and a large part of the crops they
-raised to the lord. They themselves lived in
-miserable huts more like cow-sheds, with only
-one room, and that had a dirt floor. Above this
-was perhaps a loft reached by a ladder where
-they went to bed. But bed was usually only a
-bundle of straw, and they slept in the clothes they
-wore during the day.</p>
-
-<p>These work-people were called serfs. Sometimes
-a serf could stand this kind of life no
-longer, and he would run away. If he was not
-caught within a year and a day, he was a free
-man. But if he was caught before the year and
-a day were up, the lord might whip him, brand
-him with hot irons, or even cut off his hands.
-Indeed, a lord could do almost anything he
-wished with his serfs&mdash;except kill them, or sell
-them.</p>
-
-<p>So what do you think of the Feudal System?</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_278"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c49">49</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Knights and Days of Chivalry</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Those</span> <i>years</i> in history which I have been
-telling you about are known as the <i>days</i> of
-chivalry&mdash;which means the times of ladies and
-gentlemen. The lord and his family were the
-gentlemen and the ladies. All the other people,
-by far the greater number, were just common
-people.</p>
-
-<p>There were no schools for these common people.
-Little was done for them. They were
-taught to work and nothing else. The sons of
-a lord of a castle, however, were very carefully
-taught. But even they were taught only two
-things, how to be gentlemen and how to fight.
-Reading and writing were thought of no importance;
-in fact, it was usually considered a waste
-of time to learn such things.</p>
-
-<p>And this is the way the son of a lord was
-brought up. He stayed with his mother until he
-was seven years old. When he reached the age
-of seven he was called a page; and for the next
-seven years&mdash;that is, until he was fourteen, he
-remained a page. During the time he was a page<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279"></span>
-his chief business was to wait on the ladies of the
-castle. He ran their errands, carried their messages,
-waited on table, etc. He also learned to
-ride a horse and to be brave and courteous.</p>
-
-<p>When he was fourteen years old he became a
-squire and remained a squire for the next seven
-years; that is, until he was twenty-one. During
-the time he was a squire he waited on the men, as
-he had waited on the ladies when he was a page.
-He attended to the men’s horses, went to battle
-with them, led an extra horse, and carried another
-spear or lance, in case these should be needed.</p>
-
-<p>When he was twenty-one years old, if he had
-been a good squire and had learned the lessons
-that he was taught, he then became a knight. Becoming
-a knight was an important ceremony like
-graduating exercises, for the grown boy was now
-to take up the business of a man.</p>
-
-<p>To get ready for this ceremony, first, he
-bathed. This may not seem worth mentioning,
-but in those days one very rarely took a bath,
-sometimes not for years. He was then dressed
-in new clothes. Thus washed and dressed, he
-prayed all night long in the church. When day
-came he appeared before all the people and
-solemnly swore always to do and to be certain
-things:</p>
-
-<p>
-To be brave and good;<br />
-To fight for the Christian religion;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280"></span><br />
-To protect the weak;<br />
-To honor women.
-</p>
-
-<p>These were his vows. A white leather belt
-was then put on him and gold spurs fastened on
-his boots. After this had been done he knelt,
-and his lord struck him over the shoulders with
-the flat side of a sword, saying as he did so, “I
-dub thee knight.”</p>
-
-<p>A knight went into battle covered with a suit
-of armor made of iron rings or steel plates like
-fish-scales, and with a helmet or hood of iron.
-This suit protected him from the arrows and
-lances of the enemy. Of course if they had had
-any shot or shell, armor would have been no
-use at all, but they had no such things then.</p>
-
-<p>Knights were so completely covered by their
-armor that when sides became mixed up in fighting,
-they could not tell one another apart. It
-was impossible to know which were friends and
-which were enemies.</p>
-
-<p>So the knights wore, on the outside of the coat
-that went over their armor, a design of an animal,
-such as a lion, or of a plant or a rose or a cross
-or some ornament, and this design was known as
-a coat of arms. Perhaps your father may use
-a coat of arms on his letter-paper to-day, and
-if so he has inherited it from some great-great-grandparent
-who was a knight.</p>
-
-<p>A knight, as I told you, was first of all taught<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281"></span>
-to be a gentleman, and so we still speak of one
-who has good manners and is courteous, especially
-to ladies, as knightly or chivalrous. When a
-knight came into the presence of a lady he took
-off his helmet. It meant, “You are my friend,
-and so I do not need my helmet.” That is why
-gentlemen raise their hats nowadays when they
-meet ladies.</p>
-
-<p>But the most important thing the knights had
-to learn was to fight. Even their games were
-play fights.</p>
-
-<p>Each country and each age has had its own
-games or sports in which it has taken special
-delight. The Greeks had their Olympic Games.
-The Romans had their chariot-races and gladiatorial
-contests. We have football and baseball.
-But the chief sport of the knights was a kind of
-sham battle called the tournament.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig60.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Lady with falcon.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The tournament was held in a field known as
-the <i>lists</i>. Large crowds with banners flying and
-trumpets blowing would gather around the lists
-to watch the sham fight, as crowds nowadays
-flock to a big football game waving pennants
-and tooting horns. The knights on horseback
-took their places at opposite ends of the lists.
-They carried lances, the points of which were
-covered so that they would not make a wound.
-At a given signal, they rushed toward the center
-of the field and tried with their lances to throw<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282"></span>
-each other off their horses. The winner who
-succeeded in throwing the other knights was
-presented with a ribbon or a keepsake by one of
-the ladies, and
-a knight thought
-as much of this
-trophy of victory
-as the winner
-of a cup in
-a tennis tournament
-nowadays.</p>
-
-<p>Knights were
-very fond of
-hunting with
-dogs. But they
-also hunted with
-a trained bird
-called a falcon,
-and both lords
-and ladies delighted
-in this
-sport. The falcon
-was trained
-like a hunting-dog to catch other birds, such as
-wild ducks and pigeons and also small animals.
-The falcon was chained to the wrist of the lord
-or lady, and its head was covered with a hood
-as it was carried out to hunt. When a bird was
-seen the hood was removed, and the falcon, which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283"></span>
-was very swift, would swoop upon its prey and
-capture it. Thereupon the hunter would come
-up, take the captured animal, and put the hood
-on the falcon again. The men, however, usually
-preferred hunting the wild boar, which was a
-kind of pig with sharp tusks, for this was more
-dangerous and therefore supposed to be more of
-a man’s sport.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig61.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_284"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c50">50</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Pirate’s <i>Great</i> Grandson</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">When</span> Alfred was king the Danes had raided
-England.</p>
-
-<p>At the same time their cousins the Norsemen
-had raided the coast of France.</p>
-
-<p>King Alfred at last had to give the Danes a
-part of the English coast, and they then settled
-down and became Christians.</p>
-
-<p>The French king likewise did the same thing.
-In order to save himself from further raids, he
-gave the Norsemen a part of the French coast.
-Then the Norsemen, as the Danes had done, settled
-down and became Christians.</p>
-
-<p>These Norsemen who raided France were led
-by a very bold and brave pirate named Rollo.
-In return for this gift of land Rollo was supposed
-to do homage by kissing the king’s foot. But
-Rollo thought it beneath him to kneel and kiss
-the king’s foot, so he told one of his men to do it
-for him. His man did as he was told, but he
-didn’t like to do it, either, and so as he kissed the
-king’s foot he raised it so high that he tipped his
-Majesty over backward.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_285"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig62.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_286"></span></p>
-
-<p>That part of France which was given the
-Norsemen came to be called Normandy, and it is
-so called to-day, and the people were known
-thereafter as Normans.</p>
-
-<p>In 1066 there was a very powerful duke ruling
-over Normandy. His name was William, and
-he was descended from Rollo the pirate. Perhaps
-your name may be William. Perhaps you
-may even be descended from this William.</p>
-
-<p>William was strong in body, strong in will, and
-strong in rule over his people. He could shoot
-an arrow farther, straighter, and with more
-deadly effect than any of his knights. No one
-else was strong enough even to bend the bow he
-used.</p>
-
-<p>William and his people had become Christians,
-but according to their idea the Christian
-God was more like their old god Woden under
-a new name. William believed that “might made
-right,” for he was descended from a pirate, and
-he still thought and acted like a pirate. So whatever
-he wanted he went after and took, even
-though he was supposed to be a Christian.</p>
-
-<p>Now, William was only a duke, not a king,
-and he wanted to be a king. In fact, he thought
-he would like to be king of England, which was
-just across the channel from his own dukedom.</p>
-
-<p>It so happened that a young English prince
-named Harold was shipwrecked on the coast<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287"></span>
-of Normandy and was found and brought before
-William. Now, it seemed likely that some day
-Harold would be king of England, and William
-thought this a good chance to get England for
-himself. So before he would let Harold leave,
-he made the young man promise that when his
-turn came to be king he would give him England
-just as if that country were a horse or a suit of
-armor that could be given away. Then, in order
-that this promise should be solemnly binding,
-William made Harold place his hand on the altar
-and swear, just as people place a hand on the
-Bible nowadays, when they take an oath. After
-Harold had sworn on the altar, William had the
-top lifted and showed Harold that below it were
-the bones of some of the Christian saints. Swearing
-on the bones of a saint was the most solemn
-kind of an oath one could possibly take. It was
-thought one would not dare to break such an
-oath for fear of the wrath of God.</p>
-
-<p>Then Harold returned to England. But when
-the time came that he should be king the people
-naturally would not let him give England to
-William. Besides that, Harold said that such
-an oath, which he had taken against his will, an
-oath which had been forced on him by a trick,
-was not binding. So Harold became king.</p>
-
-<p>When William heard that Harold had been
-made king, he was very angry. He said that he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_288"></span>
-had been cheated and that Harold had broken
-his oath. So at once he got ready an army and
-sailed over to take the country away from Harold.</p>
-
-<p>As William landed from his boat he stumbled
-and fell headlong on the shore. All his
-soldiers were shocked and greatly worried by this,
-for they thought it very bad luck&mdash;a bad omen,
-the Greeks would have called it. But William
-was quick-witted, and as he fell he grabbed up
-some of the earth in both hands. Then, rising,
-he made believe he had fallen on purpose and,
-lifting his hands in the air, exclaimed that he had
-taken up the ground as a sign that he was going
-to have <i>all</i> the land of England. This changed
-the bad omen into good luck.</p>
-
-<p>The battle started, and the English fought
-furiously to defend themselves against these foreigners
-who were trying to take their country
-away from them. Indeed, they had almost won
-the battle when William gave an order to his men
-to pretend they were running away. The English
-then followed, wildly rejoicing, and running pell-mell
-after the Normans. Just as soon, however,
-as the English were scattered and in disorder,
-William gave another signal, and his men faced
-about quickly. The English were taken by surprise,
-and before they could get into fighting
-order again, they were defeated, and Harold,
-their king, was shot through the eye and killed.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_289"></span>
-This was the battle of Hastings, one of the most
-famous battles in English History.</p>
-
-<p>Harold had put up a brave fight. But luck
-was against him. Only a few days before this,
-he had had to fight a battle with his own brother,
-who in a traitorous way had got together an
-army against him. We are sorry for Harold,
-and yet it was probably better for England that
-things turned out as they did&mdash;yet who can tell?</p>
-
-<p>William marched on to London and had himself
-crowned king on Christmas day, 1066. Ever
-since then he has been known as William the
-Conqueror, and the event is called the Norman
-Conquest. After this England had a new line
-of kings&mdash;a Norman family and a pirate family&mdash;to
-rule over her.</p>
-
-<p>William divided England up among his nobles
-as if it were a pie, and gave each a share in the
-feudal way. They had to do homage to him
-as his vassals and promise to fight for him and to
-do as he said. Each of William’s nobles built a
-castle on the property he was given. William
-himself built a castle in London by the Thames
-River. On the same spot Julius Cæsar had built
-a fort, but it had disappeared; and Alfred the
-Great had built a castle there, but it, too, had
-disappeared. But the castle William built is
-still standing to-day. It is known as the Tower
-of London.</p>
-
-<p>William was a splendid boss and very businesslike.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290"></span>He set to work and had a list made of all
-the land in England, a list of all the people and
-of all the property they had. This record was
-called the Domesday Book and was something
-like the <i>census</i> now taken in this country every
-ten years. This list gave the name of every one
-in England and everything each owned, even
-down to the last cow and pig. If your ancestors
-were living in England then you can look in the
-Domesday Book and find their names, how much
-land they owned, and how many cows and pigs
-they had.</p>
-
-<p>In order that no mischief might take place at
-night, William started what was called the <i>curfew</i>.
-Every evening at a certain hour a bell was
-rung. Then all lights had to be put out, and
-every one had to go indoors&mdash;supposedly to bed.</p>
-
-<p>One thing, however, that William did made
-the English very angry. He was extremely fond
-of hunting, but there was no good place where
-he could hunt near London. So in order to have
-a place for hunting, he destroyed a large number
-of village houses and farms and turned that part
-of the country into a forest. This was called the
-New Forest, and though it is now nearly nine
-hundred years <i>old</i> it is still called New to this
-day.</p>
-
-<p>But on the whole, William, although descended
-from a pirate, gave England a good government<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291"></span>
-and made it a much safer and better place in
-which to live than it ever had been under its
-former rulers. So 1066 was almost like the
-Year 1 for the English.</p>
-
-<p>We think it is remarkable when children of
-low-bred immigrants become society leaders,
-when, as we say, they rise from overalls to dress-suits,
-but here we have the son’s son of a pirate
-rising to be king of England, and those living
-now who find they are descended from him brag
-of it!</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig63.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_292"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c51">51</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Great Adventure</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever played the game called “Going
-to Jerusalem” in which every one scrambles to
-get a seat when the music stops playing?</p>
-
-<p>Well, all during the Dark Ages “Going to
-Jerusalem” was not a game but a real journey
-which Christians everywhere in Europe wanted
-to take and did take if they could. They wanted
-to see the actual spot where Christ had been
-crucified, to pray at the Holy Sepulcher, and
-to bring back a palm-leaf as a souvenir, which
-they could show their friends, hang on the wall,
-and talk about all the rest of their lives.</p>
-
-<p>So there were always some good Christians&mdash;and
-also some bad ones&mdash;“going to Jerusalem.”
-Sometimes they went all by themselves, but more
-often they went with others. As of course there
-were no such things as trains in those days, poor
-people had to walk nearly the whole way from
-France and from England, from Spain and from
-Germany, and so it took them many months and
-sometimes years to reach Jerusalem. These
-travelers were called <i>pilgrims</i>, and their trip was
-called a <i>pilgrimage</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_293"></span></p>
-
-<p>Jerusalem at that time belonged to the Turks,
-who were Mohammedans. The Turks did not
-like these Christian pilgrims who came to see
-Christ’s tomb, and they didn’t treat them very
-well. Indeed, some of the pilgrims on their return
-told frightful stories of the way they had
-been treated by the Turks and the way the holy
-places in Jerusalem were also treated.</p>
-
-<p>Just before the Year 1100 there was a pope at
-Rome named Urban. He was the head of all the
-Christians in the world. Urban heard these tales
-that the pilgrims told, and he was shocked. He
-thought it was a terrible thing, anyway, for the
-Holy City, as Jerusalem was called, and the
-Holy Land, where Jerusalem was located, to be
-ruled over by Mohammedans instead of by
-Christians. So Urban made a speech and urged
-all good Christians everywhere to get together
-and go on a pilgrimage to the Holy Land, with
-the idea of fighting the Turks and taking the
-city of Jerusalem away from them.</p>
-
-<p>Now, there lived at that same time a monk
-whom people called Peter the Hermit. A hermit
-is a man who goes off and lives entirely by
-himself, usually in a cave or hut where no one
-can find him or go to see him, where he can spend
-all day in prayer. Peter the Hermit thought
-such a life was good for his soul, that it made
-him a better man to be hungry and cold and uncomfortable.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_294"></span></p>
-
-<p>Peter the Hermit had made a pilgrimage to
-Jerusalem and was very angry at what he saw
-there. So he, too, began to tell people everywhere
-he went how disgraceful it was for them
-to allow Christ’s tomb to belong to the Mohammedans
-and called on every one to start on a
-pilgrimage with him to save Jerusalem. He
-talked to people in the churches, on the street-corners,
-in the market-places, on the roadside.
-He was such a wonderful orator that those who
-heard him wept at his descriptions and begged
-to go with him.</p>
-
-<p>Before long, thousands upon thousands of
-people, old and young, men and women, and even
-some children had pledged themselves to join a
-band to go to Jerusalem and take it away from
-the Mohammedans. As Christ had died on the
-cross, they cut pieces of red cloth in the form of a
-cross and sewed them on the fronts of their coats
-as a sign that they were soldiers of the cross.
-So these pilgrims were called <i>Crusaders</i>, which
-is the Latin word for a cross-bearer. As they
-knew they would be gone a long time and perhaps
-never return, they sold all they had and left their
-homes. Not only poor people but lords and
-nobles and even princes joined the army of the
-Crusaders, and there were, besides the crowds on
-foot, large companies of those who rode on horseback.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_295"></span></p>
-
-<p>The plan was to start in the summer of 1096,
-four years before 1100, but a great many were so
-anxious to get started that they didn’t wait for
-the time that had been set. With Peter the Hermit
-and another pious man named Walter the
-Penniless as their leaders, they started off before
-things were really ready.</p>
-
-<p>They had no idea how very far off Jerusalem
-was. They hadn’t studied geography nor maps.
-They had no idea how long it would take, no
-idea how they would get food to eat on their
-journey, no idea where they would sleep. They
-simply trusted in Peter the Hermit and believed
-that the Lord would provide everything and show
-them the way.</p>
-
-<p>Onward they marched, “Onward, Christian
-Soldiers,” thousands upon thousands, toward the
-east and far-off Jerusalem. Thousands upon
-thousands of them died from disease and from
-hunger on the way. Every time they came within
-sight of another city, they would ask, “Is this
-Jerusalem?” so little did they know of the long
-distance that still lay between them and that
-city.</p>
-
-<p>When the Mohammedan army in Jerusalem
-heard that the Crusaders were coming they went
-forth to meet the Christians and killed almost
-all of those who had started out with Peter ahead
-of the rest. But those Crusaders that had started<span class="pagenum" id="Page_296"></span>
-out later, as had been planned at the beginning,
-marched on.</p>
-
-<p>Finally, after nearly four years, only a small
-band of that vast throng that had set out so long
-before reached the walls of the Holy City. When
-at last they saw Jerusalem before them, they
-were wild with joy. They fell on their knees and
-wept and prayed and sang hymns and thanked
-God that he had brought them to the end of
-their journey. Then they furiously attacked the
-city. The Christians fought so terribly that at
-last they beat the Mohammedans and captured
-Jerusalem. Then they entered the gates and
-killed thousands, so that it is said the streets of
-the Holy City ran with blood. This seems
-strange behavior for the followers of Christ, who
-preached against fighting and commanded, “Put
-up thy sword, for he that taketh the sword shall
-perish by the sword.”</p>
-
-<p>The Crusaders then made one of their leaders
-named Godfrey ruler of the city. Most of the
-other Crusaders that were left then went back
-home. So ended what is known as the First
-Crusade.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_297"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c52">52</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Tit-Tat-To; Three Kings in a Row</p>
-
-
-<p>
-<span class="smcap">Here</span> are three kings:</p>
-
-<p>
-Richard of England,<br />
-Philip of France, and<br />
-Frederick Barbarossa of Germany.
-</p>
-
-<p>If you say their names over several times, they
-keep ringing through your mind and you cannot
-seem to stop thinking them whether you want to
-or not.</p>
-
-<p>Jerusalem was captured. But it did not stay
-captured very long.</p>
-
-<p>The Mohammedans attacked and won it back
-again.</p>
-
-<p>So the Christians started a Second Crusade.
-Then about once in a lifetime during the next
-two hundred years there was one Crusade after
-another&mdash;eight or nine in all. Sometimes these
-later Crusades won back Jerusalem for a while,
-but for a while only. Sometimes they did not
-succeed at all.</p>
-
-<p>The Third Crusade took place about a hundred
-years after the First; that is, nearly 1200 <span class="allsmcap">A. D.</span>
-These three kings&mdash;Richard of England, Philip
-of France, and Frederick Barbarossa&mdash;started<span class="pagenum" id="Page_298"></span>
-on the Third Crusade. But they didn’t all finish.
-I will tell you about them in three-two-one order.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig64.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Richard of England, Philip of France, and Frederick Barbarossa</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Frederick’s name, Barbarossa, meant Red
-Beard, for in those days it was the custom to give
-kings nicknames that described them. Frederick’s
-capital was in Aix-la-Chapelle, as Charlemagne’s
-had been, but Frederick was king only
-of Germany. When a young man he had tried to
-make his country as large and powerful as the
-new Roman Empire that Charlemagne had
-made. But he was not a great enough man, and
-so was unable to do what Charlemagne had done.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299"></span>
-Frederick was quite old when he started out on
-the Third Crusade with the other two kings. But
-he never reached Jerusalem, for in crossing a
-stream on the way he was drowned. So much for
-Frederick, the third king.</p>
-
-<p>The second king, Philip of France, was jealous
-of the first king, Richard, because Richard
-was so very popular and well liked by the Crusaders.
-So Philip finally gave up the Crusade
-and went back to France.</p>
-
-<p>Richard of England was then the only king
-left on the Crusade. It would have been better
-if he, too, had gone back to his country instead
-of gallivanting off on a Crusade. But he thought
-going on a Crusade was much better sport than
-staying at home and working over the difficult
-business of governing his people.</p>
-
-<p>But although he had his faults, Richard was
-the kind of a man that all men like and all women
-love. He was kind and gentle, yet strong and
-brave. Richard the Lion-Hearted they called
-him. He was hard on wrongdoers but fair and
-square. So people loved him, but they feared
-him, too, for he punished the wicked and those
-who misbehaved. Even long, long after he had
-died, mothers would try to quiet a naughty and
-crying child by saying: “Hush! If you don’t be
-good, King Richard will get you!”</p>
-
-<p class="c">
-<span class="little">SO</span><span class="medium">HN</span>O<span class="large">FF</span><span class="xlarge">GO</span><span class="xxlarge">B</span><span class="xlarge">B</span><span class="large">E</span>LL<span class="medium">U</span><span class="little">M</span>!
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_300"></span></p>
-
-<p>Even Richard’s enemies admired him. The
-Mohammedan king of Jerusalem at the time of
-this Third Crusade was named Saladin. Saladin,
-though being attacked by Richard, admired him
-very much and even became his friend. And so
-Saladin, instead of fighting Richard, finally made
-a friendly agreement with him to treat the Holy
-Sepulcher and the pilgrims properly. As this arrangement
-was satisfactory to every one, Richard
-left Jerusalem to Saladin and started back home.</p>
-
-<p>On his way home Richard was captured by one
-of his enemies and put in prison and held for
-a large ransom from England. Richard’s
-friends did not know where he was and did not
-know how to find him.</p>
-
-<p>Now, it so happened that Richard had a favorite
-minstrel named Blondel. Blondel had
-composed a song of which Richard was very fond.
-So when Richard was taken prisoner, Blondel
-wandered over the country singing everywhere
-this favorite song in the hope that Richard might
-hear it and reveal where he was. One day he happened
-to sing beneath the very tower where Richard
-was imprisoned. Richard heard him and answered
-by singing the refrain of the song. His
-friends then knew where he was, the ransom was
-paid, and Richard was allowed to go free.</p>
-
-<p>When, at last, Richard did reach England, he
-still had adventures. This was the time when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301"></span>
-Robin Hood was robbing travelers. Richard
-planned to have himself taken prisoner by
-Robin Hood, so that he might capture him and
-bring him to justice. So Richard disguised
-himself as a monk and was captured as he had
-planned. But he found Robin Hood such a
-good fellow after all that he forgave him and
-his men.</p>
-
-<p>Richard’s coat of arms was a design of three
-lions, one above the other; and this same design
-of three lions now forms part of the shield of
-England.</p>
-
-<p>After Richard’s Crusade there was a Fourth
-Crusade, and then in the year 1212&mdash;which is an
-easy date to remember, because it is simply the
-number 12 repeated&mdash;one, two, one, two&mdash;there
-was a crusade of children only. This was known
-therefore as the Children’s Crusade. It was led
-by a French boy about twelve years old named
-Stephen, who was named after the first Christian
-martyr.</p>
-
-<p>Children from all over France left their homes
-and their mothers and fathers&mdash;it seems strange
-to us that their mothers and fathers let them start
-off on such a trip&mdash;and marched south to the
-Mediterranean Sea. Here they expected the
-waters of the sea would part and allow them to
-march on dry land to Jerusalem, as they had read
-in the Bible the waters of the Red Sea had done<span class="pagenum" id="Page_302"></span>
-to allow the Israelites to leave Egypt. But the
-waters did not part.</p>
-
-<p>Some sailors, however, offered to take the children
-to Jerusalem in their ships. They said they
-would do it for nothing, just for the love of the
-Lord. But it turned out that these sailors were
-really pirates, and as soon as they got the children
-on board their ships they steered them straight
-across the Mediterranean to Africa into the very
-land of their enemies, the Mohammedans. Here,
-it is said, the pirates sold the children as slaves.
-This is not a Grimm’s Fairy-Tale, and the pirates
-were not trapped by the children, so I cannot
-make a happy ending, for it was not.</p>
-
-<p>The last or Eighth Crusade was led by a king
-of France called Louis. He was so pious and so
-devoted to the Lord that he was made a saint
-and ever after has been called St. Louis. Yet
-this Crusade failed, and ever since Jerusalem has
-been ruled by the Mohammedans until just recently,
-when, in 1918, it was captured by the
-English, and this, then, was really the Last
-Crusade.</p>
-
-<p>Not all the Crusaders were good Christians.
-Like some people nowadays, a great many were
-Christian only in name. In fact, though strange
-to say, quite a number of the Crusaders were
-nothing but scalawags, looking for excitement
-and adventure, and they went on a Crusade
-merely as an excuse to rob and plunder.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_303"></span></p>
-
-<p>The Crusades did not succeed in their object,
-which was to keep Jerusalem for the Christians.
-Yet in spite of that, they did a great deal of good.
-When the Crusades first started, the Crusaders
-were not nearly as civilized as the people they
-went to conquer. But travel sometimes teaches
-people more than books, and it taught the Crusaders.
-They learned the customs of the other
-lands through which they went. They learned
-languages and literature. They learned history
-and art.</p>
-
-<p>There were then no public schools. Only a
-very, very few people had any education at all.
-So the Crusades did what schools might have
-done. They taught the people of Europe and
-put an end to the Dark Ages of ignorance.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig65.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_304"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c53">53</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Bibles Made of Stone and Glass</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">How</span> often do you go to church?</p>
-
-<p>Probably not more than once a week&mdash;on
-Sundays.</p>
-
-<p>But in the Middle Ages people usually went to
-church every day and often several times a day.
-They did not go only when there was a church
-service. They went to say their prayers by themselves;
-they went to tell their troubles to the
-priest, to get advice from him, to burn a candle
-to the Virgin Mary, or simply to chat with their
-friends.</p>
-
-<p>All during the Crusades, and immediately after
-the Crusades, the chief thing that people thought
-about was their church.</p>
-
-<p>There was only one church in a neighborhood,
-and every one went to the same church for there
-were no Baptists, nor Episcopalians, nor Methodists;
-all were just Christians.</p>
-
-<p>The church was every one’s meeting-house,
-and so people naturally gave as much money and
-time and labor as they could to make their church
-the best that could be built. That is why there<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305"></span>
-were built in France and other parts of Europe
-at this time many of the finest churches and cathedrals
-in the world. These churches and cathedrals
-are still standing, and, because they are so
-beautiful, people go long distances to see them.</p>
-
-<p>Do you know what a cathedral is? A cathedral
-is not just a large church. It is the church of a
-bishop. In the chancel of this church there is a
-special chair for the bishop. This bishop’s chair
-is called in Latin a “cathedra,” and so his church
-is named a cathedral after this chair.</p>
-
-<p>These churches and cathedrals were nothing
-like the old Greek and Roman temples; they were
-not like anything that had ever been built before.</p>
-
-<p>If you have ever built a house out of blocks,
-you probably did it this way: first you stood two
-blocks upright, and then you laid another block
-across the top of these for a roof. This is the
-way the Greeks and Romans built.</p>
-
-<p>But the Christians throughout Europe at that
-time did not build in this way at all.</p>
-
-<p>When you were building toy-houses, instead of
-laying a single block across the two standing ones,
-you may perhaps have tried leaning two blocks
-together like the sides of a letter A for a roof?
-If you did, you know what happened: the two
-leaning blocks pushed over the sides, and <i>crash</i>!
-everything tumbled. Well, these churches were
-built somewhat in this way, with stones arched<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306"></span>
-across the standing stone columns. But to keep
-the stone arches from pushing over the standing
-stone columns the builders put up props or
-braces. These props or braces were made of
-stone, too, and these props of stone were called
-<i>flying buttresses</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig66.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Flying buttresses&mdash;Apse of Notre Dame.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The people in Italy thought this a crazy way
-of building. They thought such buildings must
-be shaky and might easily topple over&mdash;like a
-house of cards. The Goths who had conquered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307"></span>
-Italy in 476 were wild and ignorant and after
-that people called anything wild and ignorant
-“Gothic.” So people called all buildings such as
-I have just described “Gothic,” although the
-Goths had nothing to do with the buildings, for
-they had all died long years before.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, from my description you, too, may
-think such buildings propped up by flying buttresses
-must have been tottering and ugly, but
-they were neither. They were not rickety, for
-though occasionally one that was not carefully
-built did collapse, the largest and best are still
-standing to-day. And although there were old-fashioned
-people who thought no building was
-beautiful that was not built in the Roman or
-Greek style, we have come to admire the great
-beauty of these so called Gothic buildings.</p>
-
-<p>But there were other ways in which the Gothic
-churches were different from the Greek and
-Roman temples. Before a Gothic church was
-started, a very large cross was first drawn on the
-ground with its head towards the east, because
-that is the direction of Jerusalem. On this cross-shaped
-plan, the church was built so that if you
-looked down from above on the finished building,
-it was shaped like a cross with the altar always
-toward the east.</p>
-
-<p>Gothic churches had beautiful spires or <i>arrows</i>,
-which have been likened to <i>fingers pointing to</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_308"></span>
-<i>heaven</i>. The doorways and windows were not
-square or round at the top, but pointed, like
-hands placed together in prayer.</p>
-
-<p>Nearly the whole side of a Gothic church was
-made of glass. These large windows were not,
-however, plain white glass, but beautiful pictures
-made of colored glass. Small pieces of different
-colors were joined together at their edges with
-lead to make what looked like wonderful paintings.
-But these pictures were much finer than
-ordinary paintings, for the light shone through
-the stained glass and made the colors brilliant as
-jewels&mdash;blue like the clear sky, yellow like sunlight,
-red like a ruby. These pictures in glass
-told stories from the Bible. They were like colored
-illustrations in a book. So the people who
-could not read, and very few could read, were
-able to know the Bible stories just by looking
-at these beautiful illustrations.</p>
-
-<p>Statues of saints and angels and characters in
-the Bible were carved in the stonework of the
-church. So the churches were like Bibles of stone
-and glass.</p>
-
-<p>Besides these holy beings, strange, grotesque
-beasts were also made in stone&mdash;monsters like no
-animal that has ever been seen in nature. These
-creatures were usually put on the outside edge
-or corner of the roof or they were used for waterspouts
-and called <i>gargoyles</i>. They were supposed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309"></span>
-to scare away evil spirits from the holy
-place.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig67.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Gargoyle.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>No one now knows who were the architects or
-the builders of these Gothic churches or who were
-the sculptors or artists. Almost
-every one did some work on the
-church, for it was <i>his</i> church.
-Instead of giving money he gave
-his time and labor. If he had
-any skill, he carved stone or
-made stained glass. If he had
-no skill he did the work of a common
-laborer.</p>
-
-<p>Some of these Gothic churches took hundreds
-of years to build, so that the workmen who started
-them never lived to see them finished. Some of
-the most famous cathedrals are Canterbury
-Cathedral in England, the Cathedral of Notre
-Dame in Paris, and Cologne Cathedral in Germany.</p>
-
-<p>Cologne Cathedral took the longest of all to
-build, as it was not entirely finished until about
-seven hundred years after it was begun! The
-beautiful Cathedral of Rheims in France was
-almost destroyed by the gun-fire of the Germans
-in the Great War only a few years ago.</p>
-
-<p>Gothic churches were built, with loving care,
-of stone and jeweled glass. Nothing but the best
-was thought good enough. To-day almost all<span class="pagenum" id="Page_310"></span>
-churches are still built with spires, pointed doors
-and some stained glass windows, and often the
-altar is toward the east. But although they imitate
-the Gothic style in these things, they seldom
-have stone ceilings, as Gothic churches had, nor
-flying buttresses, nor walls of stained glass. The
-ceilings are usually of wood, the spire often of
-wood, also, and even the whole building of wood
-or some cheap material. Real Gothic was enormously
-expensive and difficult, and nowadays
-people haven’t the time, the money, nor the
-interest to build in such a way.</p>
-
-<p>And that is the story of Gothic churches that
-the Goths had nothing to do with.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig68.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_311"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c54">54</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">John, Whom Nobody Loved</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Richard</span>, the Lion-Hearted, whom everybody
-loved, had a brother named John, whom nobody
-loved.</p>
-
-<p>This brother John became king, but he turned
-out to be a very wicked king.</p>
-
-<p>He is another one of the villains in history,
-whom we do not like, but like to hear about, and
-like to clap when he gets what he deserves.</p>
-
-<p>John was afraid that his young nephew named
-Arthur might be made king in his place, and so
-he had him murdered. Some say he hired others
-to do the killing; some say he murdered him with
-his own hands. This was a very bad beginning
-for his reign, but things got worse and worse as
-time went on.</p>
-
-<p>John got into a quarrel with the pope in Rome.
-The pope at that time was head of all Christians
-in the world and said what should be done
-and what should not be done in all churches everywhere.
-The pope ordered John to make a certain
-man bishop in England, and John said he
-wouldn’t do it. He wanted another man, a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312"></span>
-friend of his, to be bishop. The pope then said
-he would close up all the churches in England if
-John didn’t do as he was told. John said he
-didn’t care. Let the pope go ahead and
-close up all the churches if he wanted to. So
-the pope ordered all churches in England to be
-closed until John should give in. Nowadays
-this might not have made much difference, but
-then, as I have told you, the church was
-the one most important thing in every one’s
-life; in fact, nothing else mattered so much. The
-closing of the churches meant that no services
-could be held in any church. It meant that children
-could not be baptized, and so, if they died,
-it was believed they could not go to heaven. It
-meant that couples could not be married. It
-meant that the dead could not be given a Christian
-burial.</p>
-
-<p>The people of England were shocked. It was
-as if Heaven had put a curse on them. They
-were afraid that terrible things would happen to
-them. Of course the people blamed John, for he
-was the cause of the churches’ being closed. They
-were so angry at him that he became scared&mdash;afraid
-what his people might do to him. When at
-last the pope threatened to make another man
-king of England in his place&mdash;yes, the pope had
-as much power as that&mdash;John in fear and trembling
-gave in and agreed to do everything that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_313"></span>
-at first he had said he would not do and more besides.
-But John was pig-headed. He was always
-doing the wrong thing and sticking to it.</p>
-
-<p>John had an idea that the world was made for
-the king and that people were put upon the earth
-simply so that the king might have servants to
-work for him, to earn money for him, to do what
-he wished them to do. Many of the kings of
-olden days felt the same way, though they did not
-go as far as John did. John would order people
-who were rich to give him whatever money he
-wanted. If they refused to give him all he asked,
-he would put them in prison, have their hands
-squeezed in an iron press until the bones cracked
-and the blood ran, or he would even put them
-to death.</p>
-
-<p>John got worse and worse until at last his
-barons could not stand his actions any longer.
-So they made him prisoner and took him to a
-little island in the Thames River called Runnymede.
-Here they forced John to agree to certain
-things which they had written down in Latin.
-This was in the Year 1215; and 1215 was a bad
-date for John, but a good date for the English
-people. This list of things which the barons
-made John agree to was called by the Latin name
-for a great agreement, which is Magna Carta,
-or Charta.</p>
-
-<p>John did not agree to Magna Carta willingly,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_314"></span>
-however. He was as angry and furious as a
-spoiled child, who kicks and screams when forced
-to do something he does not want to do. But he
-had to agree, nevertheless.</p>
-
-<p>John was unable to write his name, and so he
-could not sign the agreement as people sign contracts
-nowadays. But he wore a seal-ring which
-was used by people who could not sign their
-names, and this seal he pressed into a piece of
-hot wax which was dropped on the agreement
-where one would have signed.</p>
-
-<p>John agreed in Magna Carta to give the barons
-some of the rights that we think every human
-being should have anyway, without an agreement.
-For instance, a person certainly has the right
-to keep the money that he earns, and he has the
-right not to have it taken away from him unlawfully.
-A person also has the right not to be put
-in prison or be punished by the king or any one
-else unless he has done something wrong and unless
-he has had a fair trial. These are two of the
-rights that John agreed to in Magna Carta.
-There were quite a number of others.</p>
-
-<p>John didn’t keep his agreement, however. He
-broke it the very first time he had a good chance,
-as a person usually does when he is forced to
-agree to something against his will. But John
-died pretty soon; and so, as far as he was concerned,
-Magna Carta didn’t matter much. But<span class="pagenum" id="Page_315"></span>
-kings who came after him were made to agree
-to the same things. So ever after 1215 the king
-in England was supposed to be the servant of the
-people, and not the people servants of the king
-as they had been before that time.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig69.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_316"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c55">55</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Great Story-Teller</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Far</span> away from England,</p>
-
-<p class="pad6b">Far off in the direction of the rising sun,</p>
-
-<p><span class="pad6d">’Way</span> beyond Italy and Jerusalem and the
-Tigris and Euphrates and Persia and all the
-other places we have so far heard about, was a
-country called Cathay&mdash;C-A-T-H-A-Y.</p>
-
-<p>If you looked down at your feet, and the world
-were glass, you would see it on the other side.</p>
-
-<p>Cathay is the same place we now call China.
-The people in Cathay belonged to the yellow
-race, the same race to which the Chinese belong.</p>
-
-<p>There had been people living in Cathay, of
-course, all through the centuries that had passed,
-but little was known of this land or of its people.</p>
-
-<p>But in the thirteenth century or twelve hundreds,
-one of these tribes of yellow people called
-Mongols or Tartars, arose out of the East, like
-a black and terrifying thunderstorm, and it
-seemed for a while as if they might destroy all
-the other countries whose histories we have been
-hearing about. The ruler of these people was a
-terrible fighter named Genghis Khan. Genghis<span class="pagenum" id="Page_317"></span>
-Khan had an army of Tartar horsemen who were
-terrific fighters. Genghis and his Tartars were
-a good deal like Attila and his Huns&mdash;only
-worse. Indeed, some people think Attila and his
-Huns were Tartars also.</p>
-
-<p>Genghis usually found some excuse for making
-war on others, but if he couldn’t find a good excuse
-he made up one, for he was bent on conquering.
-He and his Tartars thought no more of
-killing than would tigers or lions let loose.</p>
-
-<p>So Genghis and his horsemen swept over the
-land from Cathay toward Europe. They burned
-and destroyed thousands upon thousands of
-towns and cities and everything in their way.
-They slew men, women, and children by the million.
-No one was able to stop them. It seemed
-as if they were going to wipe off of the face of
-the earth all white people and everything that
-white people had built.</p>
-
-<p>Genghis Khan had conquered the whole land
-from the Pacific Ocean to the eastern part of Europe.
-But at last he stopped. With this kingdom
-he seemed to be satisfied. And he might well
-have been satisfied, for it was larger than the
-Roman Empire or that of even Alexander the
-Great.</p>
-
-<p>Even when Genghis died, things were no better,
-for his son was just as frightful as his father
-and conquered still more country.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_318"></span></p>
-
-<p>But the grandson of Genghis Khan was much
-less ferocious than his grandfather had been. He
-was named Kublai Khan, and he was quite different
-from his father and grandfather. He
-made his capital at a place in China now called
-Peking and ruled over this vast empire that he
-had inherited from his father. Kublai’s chief
-interest was in building magnificent palaces and
-surrounding himself with beautiful gardens, and
-he made such a wonderful capital for himself that
-Solomon in all his glory did not live in such splendor
-as did Kublai Khan.</p>
-
-<p>Now, far, far off from Peking and the palace
-of Kublai Khan, in the north of Italy was a city
-built on the water. Its streets were of water,
-and boats were used instead of carriages. This
-city was called Venice. About the Year 1300
-there were living in Venice two men named Polo.
-The Polos got an idea in their heads that they
-would like to see something of the world. So
-these two Venetians, and the son of one of them
-named Marco Polo, started off toward the rising
-sun looking for adventure, just like boys in story-books
-who go off to seek their fortunes. After
-several years of travel, always toward the east,
-they at last came to the gardens and to the magnificent
-palace of Kublai Khan.</p>
-
-<p>When Kublai Khan heard that strange white
-men from a far-off place and an unknown country<span class="pagenum" id="Page_319"></span>
-were outside the palace, he wanted to see
-them. So they were brought into his presence.
-They told Kublai Khan all about their own land.
-They were good story-tellers, and they made it
-interesting. They told him also about the Christian
-religion and many other things that he had
-never heard of.</p>
-
-<p>The emperor was so much interested in the
-Polos and in the stories they told about their
-country that he wanted to hear more. So he persuaded
-them to stay with him and tell him more.
-He gave them rich presents. Then he made them
-his advisers and assistants in ruling his empire.
-So the Polos stayed on for years and years and
-years and learned the language and came to be
-very important people in Cathay.</p>
-
-<p>At last after they had spent about twenty years
-in Cathay the Polos thought it was about time to
-go home and see their own people again. So they
-begged leave to return. Kublai Khan did not
-want them to go. They were so useful to him and
-helped him so much in ruling that he didn’t want
-to lose them. But in the end he did let them go,
-and they started back to what once had been
-their home.</p>
-
-<p>When they at last arrived in Venice, they had
-been away so long and had been traveling so far
-that no one knew them. They had almost forgotten
-how to speak their own language, and they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_320"></span>
-talked like foreigners. Their clothes had become
-worn out and ragged by their long trip. They
-looked like tramps, and not even their old friends
-recognized them. No one would believe that
-these ragged, dirty strangers were the same fine
-Venetian gentlemen who had disappeared almost
-twenty years before.</p>
-
-<p>The Polos told their townspeople all about
-their adventures and the wonderfully rich lands
-and cities that they had visited. But the townspeople
-only laughed at them, for they thought
-them story-tellers.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Polos ripped open their ragged garments,
-and out fell piles of magnificent and costly
-jewels, diamonds and rubies and sapphires and
-pearls&mdash;enough to buy a kingdom. The people
-looked in wonder and amazement and began to
-believe.</p>
-
-<p>Marco Polo told his stories to a man who wrote
-them down and made a book of them called “The
-Travels of Marco Polo.” This is an interesting
-book for you to read even to-day, although we
-cannot believe all the tales he told. We know
-that he exaggerated a great many things, for he
-liked to amaze people.</p>
-
-<p>Marco Polo described the magnificence of
-Kublai Khan’s palace. He told of its enormous
-dining-hall, where thousands of guests could sit
-down at the table at one time. He told of a bird<span class="pagenum" id="Page_321"></span>
-so huge that it could fly away with an elephant.
-He said that Noah’s Ark was still on Mount
-Ararat, only the mountain was so high and so
-dangerous to climb on account of the ice and
-snow with which it was covered that no one could
-go to see if the ark really were there.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig70.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_322"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c56">56</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">“Thing-a-ma-jigger” and “What-cher-may-call-it”<br />
-or a Magic Needle and a<br />
-Magic Powder</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">About</span> this same time that Marco Polo returned
-from his travels, people in Europe began
-to hear and talk about a magic needle and a magic
-powder that did remarkable things, and some
-say that Marco brought them back from Cathay,
-but this we doubt. The little magic needle when
-floated on a straw or held up only at its middle
-would always turn towards the north no matter
-how much you twisted it. Such a needle put in
-a case was called a compass.</p>
-
-<p>Now, you may not see why such a little thing
-was so remarkable. But strange as it may seem,
-this little thing really made it possible to discover
-a new world.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have played the game in which a
-child is blindfolded, twisted around several times
-in the center of the room, and then told to go toward
-the door or the window or some other point
-in the room. You know how impossible it is for
-one who has been so turned round to tell which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_323"></span>
-way to go, and you know how absurd one looks
-who goes in quite the opposite direction when he
-thinks he is going straight.</p>
-
-<p>Well, the sailor at sea was something like such
-a blindfolded child. Of course, if the weather
-were fine he could tell by the sun or the stars
-which way he should go. But when the weather
-was cloudy and bad there was nothing for him to
-go by. He was then like the blindfolded child.
-He might easily become confused and sail in just
-the opposite direction from the way he wanted
-to go without knowing the difference.</p>
-
-<p>This was perhaps one of the chief reasons why
-sailors, before the compass was used, had not
-gone far out of sight of land. They were afraid
-they might not be able to find their way back.
-So only that part of the world was known which
-could be reached by land or without going far out
-of sight of land.</p>
-
-<p>But, with the compass, sailors could sail on and
-on through storm and cloudy weather and keep
-always in the direction they wanted to go. They
-simply had to follow the little magnetic needle
-suspended in its box. No matter how much the
-boat turned or twisted or tossed, the little needle
-always pointed to the north. Of course sailors
-did not always want to go north, but it was very
-easy to tell any other direction if they knew which
-was north. South was exactly opposite, east was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_324"></span>
-to the right, and west was to the left. So all they
-had to do was to steer the boat on the course in
-whatever direction they wished.</p>
-
-<p>It was a long while, however, before sailors
-would use a compass. They thought it was bewitched
-by some magic, and they were afraid to
-have anything to do with such a thing. Sailors
-are likely to be superstitious, and they were
-afraid that if they took the compass on board it
-might bewitch their ship and bring them bad luck.</p>
-
-<p>The other magic thing was gunpowder.</p>
-
-<p>Never before 1300 had there been such things
-in Europe as guns or cannons or pistols. All
-fighting had been done with bows and arrows or
-swords or spears or with some such weapons. A
-sword can only be used on a man a few feet away,
-but with guns an enemy may be killed and walls
-battered down miles away. But after gunpowder
-was invented the armor which the old knights
-wore was of course no longer of any use, for it
-could not protect them from shot and shell. So
-gunpowder has changed fighting completely and
-made war the terrible thing it has become.</p>
-
-<p>Although Marco Polo was supposed to have
-told about gunpowder and its use in cannons as
-he had seen it in the East, most people think that
-an English monk named Roger Bacon knew
-about gunpowder and also about the compass and
-perhaps invented them. The monk Bacon knew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_325"></span>
-about so many things which people at that time
-thought were magic that he was supposed to be
-in league with the devil, and so he was put in
-prison. Bacon was the wisest man of his time,
-but he was ahead of his time. If he were living
-now he would be honored as a great scientist and
-inventor. But people thought he knew <i>too</i> much&mdash;that
-any one who knew as much as he did was
-wicked&mdash;that he was prying into God’s secrets,
-which God did not want any one to know.</p>
-
-<p>Others, however, give the credit or the blame
-for the invention of gunpowder to a German
-chemist named Schwarz. They say that one day
-Schwarz was mixing some chemicals in an iron
-bowl with an iron mixer called a <i>pestle</i>, such as
-druggists use, when, all of a sudden, the mixture
-exploded and shot the iron pestle right up
-through the ceiling. Schwarz was much surprised;
-he had had a narrow escape from being
-killed; but this gave him an idea. Immediately
-he set to work to think out a way to use the same
-mixture in battle to shoot iron pestles at the
-enemy. Some people think it would have been
-far better if the pestle had struck and killed Mr.
-Schwarz at the time, and if his secret had been
-destroyed with him. We might then never have
-had the terrible wars and the killing of millions
-of human beings which have resulted from this
-discovery. It was quite a while, however, before<span class="pagenum" id="Page_326"></span>
-gunpowder was made strong enough to do
-much damage. In fact, it was over a hundred
-years before fighting with guns entirely took the
-place of fighting with bows and arrows.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig71.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_327"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c57">57</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Thelon Gest Wart Hate Verwas</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Is this</span> another Latin heading?</p>
-
-<p>No, it’s English.</p>
-
-<p>Don’t you understand English?</p>
-
-<p>It was 1338, and Edward III was king of
-England. Edward III wanted to rule France
-as well as England. He said he was related to
-the former king of France and had a better right
-to the country than the one who was ruling. So
-he started a war to take France, and the war he
-started lasted more than a hundred years. So
-this is known as the Hundred Years’ War and
-it is:</p>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Longest War that Ever Was!</p>
-
-
-<p>The English army sailed over from England
-and landed in France. The first great battle was
-fought at a little place called Crécy. The English
-army was on foot and was made up chiefly
-of the common people. The French army were
-mostly knights clad in armor on horseback&mdash;the
-society people.</p>
-
-<p>The French knights on horseback thought<span class="pagenum" id="Page_328"></span>
-themselves much finer than the common English
-soldiers who were on foot, as a man in a motor-car
-is likely to look down on the man who is
-walking.</p>
-
-<p>The English soldiers, however, used a weapon
-called the <i>longbow</i>, which shot arrows with terrific
-force, and they completely whipped the
-French knights in spite of the fact that the
-knights were nobles, were trained to be fighters,
-rode on horses, and were protected by armor.</p>
-
-<p>Cannon were used by the English in this battle
-for the first time. The cannon, however, did not
-amount to much nor do very much harm. They
-were so weak that they simply tossed the cannon-balls
-at the enemy as one might throw a basketball
-or football. They scared the horses of the
-French but did little other damage. But this was
-the beginning of what was before long to be the
-end of knights and armor and feudalism.</p>
-
-<p>The battle of Crécy was only the beginning of
-the Hundred Years’ War. The next year after
-the battle of Crécy a horribly contagious disease
-called the Black Death attacked the people of
-Europe. It was like the plague in Athens in the
-Age of Pericles, but the Black Death did not attack
-just one city or country. It was supposed to
-have started in Cathay, but it spread westward
-until it reached Europe. There was no running
-away from it. It spread far and wide over the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_329"></span>
-whole land and killed more human beings than
-any war that has ever been. It was called Black
-Death because black spots came out all over the
-body of any one who caught it, and he was certain
-to die within a few hours or a day or two. There
-was no hope. No medicine had any effect. Many
-people committed suicide just as soon as they
-found they had the disease. Many died just
-from fright, actually “scared to death.”</p>
-
-<p>It lasted two years, and millions upon millions
-caught the disease. Half of the people of Europe
-died of it. Whole towns were wiped out,
-and in many places no one was left to bury the
-dead. Dead bodies lay where they had fallen&mdash;on
-the street, in the doorway, in the market-place.</p>
-
-<p>The crops in the fields went to waste, for there
-was no one to gather them. Horses and cows
-roamed over the country at will, for there was no
-one to care for them. The plague attacked even
-sailors at sea, and ships were found drifting about
-on the water with not a soul alive left on board,
-with not even one left to steer the ship.</p>
-
-<p>What if it had killed every last man, woman,
-and child in the world! What then would have
-been the future history of the world?</p>
-
-<p>But, as if there were not enough people dead
-already, the Hundred Years’ War still went on
-year after year. The soldiers who had fought at
-Crécy had been dead for years. Their children<span class="pagenum" id="Page_330"></span>
-had grown up, fought, and died; their grandchildren
-had grown up, fought and died, and
-their great-grandchildren had done the same;
-and the English army was still fighting in
-France. The French prince at that time was
-very young and weak, and the French were almost
-in despair&mdash;hopeless&mdash;because they had no
-strong leader to help them drive out the English
-after all these many years.</p>
-
-<p>Now, in a little French village there was living
-a poor peasant girl, a shepherdess, called Joan
-of Arc. As she watched her flocks of sheep, she
-had wonderful visions. She heard voices calling
-to her, telling her she was the one who must lead
-the French armies and save France from England.
-She went to the prince’s nobles and told
-them her visions. But they did not put any faith
-in her or her visions, and they did not believe she
-was able to do the things she thought she could.</p>
-
-<p>To test her, however, they dressed up another
-man as the prince and put him on the throne
-while the prince stood at one side with the nobles.
-Then they let Joan into the room. When Joan
-entered the royal hall, she gave one look at the
-man who was seated on the throne and dressed up
-as prince. Then without hesitating she walked
-directly past him and went straight to the <i>real</i>
-prince. Before him she knelt and said, “I have
-come to lead your armies to victory.” The prince<span class="pagenum" id="Page_331"></span>
-at once gave her his flag and a suit of armor, and
-she rode out at the head of all the army and had
-him crowned king.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig72.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Joan of Arc at the stake.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The French soldiers took heart again. It<span class="pagenum" id="Page_332"></span>
-seemed as if the Lord had sent an angel to lead
-them, and they fought so hard and so bravely that
-they won many battles.</p>
-
-<p>The English soldiers, however, thought that it
-was not the Lord but the devil who had sent Joan
-and that she was not an angel but a witch, and
-they were very much afraid of her. At last, the
-English made her prisoner. The French king,
-whom she had saved, in spite of all she had done
-for him, didn’t even try to save her. Now that
-things were going his way, he didn’t like to have
-a woman running things, and the soldiers didn’t
-like to have a woman ordering them around, and
-they were glad to be rid of her.</p>
-
-<p>The English tried her for a witch, judged her
-guilty of being a witch, and then they burned her
-alive at the stake.</p>
-
-<p>But Joan seemed to have brought the French
-good luck, to have put new life into their armies,
-for from that time on, France increased in
-strength, and after more than a hundred years of
-fighting at last drove the English out of the
-country. In one hundred years of fighting hundreds
-of thousands of people had been wounded
-and crippled and blinded and killed, and after it
-all England was no better off, just the same as
-when she started&mdash;all the fighting all for nothing.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_333"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c58">58</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Print and Powder<br />
-or<br />
-Off with the Old<br />
-On with the New</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Up to</span> this time there was not a printed book in
-the whole world. There was not a newspaper.
-There was not a magazine. All books had to be
-written by hand. This, of course, was extremely
-slow and expensive, so there were very few of
-even these handwritten books in all the world.
-Only kings and very wealthy people had any
-books at all. Such a book as the Bible, for instance,
-cost almost as much as a house, and so no
-poor people could own such a thing. Even when
-there was a Bible in a church, it was so valuable
-that it had to be chained to keep it from being
-stolen. Think of stealing a Bible!</p>
-
-<p>But about 1440 a man thought of a new way to
-make books. First he put together wooden letters
-called type, and then smeared them with
-ink. Then he pressed paper against this inky
-type and made a copy. After the type was once<span class="pagenum" id="Page_334"></span>
-set up, thousands of copies could be made quickly
-and easily. This, as you of course know, was
-printing. It all seems so simple, the wonder is
-that no one had thought of printing thousands of
-years before.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig73.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Gutenberg at his press.<br />
-Comparing a printed sheet with a manuscript.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>It is generally believed that a German named
-Gutenberg made the first printed books about
-1440, so he is called the inventor of printing.
-And what do you suppose was the first book ever
-printed? Why, the book that people thought
-the most important book in the world&mdash;the Bible.
-This Bible was
-not printed in
-English, however,
-nor in German,
-but in
-Latin!</p>
-
-<p>The first book
-printed in English
-was made in
-England by an
-English man
-named Caxton,
-and you would
-never guess what the English book was. It was
-a description of the game of chess, the game that
-the Arabs had invented.</p>
-
-<p>Before this time few people, even though they
-were kings and princes, knew how to read, because
-there were no books to teach them how to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_335"></span>
-read and few books for them to read if they had
-learned, and so what was the use of learning.</p>
-
-<p>You can see how difficult it must have been
-for people throughout the Middle Ages, without
-books or newspapers or anything printed, to learn
-what was going on in the world, or to learn about
-anything that one wanted to know.</p>
-
-<p>But, now that printing had been invented, all
-that was changed. Story-books and school-books
-and other books could be made in large numbers
-and very cheaply. People who never before were
-able to have any books could now own them.
-Every one could now read all the famous stories
-of the world and learn about geography, about
-history, about anything he wanted to know. So
-the invention of printing was soon to change
-everything.</p>
-
-<p>The Hundred Years’ War had at last come to
-an end soon after the invention of printing.</p>
-
-<p>At the same time something else that was a
-thousand years old came to an end.</p>
-
-<p>The Mohammedans whom we haven’t heard
-of for a long time, had tried to capture Constantinople
-in the seventh century, but had been
-stopped, as I told you, by tar and pitch that the
-Christians poured down on them.</p>
-
-<p>But in 1458 the Mohammedans once again attacked
-Constantinople. This time, however, the
-Mohammedans were Turks, and they didn’t try
-to batter down the walls of the city with arrows.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_336"></span>
-They used gunpowder and cannon. Cannon had
-been used at Crécy more than a hundred years
-before, but they had done little damage. Since
-that time, however, they had become greatly improved.
-Against the power of this new invention
-the walls of Constantinople could not stand, and
-finally the city fell. So Constantinople became
-Turkish, and the magnificent Church of Santa
-Sophia, which Justinian had built a thousand
-years before, was turned into a Mohammedan
-mosque. This was the end of all that was left of
-the old Roman Empire&mdash;the other half of which
-had fallen in 476.</p>
-
-<p>Ever after the downfall of Constantinople in
-1453, wars were fought with gunpowder. No
-longer were castles of any use. No longer were
-knights in armor of any use. No longer were
-bows and arrows of any use&mdash;against this new
-kind of fighting. There was a new sound in the
-world, the sound of cannon-firing: “Boom!
-boom! boom!” Before this, battles had not been
-very noisy except for shouts of the victors and
-the moans of the dying. So 1453 is called the
-end of the Middle Ages, and the beginning of the
-New Ages that were to follow.</p>
-
-<p>Gunpowder had put an end to the Middle
-Ages. The invention of printing and that little
-magic needle, the compass, did a great deal to
-start the New Ages.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_337"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c59">59</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Sailor Who Found a New World</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">What</span> book do you like best?</p>
-
-<p>“Alice in Wonderland”?</p>
-
-<p>“Gulliver’s Travels”?</p>
-
-<p>One of the first books to be printed and one
-that boys at that time liked best was</p>
-
-<p>
-“The Travels of Marco Polo”<br />
-</p>
-
-<p>One of the boys who loved to read these stories
-of those far-away countries of the East with their
-gold and precious jewels was an Italian named
-Christopher Columbus. Christopher Columbus
-was born in the city of Genoa, which is in the top
-of the “boot.” Like a great many other boys
-who were born in seaport towns, he had heard the
-sailors on the wharves tell yarns of their travels,
-and his greatest ambition in life was to go off to
-sea and visit all the wonderful lands of which he
-had read and been told. At last the chance came,
-and, though only fourteen years old, he made his
-first voyage. After that, Columbus made many
-other voyages and grew to be a middle-aged
-man, but he never got to these countries he had
-read about in “The Travels of Marco Polo.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_338"></span></p>
-
-<p>Many sea-captains of that time were trying
-to find a shorter way to India than the long and
-tiresome one that Marco Polo had taken. They
-felt sure there was a shorter way by sea and now
-that they had the compass to guide them they
-dared to go far off searching for such a waterway.</p>
-
-<p>By this time many books had already been
-printed. Some of these books on travel were
-written by the old Greeks and Romans and declared
-what was thought to be a crazy notion
-that the world was not flat but round. Columbus
-had read these books and he said to himself that
-if the world is really round, one should be able
-to reach India by sailing toward the west. It
-should be much easier and shorter that way than
-if one took a boat to the end of the Mediterranean
-Sea and then went over land for thousands
-of miles the way Marco Polo had gone.</p>
-
-<p>The more Columbus thought of the idea, the
-surer he was that this could be done and the more
-eager he was to get a ship to try out his idea.
-But every one laughed at him and his notion
-as foolish. Of course, being only a sailor, he
-had no money to buy or hire a ship in which to
-make the trial and he could find no one to help
-him.</p>
-
-<p>So first Columbus went to the little country
-called Portugal. Portugal was right on the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_339"></span>
-ocean’s edge. It was to be expected then that the
-people of Portugal would be famous sailors, and
-they <i>were</i>&mdash;as famous as the Phenicians had been
-of old. So Columbus thought they might be interested
-and help. Besides, the king of Portugal
-was extremely interested in discovering new
-lands.</p>
-
-<p>But the king of Portugal thought, as the others
-did, that Columbus was foolish and would have
-nothing to do with him. The king wanted to
-make quite sure, however, that there was nothing
-in Columbus’s idea. Furthermore, if there were
-any new land, he wanted to be the first to discover
-it himself. So he secretly sent some of his sea-captains
-off to explore. After a while they one
-and all returned and stated that they had been as
-far as it was safe to go and that positively there
-was nothing at all to the west but water, water,
-water.</p>
-
-<p>So Columbus in disgust then went to the next
-country&mdash;Spain&mdash;which at that time was ruled
-by King Ferdinand and his queen Isabella. King
-Ferdinand and Queen Isabella were just then too
-busy to listen to Columbus. They were fighting
-with the Mohammedans, who had been in their
-country ever since 732, when, you remember, they
-got as far north as France. But at last Ferdinand
-and Isabella succeeded in driving the Mohammedans
-out of their country, and then Queen<span class="pagenum" id="Page_340"></span>
-Isabella became very much interested in Columbus’s
-ideas and plans and finally promised to help
-him. She even said she would sell her jewels, if
-necessary, to give him the money to buy ships.
-But she didn’t have to do this. So Columbus
-with her help was able to buy three little ships
-named the <i>Niña</i>, <i>Pinta</i>, and <i>Santa María</i>. So
-small were these three boats that nowadays we
-would have been afraid to go even out of sight
-of shore in them.</p>
-
-<p>At last everything was ready, and Columbus
-set sail from the Spanish seaport of Palos with
-about a hundred sailors. Many of the sailors
-were criminals, who had been given a choice between
-prison and this dangerous voyage. They
-chose to risk their lives rather than to stay in
-prison. Directly toward the setting sun into the
-broad Atlantic, Columbus steered. Past the
-Canary Islands he sailed, on and on, day and
-night, always in the same direction.</p>
-
-<p>See if you can get this idea&mdash;the idea that
-every one had at that time&mdash;that all there was of
-the world was what we have so far been studying
-about. Try to forget that you ever heard of
-North and South America. They, of course,
-knew of no such lands. Try to think of Columbus
-on deck scanning the waves in the daytime or
-peering off in the darkness at night, hoping
-sooner or later to sight, not a new land&mdash;he
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_342"></span>wasn’t looking for a new land&mdash;but for China or
-India.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig74.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Columbus arguing with his crew.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Columbus had been out for over a month, and
-his sailors began to get worried. It seemed impossible
-that any sea could be so vast, so endless,
-with nothing in sight before, behind, or on either
-side. They began to think about returning.
-They began to be afraid they would never reach
-home. They begged Columbus to turn back.
-They said it was crazy to go any farther; there
-was nothing but water ahead of them, and they
-could go on forever and ever, and there would
-never be anything else.</p>
-
-<p>Columbus argued with them, but it was no use.
-Finally he promised to turn back if they did not
-reach something very soon. As the days went
-on still with nothing new, the sailors plotted to
-throw Columbus overboard at night and so get
-rid of him. They would then sail home and tell
-those back in Spain that Columbus had fallen
-overboard by accident.</p>
-
-<p>At last, when all had given up hope except
-Columbus, a sailor saw a branch with berries on
-it floating in the water. Where could it have
-come from? Then birds were seen flying&mdash;birds
-that never get very far away from shore. Then
-one dark night, more than two months after they
-had set sail, they saw far off ahead a twinkling
-light. Probably no little light ever gave so much<span class="pagenum" id="Page_343"></span>
-joy in the world. A light meant only one thing&mdash;human
-beings&mdash;and land, land&mdash;land at last!
-And then on the morning of October 12, 1492,
-the three boats ran ashore. Columbus leaped
-out, and falling on his knees, offered up a prayer
-of thanks to God. He then raised the Spanish
-flag, took possession of the land in the name of
-Spain, and called it “San Salvador,” which means
-in Spanish, “Holy Saviour.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, Columbus thought this land was India
-that he had at last reached, though of course we
-know now that a great continent, North and
-South America, blocked his way to India. In
-fact, it was only a little island off the coast of
-America where he had landed.</p>
-
-<p>Strange men were the human beings he saw
-there. Their bodies and faces were painted, and
-they had feathers in their hair. As Columbus
-thought they must be people of India, he called
-them Indians, the name they still bear.</p>
-
-<p>Columbus went on to other islands near-by; but
-he did not find any gold nor precious stones such
-as he had expected, or the wonders that Marco
-Polo had described; and as he had been away so
-long, he started back again to Spain the way he
-had come. With him he took several Indians to
-show the people at home, and also some tobacco,
-which he found them smoking and which no one
-had even seen or heard of before.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_344"></span></p>
-
-<p>When he at last reached home safely again,
-people were overjoyed at seeing him and hearing
-of his discoveries. Everyone was wildly excited&mdash;but
-only for a while. People soon began to
-say it was nothing for Columbus to have sailed
-westward until land was found, that anyone could
-do that.</p>
-
-<p>One day when Columbus was dining with the
-king’s nobles, who were trying to belittle what
-he had done, he took an egg and, passing it
-around the table, asked each one if he could stand
-it on end. No one could. When it came back
-to Columbus, he set it down just hard enough to
-crack the end slightly and flatten it. Of course,
-<i>then</i> it stood up. “You see,” said Columbus,
-“it’s very easy if you only know how. So it’s
-easy enough to sail west until you find land after
-I have done it once and shown you how.”</p>
-
-<p>Columbus made three other voyages to America,
-four in all, but he never knew he had discovered
-a new world. Once he landed in South
-America, but he never reached North America
-itself.</p>
-
-<p>As Columbus did not bring back any of the
-precious jewels or wonderful things that those in
-Spain expected him to, people lost interest in
-him. Some were so spiteful and jealous of his
-success that they even charged him with wrongdoing,
-and King Ferdinand sent out a man to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_345"></span>
-take his place. Columbus was put in chains and
-shipped home. Although he was promptly set
-free, Columbus kept the chains as a reminder of
-men’s ingratitude and asked to have them buried
-with him. After this, Columbus made one other
-voyage, but when at last he died in Spain he was
-alone and almost forgotten even by his friends.
-What an end for the man who had given a new
-continent to the world and changed all history!</p>
-
-<p>Of all the men of whom we have heard, whether
-kings or queens, princes or emperors, none can
-compare with Columbus. Alexander the Great,
-Julius Cæsar, Charlemagne, were all killers.
-They took away. But Columbus <i>gave</i>. He gave
-us a new world. Without money or friends or
-luck, he stuck to his ideas through long years of
-discouragement. Although made fun of and
-called a crank and even treated as a criminal he
-never</p>
-
-<p class="pad7">
-gave up,<br />
-<span class="pad6b">gave out, nor</span><br />
-<span class="pad6d">gave in!</span>
-</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_346"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c60">60</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Fortune-Hunters</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> New World had no name.</p>
-
-<p>It was simply called the “New World,” as one
-might speak of the “new baby.”</p>
-
-<p>It had to have a name, but what should it be?</p>
-
-<p>Of course if we could have chosen the name,
-we should have called it “Columbia” after Columbus.
-But another name was selected, and this
-is how it happened.</p>
-
-<p>An Italian named Americus made a voyage to
-the southern part of the New World. Then he
-wrote a book about his travels. People read his
-book and began to speak of the new land that
-Americus described as Americus’s country. And
-so the New World came to be called America
-after Americus, although in all fairness it should
-have been named after Columbus; don’t you
-think so? Children sometimes have names given
-them which they would like to change when they
-grow up. But then it is too late. So we often
-speak and sing of our country as Columbia, although
-that is not the name on the map. And
-that is why we call a great many cities and towns
-and districts and streets Columbus or Columbia.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_347"></span></p>
-
-<p>After Columbus had shown that there was no
-danger of falling off the world and that there
-really was land off to the west, almost every one
-who had been hunting for India now rushed off
-in the direction Columbus had taken. “Copy
-cats!” A genius starts something; then thousands
-follow&mdash;imitate. Every sea-captain who
-could do so now hurried off to the west to look
-for new countries, and so many discoveries were
-made that this time is known as the Age of Discovery.
-Most of these men were trying to get
-to India. They were after gold and jewels and
-spices, which they thought they would find in
-India in great quantities.</p>
-
-<p>Now we can understand why people might go
-long distances in search of gold and precious
-stones, but they also went after spices&mdash;such as
-cloves and pepper&mdash;and you may wonder why
-they were so eager to get spices? You yourself
-may not like pepper very much, and you may dislike
-cloves. But in those days they didn’t have
-refrigerators filled with ice, and meats and other
-foods were often spoiled. We would have
-thought such food unfit to eat. But they covered
-it with spices to kill the bad flavor, and then
-food could be eaten that otherwise one could not
-have swallowed. Spices didn’t grow in Europe&mdash;only
-in the far east. So people paid big prices
-to get them, and that is why men made long journeys
-after them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_348"></span></p>
-
-<p>A Portuguese sailor named Vasco da Gama
-was one of those who were trying to get to India
-all the way by water. He did not, however,
-sail <i>west</i> as Columbus had done, but <i>south</i> down
-around Africa. Others had tried before to get
-to India by going south and around Africa,
-but none had gone more than part way. Many
-frightful stories were told by those who had
-tried but had at last turned back. These stories
-were like the tales of “Sindbad the Sailor.”
-They said that the sea became boiling hot; they
-said that there was a magnetic mountain which
-would pull out the iron bolts in the ship, and the
-ship would then fall to pieces; they said that there
-was a whirlpool into which a ship would be irresistibly
-drawn&mdash;down, down, down to the bottom;
-they said there were sea-serpents, monsters
-so large that they could swallow a ship at one
-gulp. The southern point of Africa was called
-the Cape of Storms, and the very name seemed
-to be bad luck, so that it was changed to Cape of
-Good Hope.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of all such scary stories, Vasco da
-Gama kept on his way south. Finally, after
-many hardships and many adventures, he passed
-round the Cape of Good Hope. Then he sailed
-on to India, got the spices that then were so
-highly prized, and returned safely home. This
-was in 1497, five years after Columbus’s first
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_350"></span>voyage, and Vasco da Gama was the first one to
-go to India by water. Spain had the honor of
-discovering a new land. Portugal had the honor
-of first reaching India by water.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<a href="images/fig75big.jpg">
-<img src="images/fig75.jpg" alt="" />
-</a>
-<p class="caption">15ᵗͪ &nbsp;Century Map of Africa</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>England also was to have the honor of making
-discoveries. In the same year that Vasco da
-Gama reached India, a man named Cabot set sail
-from England on a voyage of discovery. His
-first trip was a failure, but he tried again and
-finally came to Canada and sailed along the coast
-of what is now the United States. These countries
-he claimed for England, but he returned
-home, and England did nothing more about his
-discoveries until about a hundred years later.</p>
-
-<p>Another Spaniard named Balboa explored
-the central part of America. He was on the little
-strip of land that joined North and South America
-which we now call the Isthmus of Panama.
-Suddenly he came to another great ocean. This
-strange new ocean he named the South Sea, for
-although the Isthmus of Panama connects North
-and South America, it bends so that one looks
-<i>south</i> over the ocean.</p>
-
-<p>Then came the longest trip of all. A Portuguese
-named Magellan wanted to find a way to
-India <i>through</i> the New World, for he thought
-there must be some opening through which he
-might pass this new land that blocked the way.
-He tried to get his own country to help him.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_351"></span>
-But again Portugal made the same mistake she
-had made in the case of Columbus. She would
-not listen to Magellan. So Magellan went to
-Spain, and Spain gave him five ships.</p>
-
-<p>With these five ships Magellan sailed off across
-the sea. When he reached South America he
-sailed south along the shore trying to find a passage
-through the land. One place after another
-seemed to be the passage for which he was looking,
-but each one turned out to be nothing but
-a river’s mouth. Then one of his ships was
-wrecked, and only four were left.</p>
-
-<p>With these four ships he still kept on down the
-coast until he finally reached what is now Cape
-Horn. Through the dangerous opening there,
-since called after him the Straits of Magellan,
-he worked his way. One ship deserted and went
-back home the way it had come. Only three were
-then left.</p>
-
-<p>With these three ships he at last came into the
-great ocean on the other side, the same ocean that
-Balboa had called the South Sea. This Magellan
-named the “Pacific,” which means “calm,” because
-after all the storms they had had it seemed
-so calm and quiet. But food and water became
-scarce and finally gave out. Magellan’s men suffered
-terribly from thirst and hunger and even
-ate the rats that are always to be found on shipboard.
-Many of his men were taken sick and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_352"></span>
-died. Still he kept on, though he had lost most of
-the crew with which he had set out. At last he
-reached what are now the Philippine Islands,
-where the people were savages. Here he and his
-men got into a battle with the natives, and Magellan
-was killed. There were now not enough
-men left to sail three ships, and so one of these
-was burned, and only two were then left.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig76.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Magellan’s Victoria.<br /> (From an old print.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Two of the ships,
-however, out of the five
-with which Magellan
-had started out, still
-kept on. Then one of
-these was lost, disappeared,
-and was never
-heard of again, and
-only a single ship
-named the <i>Victoria</i>, remained. It seemed as if
-not one ship, not one man, would be left to tell
-the tale.</p>
-
-<p>Around Africa the <i>Victoria</i> struggled. Magellan’s
-men, worn out with hunger and cold and
-hardships, still battled against wind and storm.
-At last a leaky and broken ship with only eighteen
-men sailed into the harbor from which it had
-set out more than three years before. And so the
-<i>Victoria&mdash;Victory!</i>&mdash;Magellan’s ship, but without
-the heroic Magellan&mdash;was the first ship to sail
-completely round the world. This voyage settled<span class="pagenum" id="Page_353"></span>
-forever the argument that had been going
-on for ages, whether the earth was round or flat,
-for a ship had actually sailed around the world!
-And yet in spite of this proof for many more
-years thereafter there were people who still
-would not believe the world was round, and even
-to-day there are people who say the world is flat,
-but now we call them <i>cranks</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig77.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_354"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c61">61</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Land of Enchantment or the Search<br />
-for Gold and Adventure</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">All</span> sorts of marvelous tales were told about
-the wealth and wonders of the New World.</p>
-
-<p>It was said that somewhere in the New World
-there was a <i>fountain of youth</i>, and that if you
-bathed in it or drank of its water, you would
-become young again.</p>
-
-<p>It was said that somewhere in the New World
-there was a city called El Dorado built of solid
-gold.</p>
-
-<p>So every one who liked adventure and could
-get enough money together went off in search of
-these things that might make him famous or
-healthy, wealthy or wise, or forever young.</p>
-
-<p>One of these men was Ponce de León. Ponce
-de León was looking for the <i>fountain of youth</i>.
-While searching for this life-giving water, he discovered
-Florida. But instead of finding the
-fountain of youth, he lost his life in fighting with
-the Indians.</p>
-
-<p>Another one of these men was de Soto. He
-was searching for El Dorado, the city of gold.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_355"></span>
-While doing so he discovered the longest river
-in the world&mdash;the Mississippi. But instead of
-finding El Dorado, de Soto was taken sick with
-fever and died. Now, the Spaniards, to make the
-Indians fear them, had said that de Soto was a
-god and could not die. So in order to cover up
-the fact that de Soto had actually died his men
-buried him at night in the river he had discovered.
-They then told the Indians that he had
-gone on a trip to heaven and would presently
-return.</p>
-
-<p>The central part of America was called Mexico.
-Here lived at that time a tribe of Indians
-known as Aztecs. These Aztecs were more civilized
-than the other Indians that the explorers
-had come across. They did not live in tents but
-in houses. They built fine temples and palaces.
-They made roads and aqueducts, something like
-those of the Romans. They had enormous treasures
-of silver and gold. And yet the Aztecs worshiped
-idols and sacrificed human beings to them.
-Their king was a famous chief named Montezuma.</p>
-
-<p>A Spaniard named Cortés was sent to conquer
-these Aztecs. He landed on the shore of Mexico
-and burned his ships so that his sailors and soldiers
-could not turn back. The Aztecs thought
-these white-faced people were gods who had come
-down from heaven and that their ships with their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_356"></span>
-white sails were white-winged birds that had
-borne them. They had never seen horses, some
-of which the Spaniards had brought over across
-the water, and they were astonished at what
-seemed to them terrible beasts that the white
-men rode. When the Spaniards fired their cannons,
-the Aztecs were terrified. They thought
-it was thunder and lightning that the Spaniards
-had let loose.</p>
-
-<p>Cortés moved on toward the Aztec capital,
-the City of Mexico, which was built on an island
-in the middle of a lake. The natives he met on
-the way fought desperately, but as they had only
-such weapons as men used in the Stone and
-Bronze Ages, they were no match against the
-guns and cannons of the Spaniards.</p>
-
-<p>Montezuma, their chief, wishing to make
-friends with these white gods, sent Cortés rich
-gifts, cart-loads of gold, and when Cortés reached
-the capital city Montezuma treated him as a
-guest instead of an enemy and entertained him
-and could not do enough for him. Cortés told
-Montezuma all about the Christian religion and
-tried to make him a Christian also, but Montezuma
-thought his own gods just as good as the
-Christian God, and he would not change. Then
-suddenly Cortés took Montezuma prisoner, and
-terrible fighting began. At last Montezuma was
-killed, and Cortés of course succeeded in conquering<span class="pagenum" id="Page_357"></span>
-Mexico, for though the Aztecs fought
-desperately and bravely, shot and shell were too
-much for them.</p>
-
-<p>In Peru in South America was still another
-tribe of civilized Indians even more wealthy than
-the Aztecs. They were called Incas, and it was
-said that their cities were paved with gold.</p>
-
-<p>Another Spaniard named Pizarro went to
-Peru to conquer it as Cortés had conquered Mexico.
-Pizarro told the ruler, who was called the
-Inca, that the pope had given the country to
-Spain. The Inca had never heard of the pope
-and must have wondered what the pope had to do
-with Peru and how he could give it away. So
-naturally the Inca would not give up his country
-to Spain. Then Pizarro <i>took</i> it away. He had
-but a few hundred men, but he had cannon, and
-of course the Incas could not stand out against
-cannon.</p>
-
-<p>France and other countries of Europe also
-sent out explorers to conquer parts of America,
-and then missionaries to teach the Indians the
-Christian religion, but these you will hear more
-about when you study American History.</p>
-
-<p>Many of the explorers were really pirates,
-even worse pirates than the Norsemen who raided
-England and France, because they murdered
-people who were without equal weapons to fight
-back. The excuse they often gave for doing so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_358"></span>
-was that they wanted to make the natives Christians.
-No wonder that the natives did not think
-much of the Christian religion if it taught murder
-of people who could not defend themselves.
-The Mohammedans made converts with the
-sword, but the Christians made converts with
-shot and shell.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig78.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_359"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c62">62</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Born Again</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Here</span> is a long word for you: it is Renaissance.</p>
-
-<p>It means: born again.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, nothing can be born again. But
-people call this time we have now reached the
-Renaissance, the born-again time. This is the
-reason why they call it that.</p>
-
-<p>You remember the Age of Pericles, don’t you?
-when such beautiful sculptures and buildings
-were made in Athens. Well, in the fifteen hundreds
-not every one was rushing off to the New
-World in search of adventure. While the discoveries
-that I have told you about were taking
-place, there were living and working in Italy
-some of the greatest artists the world has ever
-known.</p>
-
-<p>Architects built beautiful buildings something
-like the old Greek and Roman temples. Sculptors
-made statues that were almost as beautiful
-as those of Phidias. People began to take an
-interest once more in the old Greek writers,
-whose books were now printed for every one to
-read. It seemed almost as if Athens in the Age<span class="pagenum" id="Page_360"></span>
-of Pericles had been born again. So that is
-why people speak of this time as the Renaissance.</p>
-
-<p>One of the greatest of these artists of the Renaissance
-was a man named Michelangelo.
-But Michelangelo was not just a painter; he
-was a sculptor, an architect, and a poet as well.
-Michelangelo thought nothing of spending years
-working on any statue or painting that he was
-doing. But when he had finished he had done
-something that people now go from all over the
-world to see.</p>
-
-<p>Nowadays, sculptors first model a statue in
-clay and then copy it in stone or cast it in bronze,
-but Michelangelo did not do this. He cut his
-figures directly out of the stone, without making
-a model first. It was as if he saw the figure imprisoned
-in the stone and then cut away the part
-that closed the figure in.</p>
-
-<p>A large block of marble had been spoiled by
-another sculptor. Michelangelo saw a figure of
-David <i>in</i> it, and, setting to work, he cut this
-young athlete <i>out</i>.</p>
-
-<p>He made also a statue of Moses sitting down.
-It is now in a church in Rome, and when you
-walk up to it it is so lifelike that it seems as if
-you were in the presence of the prophet Moses
-himself. The guide tells you that when Michelangelo
-had finished this statue of Moses he was
-so thrilled by the figure he had created that, feeling<span class="pagenum" id="Page_361"></span>
-it must come to life, he struck it on the knee
-with his hammer and commanded as he did so,
-“Stand Up”! And then the guide shows you a
-crack in the marble to prove that the story is
-true!</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig79.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Michelangelo at work.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The pope wanted Michelangelo to paint the
-ceiling of his own private chapel in Rome. This
-was called the Sistine Chapel. At first Michelangelo
-didn’t want to do the painting. He told
-the pope he was a sculptor and not a painter.
-But the pope insisted, and Michelangelo at last
-gave in. Once having agreed to do the work,
-however, Michelangelo gave himself heart and
-soul to it.</p>
-
-<p>For four years he lived in this room&mdash;the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_362"></span>
-Sistine Chapel&mdash;and hardly ever left it day
-or night. Beneath the ceiling, he built himself
-a platform, and, lying on this scaffold, he
-would read poetry and the Bible and work
-“as the spirit moved him.” Locking himself in,
-he would let no one enter, not even the pope himself.
-He wanted to be alone and to be left alone.</p>
-
-<p>The pope, however, felt that he was a privileged
-character, and one day, when he found
-the door left open, he came into the chapel to see
-how things were getting along. Michelangelo,
-thereupon, accidentally dropped some of his
-tools, and they just barely missed hitting the
-pope on the head. The pope was very angry,
-but he never returned uninvited again.</p>
-
-<p>People now go from all over the world to see
-this ceiling, which only can be viewed comfortably
-by lying on the floor or by looking at it in
-a mirror.</p>
-
-<p>Michelangelo lived to be nearly ninety years
-old, yet he had very little to do with people. He
-could not stand being bored by them. So he lived
-apart in the company of the gods and angels that
-he painted.</p>
-
-<p>Raphael was another famous Italian artist.
-He lived at the same time as Michelangelo. Raphael,
-however, was just the opposite of Michelangelo
-in most ways. Michelangelo liked to be
-by himself. Raphael loved company. He was
-very popular and constantly surrounded by his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_363"></span>
-friends and admirers, for everybody loved him
-on account of his genius and kindly nature.
-Young men swarmed about him, drinking in his
-words and humbly copying everything he did.
-He had fifty or more pupils studying and painting
-under him, and they went along with him
-whenever he went out even for a walk. They
-almost worshiped the ground he walked on.</p>
-
-<p>Raphael painted many beautiful pictures of
-the Virgin Mary with the infant Jesus. These
-were called Madonnas. Madonnas were almost
-the only kind of pictures that artists
-painted at that time. Raphael painted one
-especially beautiful picture of Mary and the
-Christ-child called the “Sistine Madonna.” This
-is considered one of the twelve greatest pictures
-in the world. It was painted for a little church,
-but it is now in a great picture-gallery, where
-it has a whole room to itself. No other pictures
-are thought worthy to have a place close by.</p>
-
-<p>Raphael died when he was still a young man,
-but he worked so hard and so continuously that
-he has left a large number of pictures. He
-painted only the very important parts of his
-pictures himself&mdash;perhaps only the faces. The
-body and hands and clothing he usually left to
-be painted by his pupils. They were glad to
-be allowed to do even a finger of a painting on
-which their master had worked.</p>
-
-<p>Michelangelo’s paintings were strong and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_364"></span>
-forcible as a man is supposed to be. Raphael’s
-paintings were sweet and lovely and graceful,
-as a woman is supposed to be.</p>
-
-<p>Leonardo da Vinci is another great artist who
-lived at this time. He was left-handed, yet he
-could do any number of things exceptionally
-well. He would be called a jack of all trades,
-but unlike most jacks of all trades, he was good
-at all. He was an artist, an engineer, a poet,
-and a scientist. It is said that he drew the first
-map of the New World that had the name of
-America on it. He made, however, very few
-paintings, because he did so many things beside,
-but these few pictures are extremely beautiful.
-One of these is “The Last Supper.” It
-is considered, as is the “Sistine Madonna,” one
-of the twelve greatest paintings in the world.
-Unfortunately, it was painted directly on a
-plastered wall, and in the course of time much
-of the plaster with the paint has peeled off, so
-that there is little now left of the original
-painting.</p>
-
-<p>Leonardo usually painted his women smiling.
-One of his most famous paintings is the picture
-of a woman called “Mona Lisa.” She has a
-smile that is called “quizzical.” You can hardly
-tell whether she is smiling <i>at</i> you or <i>with</i> you.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_365"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c63">63</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Christians Quarrel</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Some</span> people say young boys and girls can’t
-understand this chapter. They say it is too difficult.
-But I want to see if it is.</p>
-
-<p>Up to this time, as I have told you before,
-there had been only one Christian religion&mdash;the
-Catholic. There was no Episcopalian, nor Methodist,
-nor Baptist, nor Presbyterian, nor any
-other denomination. All were just Christians.</p>
-
-<p>But in the sixteenth century some people began
-to think that changes should be made in
-the Catholic religion.</p>
-
-<p>Others thought changes should not be made.</p>
-
-<p>Some said it was all right as it was.</p>
-
-<p>Others said it wasn’t all right as it was. So
-a quarrel started.</p>
-
-<p>This is the way the trouble began: The pope
-was building a great church called St. Peter’s in
-Rome. It took the place of the old church that
-Constantine had built on the spot where St.
-Peter was supposed to have been crucified head
-down. The pope wanted it to be the largest
-and finest church in the world, for Christ had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_366"></span>
-said, “Thou art Peter, and upon this rock
-[Peter means rock in Latin] I will build my
-church....” So the Church of St. Peter’s was
-to be the Capitol of the Christian religion. Both
-Michelangelo and Raphael had worked on the
-plans for the new church. In order to get
-marble and stone and other materials for this
-Church of St. Peter, the pope did as others
-before him had done; he tore down other buildings
-in Rome and used their stone for the new
-church.</p>
-
-<p>But besides all this the pope needed an enormous
-amount of money to build such a magnificent
-church as he had planned. So he started
-to collect from the people. Now, there was a
-man in Germany named Martin Luther who
-was a monk and a teacher of religion in a college.
-Martin Luther thought that not only this
-but also other things in the Catholic Church
-were not right. So he made a list of ninety-five
-things that he thought were not right and nailed
-them up on the church door in the town where
-he lived, and he preached against doing these
-things. The pope sent Luther an order, but
-Luther made a bonfire and burned it publicly.
-Many took sides with Luther, and before long
-there was a great body of people who had left
-the Catholic Church and no longer obeyed the
-pope.</p>
-
-<p>The pope called on the king of Spain to help<span class="pagenum" id="Page_367"></span>
-in this quarrel with Luther. The reason he
-called on him was this: The king of Spain was
-Charles V, the grandson of the Ferdinand and
-Isabella who had helped Columbus. He was
-not only a good Catholic but the most powerful
-ruler in Europe. The Spanish explorers had
-discovered different parts of America, and so
-Charles was owner of a large part of the New
-World. But he was emperor not only of these
-Spanish settlements in America but of Austria
-and of Germany as well. So it was quite natural
-that the pope should go to Charles for help.</p>
-
-<p>Charles commanded Luther to come to a city
-named Worms to be tried. He promised
-Luther that no harm would be done him, and so
-Luther went. When Luther arrived at Worms,
-Charles ordered him to take back all he had said.
-Luther refused to do so. Some of Charles’s
-nobles said Luther should be burned at the stake.
-But Charles, as he had promised, let him go
-and did not punish him for his belief. Luther’s
-friends were afraid, though, that other Catholics
-might do him harm. They knew Luther
-would take no care of himself, and so they themselves
-took him prisoner and kept him shut up
-for over a year, so that no one could harm him.
-While Luther was in prison he translated the
-Bible into German; it was the first time that the
-Bible had been written in that language.</p>
-
-<p>The people who protested against what the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_368"></span>
-pope did were called Protest-ants, and those
-Christians who are not Roman Catholics are
-still called Protestants to-day. The time when
-these changes were made in the Catholic form
-of worship was called the Re-form-ation, as the
-old religion was <i>re-formed</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Now, you may be a Catholic and your best
-friend may not be a Catholic, but that makes
-no difference in your friendship. But at that
-time those who were Catholics were deadly
-enemies of those who were not. Each side was
-sure it alone was right and the other side was
-wrong. Each side fought for the things it
-thought were right, fought the other side as
-furiously and madly and bitterly as if the other
-side were scoundrels and devils. Friends and
-relatives murdered each other because they
-thought differently about religion, and yet all
-were supposed to be Christians.</p>
-
-<p>Charles was greatly worried and troubled by
-the religious quarrels and other difficulties in
-his vast empire. He became sick and tired of
-being emperor and of having to settle all the
-many problems he had to solve. He wanted to
-be free to do other things that he was more interested
-in. Being king did not mean being
-able to do whatever you wanted, as some people
-think. So Charles did what few rulers have
-ever done voluntarily: he resigned&mdash;“abdicated,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_369"></span>
-as it is called&mdash;and gave up his throne
-to his son, who was named Philip II.</p>
-
-<p>Then Charles, glad to be rid of all the cares
-of state, went to live in a monastery. There he
-spent his time doing what he liked&mdash;what do
-you suppose?&mdash;making mechanical toys and
-watches&mdash;until he died!</p>
-
-<p>Now, the king of England at this time, when
-Charles was king of Spain, was Henry VIII.
-His last name was Tudor. So many kings had
-first names which were alike that such names
-were numbered to tell which Charles or Henry
-was meant and how many of the same name
-there had been before. Henry VIII was at
-first also a strong Catholic, and the pope had
-called him Defender of the Faith. But Henry
-had a wife whom he wanted to get rid of because
-she had no son. In order to get rid of
-her so that he might marry again, he had to have
-what was called a divorce, and the pope was
-the only one who could give Henry a divorce.
-Now, the pope at Rome was head of the Christian
-Church of the whole world and said what
-Christians could do or could not do, no matter
-whether they were in Italy or Spain or England.
-So Henry asked the pope to grant him
-this divorce. The pope, however, told him he
-would not give him a divorce.</p>
-
-<p>Now, Henry thought it was neither right nor<span class="pagenum" id="Page_370"></span>
-proper that a man in another country, even if he
-<i>were</i> pope, should say what could be done in
-England. He himself was ruler, and he didn’t
-intend to let any foreigner meddle in his affairs
-or give him orders.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig80.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Henry VIII and his second wife Anne Boleyn.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>So then Henry said that he himself would be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_371"></span>
-head of all the Christians in England; then he
-could do as he wished without the pope’s permission.
-So he made himself head, and then he
-divorced his wife. All the churches in England
-were now told by the king what they should do;
-the pope no longer had anything to say in the
-matter; the English churches obeyed the king,
-not the pope. This made the second big break
-in the Catholic Church.</p>
-
-<p>After this Henry VIII had five other wives,
-six in all; not of course all at one time, for
-Christians could only have one wife at a time.
-His first wife he divorced, the second he beheaded,
-the third died. The same thing happened
-to his last three wives: the first he
-divorced, the second he beheaded, and the third
-died&mdash;but Henry died before she did.</p>
-
-<p>Is this too difficult for you to understand?</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_372"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c64">64</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">King Elizabeth</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">King</span> Henry VIII had two daughters.</p>
-
-<p>One was named Mary, and one was named
-Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>Their last name was of course Tudor, the
-same as their father’s, although we do not
-usually think of kings and queens as having
-last names.</p>
-
-<p>King Henry had a son, also, and he was first
-to become king after his father died, for though
-he was younger than his sisters, a boy was supposed
-to be more fit to rule than a girl. But
-he didn’t live long, and then Mary was the first
-of the two sisters to become queen.</p>
-
-<p>“Mary, Mary, quite contrary” did not approve
-what her father had done when he turned
-against the pope and the Catholic Church.
-Mary herself was a strong Catholic and ready
-to fight for the pope and the Catholic Church.
-In fact, she wanted to have all who were not
-Catholics, all those who were Protestants, put
-to death. She thought that all those who did
-not believe as she did were wicked and should<span class="pagenum" id="Page_373"></span>
-be killed. Like the queen in “Alice in Wonderland,”
-she was always saying, “Off with his
-head!” This seems to us very unchristian, but
-in those days their ideas about such things were
-peculiar. Mary had the heads of so many people
-cut off that she was called Bloody Mary.</p>
-
-<p>Mary married a man who was just as strong
-a Catholic as she and even “bloodier.” He was
-not an Englishman, but a Spaniard, Philip II of
-Spain, son of Charles V, who had abdicated.</p>
-
-<p>Philip II was much sterner than his father
-had been. Philip tried to make those who were
-Protestants, or who were supposed to be Protestants,
-confess and give up Protestantism. If
-they did not do so, they were tortured as the old
-Christian martyrs had been tortured. This was
-called the Inquisition. Those suspected of being
-Protestants were tormented in all sorts of
-horrible ways. Some were tied up in the air by
-their hands, like a picture hung on the wall, until
-they fainted from the pain or else confessed
-what they were told to confess. Some were
-stretched on a rack, their heads pulled one way
-and their legs the opposite way, until their
-bodies were nearly torn apart. Those who were
-found guilty of being Protestants were killed
-outright, burned to death, or put slowly to
-death, so that they would suffer longer.</p>
-
-<p>The people whom Philip chiefly persecuted<span class="pagenum" id="Page_374"></span>
-were the Dutch people in Holland. Holland
-then belonged to his empire, and a great
-many of the Dutch people had become Protestants.</p>
-
-<p>Now, there was a Dutchman called William
-the Silent, because he talked little but did a
-great deal. William was furious at the way
-his people were treated. So he fought against
-Philip and at last succeeded in making his
-country free and setting up the Dutch Republic.
-But William the Silent was murdered by
-order of Philip.</p>
-
-<p>And that’s the kind of man Bloody Mary
-had for a husband.</p>
-
-<p>After Mary Tudor died, her sister, Elizabeth
-Tudor, became queen, though she ruled like a
-king. Elizabeth had red hair and was very vain
-and loved to be flattered. She had many lovers
-but she never married, and as a woman who
-never marries is called a virgin she was known
-as the Virgin Queen.</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth was a Protestant and was just as
-bitter against the Catholics as her sister and
-her sister’s husband had been against the Protestants.</p>
-
-<p>A relative of Elizabeth was queen of Scotland.
-Scotland was a country north of England,
-but at that time it was not a part of
-England, and its queen was named Mary Stuart.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_375"></span>
-Mary Stuart, Queen of Scots, was young, beautiful,
-and fascinating; but she was a Catholic,
-and so Elizabeth and she were enemies.</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth heard that Mary Stuart was trying
-to become queen of England as well as Scotland,
-so she had her, although a relative, put in prison.
-In prison Mary Stuart stayed for nearly twenty
-years and was then at last put to death by Elizabeth’s
-orders. It is hard for us to understand
-how any one could have his own relatives killed
-in this cold-blooded way, especially any one who
-pretended to be a Christian, but in those times
-it was a very common custom, as we see when
-we hear of so many murders committed by the
-rulers of the people. Philip II, the great champion
-of the Catholics, made up his mind to punish
-Elizabeth, his sister-in-law, for killing such
-a good Catholic as Mary Stuart.</p>
-
-<p>So he got together a large navy of very fine
-ships called the Spanish Armada. All Spain
-was very proud of this fleet. It was boastfully
-called the Invincible Armada; “invincible”
-means “unconquerable.”</p>
-
-<p>This Invincible Armada set forth in 1588 to
-conquer the English navy. Lined up in the
-shape of a half-moon, the ships sailed grandly
-toward England.</p>
-
-<p>The English fleet was composed only of little
-boats. But instead of going out to meet the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_376"></span>
-Armada in regular sea-battle as the Spaniards
-expected, the English ships sailed out and attacked
-the Spanish ships from behind and fought
-one ship at a time. The English were better
-fighters, and their small boats were quicker and
-more easily managed. They could strike a blow
-and get away before a Spanish ship could turn
-around into position to fire. So gradually they
-sank or destroyed the big Spanish boats one by
-one.</p>
-
-<p>Then the English set some old boats afire
-and started them drifting toward the Spanish
-fleet. As all boats at that time were of course
-made of wood, the Spaniards became frightened
-at these burning piles drifting down upon them,
-and part of the fleet sailed away. The rest tried
-to get back to Spain by sailing the long way
-round, north of Scotland. But a terrible storm
-struck them, and almost all the boats were shipwrecked,
-and thousands of dead bodies were
-washed up on shore. So the great Spanish
-Armada was destroyed, and with it ended the
-power of Spain at sea. She was no longer the
-great nation she had been.</p>
-
-<p>At the beginning of Elizabeth’s reign, the
-largest and most powerful country in the world
-was Spain; at the end of her reign it was England
-that was the most powerful. Ever
-since then her fleet, which King Alfred started<span class="pagenum" id="Page_377"></span>
-far back, has been the largest, and the saying is,
-“Britannia rules the waves.”</p>
-
-<p>People at that time thought it impossible for
-a woman to rule as well as a man, but under
-Elizabeth’s rule England in turn became the
-leading country of Europe. Then people said
-Elizabeth ruled <i>like</i> a man, that she had a man’s
-brain, a man’s will. In fact they said she was
-more man than woman&mdash;that she was a tomboy
-grown up&mdash;that’s why I call her “King Elizabeth.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig81.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_378"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c65">65</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Age of Elizabeth</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">This</span> story is about the Age of Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>My father always told me that it was impolite
-to talk about a lady’s age.</p>
-
-<p>But I’m not going to tell you how old Elizabeth
-was, though she did live and reign a great
-many years.</p>
-
-<p>I’m going to tell you some of the things that
-happened during her long life, for the time
-when she lived is what is called the Age of
-Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>There was a young man named Raleigh living
-when Elizabeth became queen. One day
-when it was raining and the streets were muddy,
-Elizabeth was about to cross the street. Raleigh
-saw her and, to keep her from soiling her shoes,
-ran forward, took off his beautiful velvet cape,
-and threw it in the puddle where she was about
-to step, so that she might cross upon it as upon
-a carpet. The queen was greatly pleased with
-this thoughtful and gentlemanly act, and she
-made him a knight, so that he was then called
-Sir Walter Raleigh, and ever after that he was
-one of her special friends.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_379"></span></p>
-
-<p>Sir Walter Raleigh was much interested in
-the new country of America. Cabot had claimed
-a great part of it for England almost a hundred
-years before, but England had done nothing
-about it. Raleigh thought something should be
-done about it; he thought English people should
-settle there, so that other countries like Spain,
-which had made so many settlements in America,
-would not get ahead of England. So
-Raleigh got together several companies of
-English people and sent them over to an island
-called Roanoke, which was just off the coast of
-the present State of North Carolina. At that
-time, however, almost the whole coast of the
-United States as far north as Canada was called
-Virginia. It had been named Virginia in honor
-of the Virgin Queen Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>Some of these Roanoke colonists became discouraged
-with the hardships they had to suffer
-and so gave up and sailed back home again.
-Those who remained all disappeared. Where?
-No one knows. We think they must either
-have been killed by the Indians or have died of
-starvation. At any rate, not one was left to tell
-the tale. Among these Roanoke colonists was
-the first English child born in America&mdash;a girl,
-who had been named Virginia Dare, for the
-queen was very popular and a great many girls
-were named Virginia after her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_380"></span></p>
-
-<p>Some tobacco was brought back from Virginia,
-and Sir Walter Raleigh learned to
-smoke. This was such a strange and unknown
-thing at that time that one day while he was
-smoking a pipe a servant who saw smoke coming
-out of his mouth thought he was on fire and,
-running for a bucket of water, emptied it over
-his head.</p>
-
-<p>Virginia is still famous for its tobacco. At
-first tobacco was supposed to be very healthful,
-for the Indians seemed to have very good health
-and they smoked a great deal. Afterward, however,
-in the next reign, King James so hated tobacco
-that he wrote a book against it and forbade
-it to be used.</p>
-
-<p>After Queen Elizabeth had died, Raleigh
-was put in prison, for it was said he was plotting
-against the new king James, who came
-after Elizabeth. The prison where he was
-placed was the Tower of London, the old castle
-that William the Conqueror had built. Here
-Raleigh was kept for thirteen long years, and
-to pass the time away he wrote a “History of the
-World.” But at last he was put to death as
-many other great men were also.</p>
-
-<p>During the reign of Queen Elizabeth, there
-lived the great writer of plays, the greatest
-writer the world has ever known. This man was
-William Shakspere.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_381"></span></p>
-
-<p>Shakspere’s father could not write his name.
-Shakspere himself spent only six years at
-school. As a boy he was rather wild, and he was
-arrested for hunting deer in the forest of Sir
-Thomas Lucy at Stratford.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig82.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Shakspere reading to Elizabeth.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>When still a boy Shakspere married a girl
-older than himself named Anne Hathaway.
-After he had been married a few years he left
-her and their three children, left the little town
-of Stratford, and went up to the great city of
-London to seek his fortune. There Shakspere<span class="pagenum" id="Page_382"></span>
-got a job working around a theater, holding the
-horses of those who came to see the plays. Then
-he got a chance to act in the theater, and he became
-an actor, but he did not become a very
-good one.</p>
-
-<p>In those days the theaters had no scenery. A
-sign was put up to tell what the scene was supposed
-to be. For instance, instead of forest
-scenery, they would put up a sign saying, “This
-is a forest,” or instead of a room scene a sign
-saying “This is a room in an inn.” There were
-no actresses. Men and boys took the parts of
-both men and women.</p>
-
-<p>Shakspere was asked to change some of the
-plays that had already been written, so that they
-could be better acted. He did this very well;
-then he started in to write plays himself. Usually
-he took old stories and made them into plays,
-but he did it so wonderfully well that they are
-better than any plays that have ever been written
-before or since.</p>
-
-<p>Though Shakspere left school when only
-thirteen years old, he seems to have had a remarkable
-knowledge of almost everything under
-the sun. He shows in his plays that he knew
-about history and law and medicine, and he
-knew and used more words than almost any
-writer who has ever lived. Indeed, some people
-say that with the little education he had, he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_383"></span>
-could not possibly have written the plays himself,
-and so they have tried to prove that some
-one else must have written them. Some of the
-greatest of Shakspere’s plays are “Hamlet,”
-“The Merchant of Venice,” “Romeo and Juliet,”
-and “Julius Cæsar.”</p>
-
-<p>Shakspere made a good deal of money for
-those times&mdash;almost a fortune. Then he left
-London and went back to live in the little town
-of Stratford where he was born. Here at last
-he died and was buried in the village church.
-People wanted to move his body to a greater and
-handsomer place, to a famous church in London.
-But some one, perhaps Shakspere himself, had
-written a verse which was carved on his tombstone.
-The last line of this verse said, “And
-curst be he who moves my bones”; so they never
-were moved, for no one dared to move them.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_384"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c66">66</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">
-James the Servant<br />
-or<br />
-What’s In a Name?
-</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">What</span> does your name mean?</p>
-
-<p>
-If it is<br />
-<span class="pad6b">Baker or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6d">Miller or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6f">Taylor or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6g">Carpenter or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6h">Fisher or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6i">Cook,</span>
-</p>
-
-<p>it means that at some time one of your ancestors
-was a</p>
-
-<p>
-<span class="pad6b">baker, or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6d">miller, or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6f">tailor, or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6g">carpenter, or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6h">fisher, or</span><br />
-<span class="pad6i">cook.</span>
-</p>
-
-<p>If your name is Stuart or Steuart or Stewart
-or Steward, it means that at some time one of
-your ancestors was a steward for in olden days
-people knew very little about spelling, and they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_385"></span>
-spelled the same name in different ways. A
-steward was a chief servant.</p>
-
-<p>There was a family named Stuart in Scotland,
-and from chief servants or stewards they
-had become rulers of the Scots. Mary Stuart,
-whom Elizabeth had beheaded, was one of them.</p>
-
-<p>As Queen Elizabeth never married, she had
-no children to rule after her. She was the last
-of the Tudor family. So the English had to
-look around for a new king, and they looked to
-Scotland.</p>
-
-<p>Now, Scotland, as I have told you, was then
-a separate country and not a part of England
-as now. The son of Mary Stuart was then king
-of Scotland. His name was James Stuart. As
-he was related to the Tudors, the English invited
-him to come and rule over them. He accepted
-the invitation and was called James I. So we
-speak of his reign and that of his children as the
-reign of the Stuarts.</p>
-
-<p>The Stuart family reigned for about a hundred
-years, that is, from 1600 to 1700, all except
-about eleven years when England had no
-king at all.</p>
-
-<p>Many times the English must have been very
-sorry that they had ever invited James to be
-their king, for he and the whole Stuart family
-lorded it over the English people. They acted
-as if they were “lords of creation,” and the English
-people had to fight for their rights.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_386"></span></p>
-
-<p>A body of men called Parliament were supposed
-to make the laws for the English people.
-But James said that Parliament could do nothing
-that he didn’t like, and if they weren’t very
-careful he wouldn’t let them do any governing
-at all. James said that whatever the king did
-was right, that the king could do no wrong, that
-God gave kings the right to do as they pleased
-with their subjects. This was called the Divine
-Right of Kings. Naturally the English people
-would not put up with this sort of thing. Ever
-since the time of King John they had insisted on
-their own rights. The Tudors had often done
-things that the people didn’t like, but the
-Tudors were English. The Stuarts, however,
-were Scotch, and the people looked on them as
-foreigners; what they permitted in one of their
-own family they wouldn’t stand in these
-strangers whom they had invited into their family.
-So, of course, a quarrel was bound to start.
-But the real fight came with the next king and
-not with James.</p>
-
-<p>James was very fond of beefsteak, and one
-particular cut from the loin of beef he liked
-especially well. It was so delicious he thought it
-should be honored in some way, and so he made
-it a knight as if it were a brave and gallant
-gentleman and dubbed it “Sir Loin,” which we
-still call it to-day&mdash;although people have forgotten<span class="pagenum" id="Page_387"></span>
-all about how it got such a name, and
-some even say this is only a story and that he
-never did such a foolish thing, anyway.</p>
-
-<p>During King James’s reign the Bible was
-translated into English. This is probably the
-same Bible you read and that is called the King
-James Bible.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing much happened in England during
-James’s reign, but in some other countries a
-great deal did happen, although the king had
-little to do with it. English people made settlements
-in India, that far away country of the
-Brahmanists, which Columbus had tried to reach
-by going west; and these settlements there grew
-until India at last belonged to England. The
-English made settlements also in America, and
-these grew until at last part of America, too,
-belonged to England.</p>
-
-<p>One of these settlements in America was
-made in the South, and one was made in the
-North. Raleigh’s settlement at Roanoke had
-disappeared, as I told you; but in 1607 a boatload
-of English gentlemen sailed over to America
-looking for adventure and hoping to make
-their fortunes by finding gold. They landed in
-Virginia and named the place where they settled
-Jamestown after their king, James. But they
-found no gold, and as they were not used to
-work, they didn’t want to do any. But their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_388"></span>
-leader, Captain John Smith, took matters in
-hand and said that those that didn’t work
-shouldn’t eat. So then the colonists had to go
-to work.</p>
-
-<p>Back in England people had learned to
-smoke, and so the colonists began to raise
-tobacco for the English people. The tobacco
-brought the colonists so much money that it
-proved to be a gold-mine&mdash;of a different kind&mdash;after
-all. But the colonial gentlemen wanted
-some one to do the rough work for them. So a
-few years later some negroes were brought over
-from Africa and sold to the colonists as slaves
-to do the rough work. This was the beginning
-of slavery in America, which grew and grew
-until in the South almost all the work was done
-by colored slaves.</p>
-
-<p>A little later another company of people left
-England for America. These people were not
-looking for fortunes, however, as the Jamestown
-settlers had been. They were looking for a
-place where they might worship God as they
-pleased, for in England they were interfered
-with, and they wanted to find a place where no
-one would interfere with them. So this company
-of people left England in 1620 in a ship
-called the <i>Mayflower</i> sailed across the ocean
-and landed in a place called Plymouth, in
-Massachusetts, and there they settled. More<span class="pagenum" id="Page_389"></span>
-than half of them died the first winter from
-hardship and exposure in the bitter weather
-that they have in the North, but, nevertheless,
-none of those who were left would go back to
-England. This settlement was the beginning of
-that part of the United States called New England.
-You will hear more about both settlements
-later when you study American History.
-But at present we must see what was going on
-in England, for there were great “goings on”
-there.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig83.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_390"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c67">67</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A King Who Lost His Head</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever sung, “King William was
-King James’ son”?</p>
-
-<p>Well, that must have been some other King
-James, for King Charles was this King James’
-son, and he was Charles I.</p>
-
-<p>Charles was “a chip of the old block.” Like
-his father he believed in the Divine Right of
-Kings, that he alone had the right to say what
-should be done or what should not be done, and
-he treated the English people as King John
-had; that is, as if they were made simply to
-serve his pleasure and to do as he said.</p>
-
-<p>But this time the people didn’t carry him off,
-as they had King John, to agree to a paper.
-They started to fight. The king made ready to
-fight for what he thought his rights. So he
-got together an army of lords and nobles and
-those who agreed with him. Those who took
-his side even dressed differently from those who
-were against him. They grew their hair in long
-curls and wore a broad-brimmed hat with a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_391"></span>
-large feather and lace collars and cuffs of lace
-even on their breeches.</p>
-
-<p>Parliament also got together an army of the
-people who wanted their rights. They had their
-hair cut short and wore a hat with a tall crown
-and very simple clothes. A country gentleman
-named Oliver Cromwell trained a regiment of
-soldiers to be such good fighters that they were
-called Ironsides.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig84.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">King Charles and Oliver Cromwell.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The king’s army was made up of men who
-prepared for battle by drinking and feasting.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_392"></span>
-The parliamentary army prayed before going
-into battle and sang hymns and psalms as they
-marched.</p>
-
-<p>At last after many battles the king’s army
-was beaten and King Charles was taken prisoner.
-A small part of Parliament then took
-things in their own hands, and though they had
-no right to do so they tried King Charles and
-condemned him to death. They found him guilty
-of being a traitor and a murderer and other terrible
-things. Then he was taken out in front
-of his palace in London in the year 1649 and his
-head was cut off. People now feel that this was
-a shameful thing for the parliamentary army to
-do to the king, and even at that time only a
-part of the English people were in favor of it.
-He might have been sent away instead of being
-killed, or he might have had his office of king
-taken away from him.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver Cromwell, the commander of the parliamentary
-army then ruled over England for a
-few years. He was a coarse-looking person
-with very rough manners, but honest and religious,
-and he ruled England as a stern and
-strict father might rule his family. He would
-stand no nonsense. Once when he was having
-his picture painted&mdash;for there were no photographs
-then&mdash;the artist left out a big wart he
-had on his face. Cromwell angrily told him,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_393"></span>
-“Paint me as I am, wart and all.” Cromwell
-was really a king although he called himself Protector,
-but he did a great deal that was good for
-England.</p>
-
-<p>When Cromwell died his son became ruler
-after him, just as if he were the son of a king,
-but the son was unable to fill his father’s shoes.
-He meant well, but he hadn’t the brains or the
-ability that his father had, and so in a few
-months he resigned. Oliver Cromwell had been
-so strict that the English people had forgotten
-about their troubles under the Stuarts. So in
-1660 when the English found themselves without
-a ruler they invited back the son of Charles I,
-whom they had beheaded, and once more a
-Stuart became king. This was Charles II.</p>
-
-<p>Charles was called the Merry Monarch because
-all he seemed to think about was eating
-and drinking, amusing himself, and having a
-good time. He made fun of things that were
-holy and sacred. To revenge himself on those
-who had put his father to death he had those of
-them who were still living killed in the most
-horrible way one could think of. Those that
-were dead already, Oliver Cromwell among
-them, were taken from their tombs; then their
-dead bodies were hung and afterward beheaded.</p>
-
-<p>In his reign that old and terrible disease, the
-plague, broke loose again in London. Some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_394"></span>
-people thought that God had caused it, that He
-was shocked by the behavior of the king and his
-people especially toward holy things, that He
-was punishing them. The next year, 1666, a
-great fire started and burned up thousands of
-houses, and hundreds of churches were destroyed.
-But the Great Fire, as it was called,
-cleaned up the disease and dirt and was therefore
-really a blessing. London had been a city
-of wooden houses. It was rebuilt of brick and
-stone.</p>
-
-<p>Only one more Stuart ruler shall I tell you
-about&mdash;or rather a royal pair, William and
-Mary&mdash;because in their reign the fight between
-the people and their kings was once for all
-finally settled. In 1688 Parliament drew up an
-agreement called the Declaration of Right,
-which William and Mary signed. This agreement
-made Parliament ruler over the nation,
-and ever since, Parliament and not the king has
-been the real ruler of England. So I think we
-have heard enough of the Stuarts for a while.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_395"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c68">68</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Red Cap and Red Heels</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> last Louis I told you about was a saint&mdash;the
-Louis who went on the last Crusade.</p>
-
-<p>The two Louis I’m going to tell you about
-now were not saints&mdash;not by any means.</p>
-
-<p>They were Louis XIII and Louis XIV and
-they ruled France while the Stuarts were reigning
-in the seventeenth century in England.</p>
-
-<p>Louis XIII was king in name only. Another
-man told him what to do, and he did it. Strange
-to say, this other man was a great ruler of the
-church called a cardinal, who wore a red cap and
-a red gown. The cardinal’s name was Richelieu.</p>
-
-<p>Now, you are probably sick and tired of hearing
-about wars, but during the reign of Louis
-XIII another long war started, and I must tell
-you something about it for it lasted thirty years.
-It was therefore called the Thirty Years’ War.
-It was different from most wars. It was not a
-war of one country against another. It was a
-war between the Protestants and Catholics.</p>
-
-<p>Cardinal Richelieu was of course a Catholic<span class="pagenum" id="Page_396"></span>
-and the real ruler of France, which was a Catholic
-country. Nevertheless, he took sides with
-the Protestants, for they were fighting a Catholic
-country called Austria, and he wanted to
-beat Austria. Most of the countries in Europe
-took part in this war, but Germany was the
-battle-ground where most of the fighting was
-done. Even Sweden, a northern country of
-Europe which we have not heard of before, took
-part. The king of Sweden at this time was
-named Gustavus Adolphus, and he was called
-the Snow King because he was king of such a
-cold country, and also the Lion of the North,
-for he was such a brave fighter. I am mentioning
-him particularly because of all kings and
-rulers in Europe at this time he was the finest
-character. Indeed, most of the other rulers
-thought only of themselves, and they would lie
-and cheat and steal and even murder to get
-what they wanted, but Gustavus Adolphus was
-fighting for what he thought was right. Gustavus
-Adolphus was a Protestant, and so he
-came down into Germany and fought on the
-side of the Protestants. He was a great general,
-and his army won. But unfortunately he
-himself was at last killed in battle. The Protestants
-came out ahead in the Thirty Years’
-War, and at last a famous treaty of peace was
-made called the Treaty of Westphalia. By this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_397"></span>
-treaty it was agreed that each country should
-have whatever religion its ruler had; it could be
-Protestant or Catholic as the ruler wished.</p>
-
-<p>During the Thirty Years’ War the plague,
-that old deadly contagious disease we have
-heard of before, broke out in Germany. A little
-town named Oberammergau prayed that it
-might be spared. The townspeople vowed that
-if they were spared they would give a play of
-Christ’s life once every ten years. They <i>were</i>
-spared, and so every ten years, ever since then,
-with only a few exceptions, they have been giving
-what is called the Passion Play. As it is
-the only place in the world where it is ever given,
-tens of thousands of Christians from all over
-the globe travel to this little out-of-the-way
-village to see these peasants act the stories
-of Christ’s life. The play is given on Sundays
-during the summer of the tenth year and lasts
-all day long. There are about seven hundred
-people who take part, half of all the people in the
-town. It is a great honor to be chosen to play
-the part of a saint; it is the highest earthly honor
-to be selected to play the part of Christ; and it
-is a disgrace to be left out entirely.</p>
-
-<p>The next French king to rule after Louis
-XIII and Richelieu was Louis XIV.</p>
-
-<p>The people in England had at last succeeded
-in getting the power to rule themselves through<span class="pagenum" id="Page_398"></span>
-their Parliament. But in France Louis would
-let no one rule but himself. He said, “I am the
-state,” and he would let no one have a say in
-the government. This was the same as the
-Stuarts’ Divine Right of Kings, which the
-English people had put an end to. Louis ruled
-for more than seventy years. This is the longest
-time that any one in history has ever ruled.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig85.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Louis XIV.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Louis XIV was called the Grand Monarch,
-and everything he did was to show off. He was
-always parading and strutting about as if he
-were the leading character in a play and not
-just an ordinary human being. He wore corsets
-and a huge powdered wig and shoes with
-very high red heels, to make himself appear<span class="pagenum" id="Page_399"></span>
-taller. That, I suppose, is why some ladies to-day
-wear high heels called French heels. He
-carried a long cane, stuck out his elbows, turned
-out his toes, and strutted up and down, for he
-thought these things made him seem grand, important,
-imposing.</p>
-
-<p>All this may sound as if Louis were a silly person
-with no sense, but you must not get that idea.
-In spite of his absurd manners he made France
-the chief power in Europe. He was almost constantly
-fighting other countries, trying to increase
-the size of France and to add to his kingdom,
-but I have already told you so much about
-so many fights, that I’m not going to tell you
-any more about his just now, for you would
-probably not read it if I did. So France had
-her turn as leader of all the other countries as
-Spain and England had had.</p>
-
-<p>Louis built a magnificent palace at Versailles
-in which were marble halls, beautiful paintings,
-and many huge mirrors in which he could see
-himself as he strutted along. The palace was
-surrounded by a park with wonderful fountains.
-The water for the fountains had to be brought
-a long distance, and it cost thousands of dollars
-to have the fountains play just for a few minutes.
-Even to-day sight-seers visit Versailles
-to see the magnificent palace rooms and to
-watch the fountains play.</p>
-
-<p>But Louis surrounded himself not only with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_400"></span>
-beautiful things. He also surrounded himself
-with all the most interesting men and women of
-his time. All those who could do anything exceptionally
-well, all those who could paint well
-or write well or talk well or play well or look
-well, he brought together to live with him or near
-by him. This was called his <i>court</i>. Those in his
-Court were “in society.” They were the chosen
-few who looked down on all the others who were
-not in society.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig86.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Louis XIV getting ready for bed.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_401"></span></p>
-
-<p>This was all very fine for the people who
-were lucky enough to be “in society”&mdash;in
-Louis’s court. But the poor people of France,
-those not in his court, were the ones who had to
-pay Louis’s expenses and those of his court.
-They were the ones who had to pay for his parties
-and balls and feasts and for all sorts of presents
-which he gave his friends. So we shall see presently
-what happened. The poor people would
-not stand that sort of thing forever. “The worm
-will turn,” we say.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig87.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_402"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c69">69</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Self-Made Man</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Who</span> was the Father of His Country?</p>
-
-<p>I know what you will say:</p>
-
-<p>“George Washington.”</p>
-
-<p>But there was another man called “The
-Father of His Country” before Washington was
-born, and he was not an American.</p>
-
-<p>In the east of Europe there is a great country
-as large as our own, and its name is Russia.
-Very little had been heard of Russia before the
-Year 1700, for although it was the largest country
-in Europe, its people were only about half
-civilized. The Russians were a branch of the
-great Aryan family called Slavs, but although
-they were white people, they were living so close
-to the yellow people in China that they had become
-much like them in many of their ways.
-Then, too, the terrible Genghis Khan and his
-yellow Mongols had conquered Russia in the
-thirteenth century and ruled over the land. So
-although the Russians were Christians, they were
-in every other way more like the people of the
-East than like Europeans. The men had long<span class="pagenum" id="Page_403"></span>
-beards and wore long coats. The women wore
-veils like those the Turkish women wore. The
-people counted with balls strung on wires as the
-Chinese did.</p>
-
-<p>Well, just before 1700 there was born a Russian
-prince named Peter. When a small boy,
-Peter was very much afraid of the water. But
-he felt so ashamed that he, a prince, should fear
-anything that he forced himself to get used to
-the water. He would go to it and play in it
-and sail boats on it, although all the time he was
-almost scared to death. And so at last he not
-only got over this great fear but he came to
-like the water and boats more than any other
-playthings.</p>
-
-<p>When Peter grew up the thing he wanted
-more than anything else in the world was to
-make his country important in Europe, for before
-this time it had not been. It was big but
-not great. And his people had to be civilized.
-But before he could teach his own people, who
-were most of them very poor and ignorant, he
-had to learn himself. As there was no one in
-Russia who could teach him what he wanted to
-know, he disguised himself as a common laborer
-and went to the little country of Holland. Here
-he got a job in a shipbuilding yard and
-worked for several months, cooking his own food
-and mending his own clothes. While he was doing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_404"></span>
-this, however, he learned all about building
-ships and studied many other things besides, such
-as blacksmithing, cobbling shoes, and even pulling
-teeth.</p>
-
-<p>Then he went to England, and everywhere
-he went he learned all he could. At last he returned
-to his own country with the knowledge
-he had gained and set to work to make Russia
-over. First of all, Peter wanted Russia to have
-a fleet of ships as other nations had. But in
-order to have a fleet he had to have water for
-his ships, and Russia had almost no land bordering
-on the water. So Peter planned to take
-a sea-shore away from the neighboring country
-of Sweden.</p>
-
-<p>Now the king of Sweden at this time was
-Charles. He was the twelfth king named
-Charles that Sweden had had. Charles XII was
-hardly more than a boy, and Peter thought it
-would be an easy matter to beat this boy and
-help himself to whatever land he wanted on the
-water. But Charles was not an ordinary boy.
-He was an extra-ordinary boy, extra-ordinarily
-bright and gifted, and he had been unusually
-well educated besides. He knew several languages;
-he had learned to ride a horse when he
-was four years old and how to hunt and to fight.
-Besides all this, he feared neither hardship nor
-danger. Indeed, he was such a daredevil that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_405"></span>
-people called him the Madman of the North. So
-at first Peter’s army was beaten by Charles.</p>
-
-<p>But Peter took his beating calmly, simply remarking
-that Charles would soon teach the Russian
-army how to win. Indeed, so successful
-was Charles at first in fighting Peter and all
-others who threatened him that the countries of
-Europe began to think of him as Alexander the
-Great come to life again, and they feared he
-might conquer them all. But at last the Russians
-did win against Charles, and Peter got his
-sea-shore. Then Peter built the fleet for which
-he had been working and planning for so many
-years.</p>
-
-<p>The capital of Russia was Moscow. It was
-a beautiful city but near the center of that country
-and far from the water. This didn’t suit
-Peter at all. Peter wanted a fine city for his
-capital, but he wanted it right on the water’s
-edge, so that he could have his beloved ships
-close to him. So he picked out a spot not only
-on the water but mostly water, for it was chiefly
-a marsh. Then he put a third of a million people
-to work filling in the marsh, and on this he built
-a beautiful city. This city he called St. Petersburg
-in honor of his patron saint, the apostle
-Peter, after whom he himself had been named.
-The name of St. Petersburg was later changed
-to Petrograd and recently to Leningrad. Then<span class="pagenum" id="Page_406"></span>
-Peter improved the laws, started schools, and
-built factories and hospitals and taught his
-people arithmetic, so that they could count without
-having to use balls strung on strings. He
-made his people dress like other Europeans. He
-made the men cut off their long beards, which he
-thought looked countrified. The men thought
-it indecent to have no beards so some saved them
-to be placed in their coffins in order that at the
-day of resurrection they could appear before
-God unashamed. He introduced all sorts of
-things that he found in Europe but which were
-unknown in his own country, and he really made
-Russia over into a great European nation, so
-that is why he is called Peter the Great, the
-Father of his Country.</p>
-
-<p>Peter fell in love with a poor peasant girl,
-an orphan named Catherine, and married her.
-She had no education, but she was very sweet
-and lovely and bright and quick-witted, so the
-marriage turned out happily. The Russians
-were shocked at the idea of having a queen who
-was not a princess and was so low-born. But
-Peter had her crowned, and after he died she
-ruled over Russia.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_407"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c70">70</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Prince Who Ran Away</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">If</span> you put a P in front of Russia it makes&mdash;Prussia.
-This is the name of a little country in
-Europe, which is now a part of Germany.
-Russia was big, and Peter made it great.
-Prussia was small, but another king made it also
-great. This king was named Frederick. He,
-too, lived in the eighteenth century, but a little
-later than Peter, and he, too, was called “the
-Great”&mdash;Frederick the Great.</p>
-
-<p>Frederick’s father, who was the second king of
-Prussia, had a hobby for collecting giants&mdash;as
-you might collect postage-stamps. Wherever
-he heard of a very tall man, no matter in what
-country and no matter what it cost to get him,
-he bought or hired him. This collection of giants
-he made into a remarkable company of soldiers
-which was his special pride.</p>
-
-<p>He was a very cranky, cross, and bad-tempered
-old king. He treated his children terribly,
-especially his son Frederick, whom he
-called Fritz. Fritz had curls and liked music
-and poetry and fancy clothes. And his father<span class="pagenum" id="Page_408"></span>
-thought he was growing up to be a girl-boy.
-This disgusted his father, for he wanted a son
-who would be a soldier and fighter. His father
-when angry used to throw dishes at him, lock
-him up for days at a time, and feed him on bread
-and water and whip him with a cane. Finally
-Fritz could stand it no longer, and he ran away.
-He was caught and brought back. His father
-was so angry with his son for disobeying and acting
-as he had done that he was actually going to
-have him killed&mdash;yes, put to death&mdash;but at the
-last minute was persuaded not to do it.</p>
-
-<p>But here is a funny thing: When Fritz grew
-up to be Frederick, he turned out just what his
-father wanted him to be&mdash;a great soldier and
-fighter. He still loved poetry and even tried to
-write poems himself, and he was very fond of
-music and he played the flute very well, indeed.
-But Frederick wanted above everything else to
-make his country important in Europe; for before
-his time it was of little account, and no one
-paid much attention to it.</p>
-
-<p>Now, the neighboring country to Prussia was
-Austria. Austria was ruled over by a woman.
-This woman was named Maria Theresa. Maria
-Theresa had become ruler of Austria at the same
-time that Frederick had become king of Prussia.
-Some people thought a woman was not a fit person
-to rule over a country. Frederick’s father<span class="pagenum" id="Page_409"></span>
-had promised to let Maria Theresa alone&mdash;he
-had promised not to fight a woman&mdash;but when
-Frederick became king he wanted to add a part
-of Austria to his own country, and so he simply
-helped himself to the piece of Maria Theresa’s
-country that he wanted. He didn’t care if she
-was a woman or whether it was fair or not. Of
-course this started a war. Before long almost
-every country in Europe was fighting either
-with Frederick or against him. But Frederick
-not only succeeded in getting what he was after;
-he succeeded in holding on to it.</p>
-
-<p>Maria Theresa, however, would not give up.
-She wanted to get back what had been wrongfully
-taken away from her. So she began
-quietly and secretly to get ready for another
-war against Frederick. Quietly and secretly
-she got other countries to promise to help her.
-But Frederick heard of what she was doing, and
-suddenly he attacked her again, and for seven
-long years this next war went on. So this was
-called the Seven Years’ War. Frederick kept
-on fighting until he had beaten Austria for good
-and until he had gained his purpose, which was
-to make his little country of Prussia the most
-powerful country in Europe. He still held on
-to the part of Austria that he had at first taken
-away. Maria Theresa was a great queen, and
-she would have won against Frederick had he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_410"></span>
-been an ordinary king. But she had too strong
-a ruler against her. Frederick was one of the
-world’s smartest generals and too much for her.</p>
-
-<p>The Seven Years’ War, strange to say, was
-fought out not only in Europe but in far-off
-America, also. England had taken Frederick’s
-side. France and other countries had taken
-sides against him. So the English settlers in
-America, who were on Frederick’s side, fought
-the French settlers, who were against him.
-When, therefore, Frederick won in Europe, the
-English in America also won against the French
-in America. I am telling you all this because
-that is why we in America speak English instead
-of French to-day. If Frederick had lost,
-France would have won, and we here in America
-would probably now speak French instead of
-English.</p>
-
-<p>Frederick, like some other kings we have
-heard of before, thought nothing of lying or
-cheating or stealing if he had to in order to get
-the better of other countries. Fair means or
-foul means made no difference to him. But his
-own people he treated as if they were his children
-and did everything he could for them. Like
-a lioness with her cubs, he fought for his family,
-even with the world against him.</p>
-
-<p>There was a mill close by Frederick’s palace
-that belonged to a poor miller. As it was not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_411"></span>
-a pretty thing to be so near, the king wanted to
-buy it in order to tear it down and get rid of it.
-But the miller would not sell. Although Frederick
-the Great offered the miller a large sum
-of money, he refused. A great many kings
-would simply have taken the mill and perhaps
-put the miller in jail or put him to death, but
-Frederick did neither, for he thought his lowliest
-subject had his rights and that if he didn’t
-want to sell he shouldn’t be made to. So he
-left the miller undisturbed, and the mill stands
-to-day as it did then, close to the palace.</p>
-
-<p>Though Frederick was a German, strange to
-say, he hated the German language. He
-thought it the language of the uneducated. He
-himself spoke French and wrote in French and
-only spoke German when he had to talk to his
-servants or those who did not understand
-French.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig88.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_412"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c71">71</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">America Gets Rid of Her King</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Did</span> you know that we once had a king?</p>
-
-<p>His name was George.</p>
-
-<p>No, George Washington wasn’t a king.</p>
-
-<p>This was another George.</p>
-
-<p>You remember the Stuarts in England&mdash;James,
-Charles, and the rest of the family who
-ruled England for a hundred years from 1600
-to 1700. Well about 1700 England ran out of
-Stuarts&mdash;there were no more Stuart children.</p>
-
-<p>As England had to have another king, they
-asked a distant relative of the royal family over
-from one of the German states to rule England.
-Yes, from Germany to rule England. His
-name was George, and the English called him
-George I. George couldn’t even speak English.
-He was German and loved his own country
-much better than England, but he had
-agreed to come and rule over England, and he
-did so. You can imagine what sort of a king he
-was. His son, George II ruled after him, although
-he, too, was more German than English.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_413"></span>
-But when the grandson, George III, came to
-the throne he was a born and bred Englishman.
-It was in this grandson’s reign, in the reign of
-George III, that our own country, the United
-States, was born.</p>
-
-<p>When a wheel turns over we call it a <i>revolution</i>,
-which is a big name for a little thing.</p>
-
-<p>When a <i>country</i> turns over we also call it a
-revolution, which is a big name for a big thing.</p>
-
-<p>Our country had started with the two little
-settlements, or colonies, as they were called, of
-Jamestown and Plymouth. But it had grown
-and grown until there were now a number of
-settlements along the coast of the Atlantic
-Ocean. Most of the people who had settled here
-were English, and the king of England ruled
-over them. The king asked all these people to
-send him money, which was called taxes. Now,
-the money collected from taxes was not, of
-course, for the king to put in his pocketbook to
-use as he liked. It was supposed to be spent on
-the people who were taxed, to be used for roads,
-schools, police, and such things that are for the
-good of all.</p>
-
-<p>So these people along the coast who were paying
-money or taxes to the king far off across the
-water thought they ought to have a vote to say
-how this money should be spent and on what it
-should be spent. But they did not have a vote,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_414"></span>
-and so they thought they ought not to have to
-pay taxes to the king away off in England.</p>
-
-<p>One of the leading citizens of America at this
-time was a man named Benjamin Franklin. He
-was the son of a candlemaker, but from a poor
-boy who had once walked the streets of Philadelphia
-with a loaf of bread under each arm he
-had risen to a very honored position in the country.
-He had learned to be a printer and
-had started one of the first and best newspapers
-in the United States. He was a great thinker
-and had invented a stove and a lamp and had
-succeeded in getting electricity from the lightning
-in the clouds by flying a kite with a wire
-during a storm. He was one of the Wise Men
-of the West.</p>
-
-<p>Franklin was sent over to England to try to
-get the king to change his mind about taxing
-the colonies or to bring about some sort of agreement
-with him. But King George was hardheaded,
-and Franklin was unable to stop the
-king from doing what he had made up his mind
-to do.</p>
-
-<p>So the people in America, finding that talking
-did no good, started in to fight. They raised
-an army. Then they tried to find a good man to
-command the army. Such a leader must be
-honest and brave; he must have a good mind;
-he must love his country; and he must be a good<span class="pagenum" id="Page_415"></span>
-fighter. So they looked around for a man who
-had all these qualities, and they found one. The
-man they picked was honest and brave, for when
-he was a boy, he had cut down a favorite tree
-of his father’s just to try a new hatchet he had
-been given. In those days to cut down a cherry-tree
-was a crime for which by law a man could
-be put to death. When this boy was asked by
-his angry father if he had done it he said, “I cannot
-tell a lie; I did.” Of course, now you know
-who it was&mdash;George Washington.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig89.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">George Washington surveying Lord Fairfax’s farm.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>George learned to be a surveyor&mdash;that is, a
-man who measures land&mdash;and when only sixteen<span class="pagenum" id="Page_416"></span>
-years old he was employed to survey the
-large farm of Lord Fairfax in Virginia; that
-showed he had a good mind. He then had been
-a soldier and had fought the Indians bravely
-and well; that showed that he loved his country
-and was a good fighter. So George Washington
-was chosen to lead the American army
-against the English.</p>
-
-<p>The Americans did not at first think of starting
-a new country. They simply wanted the
-same rights that Englishmen in England had.
-But they soon found out that there was only one
-way to get those rights, and that was to start a
-new country independent of England. So a
-man named Thomas Jefferson wrote a paper
-which was called a Declaration of Independence&mdash;can
-you say it?&mdash;because it declared
-that the colonies were going to be independent
-of England. There were fifty-six Americans
-chosen by the people to sign it. Each one of the
-signers would have been put to death as a traitor
-to England if the United States had not won,
-and each signer knew it, yet he signed it nevertheless.
-But just signing this paper didn’t
-make England give up the colonies. Oh, no!
-King George’s armies tried to stop the colonies
-from getting away from the rule of England.</p>
-
-<p>Washington had a very small army with
-which to fight the English army, and very little<span class="pagenum" id="Page_417"></span>
-money with which to pay the soldiers or to supply
-them with food or clothes or powder and
-shot. One winter the soldiers nearly froze and
-starved to death, for they had little clothing and
-hardly any food but carrots, and it seemed as if
-the war could not go on unless they got help.
-Yet Washington kept up their spirits.</p>
-
-<p>Benjamin Franklin was sent across the ocean,
-not to England this time of course, but to France
-to see if he couldn’t get some help from that
-country. France hated England because she had
-lost part of America, Canada, in the Seven
-Years’ War, but at first France would not help.
-She took little interest in the fight for Washington’s
-army had lost a number of battles
-against the English, and people don’t like to
-back a loser. But the year after the Declaration
-of Independence the American army beat
-the English badly at a place called Saratoga in
-New York State. Then the king of France became
-more interested, and then he sent help to
-the colonies to carry on the war. A young
-French nobleman named Lafayette hurried
-over from France and fought under General
-Washington and did so well that he has made
-a great name for himself.</p>
-
-<p>England, seeing that things were going
-against her, now wanted to make peace with the
-Americans and give them the same rights that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_418"></span>
-English citizens had, but it was then too late. At
-the beginning of the war the Americans would
-have agreed to this and been glad to agree, but
-now they would agree to nothing less than entire
-independence of England; and so the War went
-on, for England would not let the colonies go.</p>
-
-<p>The English had been beaten by the Yankees,
-as they called them in the North, at a place called
-Saratoga. So then they sent their general, Lord
-Cornwallis, to the south of our country to see if
-he could beat the people there. General Greene
-was put in command of the Southern American
-soldiers. Lord Cornwallis tried to fight Greene,
-but Greene led Cornwallis a merry chase round
-the country until he was all tired out and finally
-went into a little place called Yorktown in
-Virginia. Here Cornwallis and his army were
-caught fast so that they could not get out. On
-one side was the American army, and on the
-water side were the French war-ships that had
-been sent over to help. So Cornwallis had to
-surrender.</p>
-
-<p>King George then said, “Let us have peace”;
-and in 1783 the war was ended by a treaty of
-peace, eight years after it had started, and the
-colonies were independent of England. This was
-called the Revolutionary War, and after it was
-over our country was called the United States.</p>
-
-<p>There were just thirteen of these original<span class="pagenum" id="Page_419"></span>
-colonies that joined as partners in this Union.
-That is why there are just thirteen stripes in
-our flag. Some people think thirteen is an unlucky
-number; but our flag with its thirteen
-stripes still waves over the land, and it has
-brought us good luck; don’t you think so?</p>
-
-<p>Washington was made the first President, and
-so he is called the Father of His Country; the
-First in War, the First in Peace, and the First
-in the Hearts of his Countrymen.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig90.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_420"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c72">72</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig91.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Measles</span> and Mumps are very catching.</p>
-
-<p>So are Revolutions.</p>
-
-<p>Just a little later than the Revolution of the
-thirteen colonies, the people in France had a
-Revolution, too. They saw how successful the
-Americans had been in their fight against the
-king of England, and so they rebelled against
-their own king and queen in France. This was
-called the French Revolution.</p>
-
-<p>The reason the French people rebelled against
-their king was because they had very little, and
-the king and his royal family and nobles seemed
-to have everything. Both the Americans and the
-French rebelled against paying taxes. With
-the Americans, however, it was a matter of principle
-more than anything else. Their taxes were
-not very large, but they thought them unjust.
-The French taxes, however, not only were unjust
-but they took almost everything away from the
-people.</p>
-
-<p>I have already told you how bad things were
-under Louis XIV, and they got worse until the
-people could stand it no longer.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_421"></span></p>
-
-<p>At this time the king of France was Louis
-XVI, and his queen was named Marie Antoinette.
-Although the people were so poor they
-had hardly anything to eat except a very coarse
-and bad-tasting kind of bread called black bread;
-they were compelled to pay the king and the
-nobles money so that they could live in fine
-style and have “parties”; and they had to do all
-sorts of work for them for nothing or next to
-nothing. If any one complained he was put in a
-great prison in Paris called the Bastille and left
-there to die. In spite of the fact that all the
-people were so terribly poor, the king and the
-queen and their friends lived in luxury and extravagance
-with everything in the world they
-wanted, all paid for by the poor people.</p>
-
-<p>Neither the king nor his wife was really
-wicked. They were simply young and thoughtless.
-They meant well, but like a great many
-well-meaning people they lacked common sense
-and did not know how others lived. They didn’t
-seem to understand that people <i>could</i> be poor,
-for they had so much themselves. Marie Antoinette
-was told that her subjects had no bread
-to eat. “Then why don’t they eat cake?” she is
-said to have asked.</p>
-
-<p>To right the wrongs of the people, a body of
-many of the best men from all France gathered
-together and, calling themselves the National<span class="pagenum" id="Page_422"></span>
-Assembly, tried to work out some plan to do
-away with all the injustice the people had been
-suffering. They wanted to make every one free
-and equal and give everybody a “say” in the government.</p>
-
-<p>But the poor had become so furiously mad at
-the way they had been treated by the rich that
-they would stand things no longer and a wild
-and angry mob of them attacked the old prison
-of the Bastille. They battered down the walls
-and freed the prisoners and killed the guards of
-the Bastille simply because they were servants
-of the king. Then they cut off the heads of the
-guards and stuck them on poles and, carrying
-them aloft, paraded through the streets of Paris.
-There were only about half a dozen prisoners in
-the old jail, so that freeing them didn’t matter
-much, but this attack was to show that the people
-would no longer allow the king to imprison them.</p>
-
-<p>The Bastille was stormed on July 14, 1789.
-This is the beginning of what is called the French
-Revolution, and this day is celebrated in France
-in almost the same way that our Fourth of July
-is, for it is the French Declaration of Independence
-against kings.</p>
-
-<p>Lafayette, who was now back in France, the
-same Lafayette who had helped the Americans
-fight their king, sent the key of the Bastille over
-to George Washington as a souvenir that his own<span class="pagenum" id="Page_423"></span>
-country had now overthrown its king and declared
-its independence.</p>
-
-<p>The king and queen were living in the beautiful
-palace at Versailles, the palace that Louis
-XIV had built. All the king’s nobles, when
-they heard what was taking place in Paris, became
-frightened and, deserting their king and
-queen, took to their heels and left the country.
-They knew pretty well what was going to happen,
-and they didn’t wait to see.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the National Assembly drew up
-what was called a Declaration of the Rights of
-Man, which was something like our Declaration
-of Independence. It said that all men were born
-free and equal, that the people should make the
-laws and the laws should be the same for all.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after the Declaration of Rights had been
-made, the mad mob from Paris, ragged and wild-looking,
-carrying sticks and stones, and crying,
-“Bread, bread!” marched out the ten miles to
-Versailles, where Louis and Marie Antoinette
-were still living. Up the beautiful grand staircase
-of the palace they rushed. The few guards
-remaining round the king were unable to hold
-them back. They captured the king and queen
-and took them prisoners to Paris. There they
-kept Louis and Marie Antoinette prisoners for
-several years. Once the king and queen tried
-to escape in disguise but were caught before<span class="pagenum" id="Page_424"></span>
-they could get out of the country and brought
-back.</p>
-
-<p>Then it was that the National Assembly drew
-up a Constitution&mdash;a set of rules by which the
-country should be justly governed. This the
-king agreed to and signed.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig92.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">French revolution crowd and guillotine.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_425"></span></p>
-
-<p>But that still wasn’t enough. The people
-wanted no king at all to rule over them. So
-about a year later they started a real republic
-like our own, and the king was sentenced to
-death. A Frenchman had invented a kind of
-machine with a big knife for chopping off heads.
-This was called the guillotine, and it was used
-instead of an ax, for it was quicker and surer.
-So the king was taken to the guillotine, and his
-head was cut off.</p>
-
-<p>But the people did not settle down quiet and
-contented when they had got rid of their king.
-They were afraid that those who were in favor of
-kings might start another kingdom. The people
-chose red, white, and blue as their colors and the
-“Marseillaise” as their national song; and everywhere
-they marched they carried the tricolor, as
-they called the three-colored flag, and as they
-marched they sang the “Marseillaise.”</p>
-
-<p>Then began what is called the Reign of Terror,
-and this is a tale of blood. A man named Robespierre
-and two of his friends were leaders in this
-Reign of Terror. Any one whom the people
-suspected of being in favor of kings they caught
-and beheaded. The queen was one of the first to
-have her head cut off. If any one even whispered,
-“there’s a man, or there’s a woman, or there’s a
-child who is in favor of kings,” that man, woman,
-or child would be rushed to the guillotine. If<span class="pagenum" id="Page_426"></span>
-any one simply hated another and wished to get
-rid of him, all he had to do was to point him
-out as in favor of kings, and off he would be
-taken to the guillotine. No one was sure of his
-life for a day. He never knew what moment
-some personal enemy might accuse him. Hundreds,
-then thousands, of suspected people were
-beheaded, and a special sewer had to be built to
-carry off the blood. But the guillotine, fast as
-it was, was too slow for the Terrorists. It could
-cut off but one head at a time, and so prisoners
-were lined up and shot down with cannons.</p>
-
-<p>People seemed to have gone wild, crazy, mad!
-They insulted Christ and the Christian religion.
-They put a pretty woman called the Goddess of
-Reason on the altar of the beautiful Church of
-Notre Dame and worshiped her instead of the
-Lord. They pulled down statues and pictures
-of Christ and the Virgin Mary. In their places
-they put statues and pictures of their own leaders.
-The guillotine was put up in place of the
-cross. They did away with Sundays. They
-made a week ten days long, and every tenth day
-they made a holiday instead of Sunday. They
-stopped counting time from Christ’s birth, because
-they didn’t want anything that had to do
-with Christ, and they began to call the year when
-the republic was started in 1792 the year 1.</p>
-
-<p>But Robespierre wished to rule alone, and he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_427"></span>
-plotted against his two friends. One of these he
-had beheaded, and the other was killed in his
-bath-tub by a girl named Charlotte Corday, who
-was in a rage at what he had done. So Robespierre
-was left alone. At last the people, in fear
-of this man who was such a monstrous and inhuman
-tyrant, rose up against him. When he
-found that he too, was to be put to death, he tried
-to commit suicide, but, before he could do so he
-was caught and taken to the guillotine, where he
-went to the same death to which he had sent
-countless others, and the Reign of Terror was
-ended. It was a pity that he hadn’t a thousand
-lives with which to pay for the thousands of lives
-he had taken away.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig93.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_428"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c73">73</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">A Little Giant</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">At</span> last the Revolution was stopped.</p>
-
-<p>It was stopped by a young soldier only about
-twenty years old and sixty inches tall.</p>
-
-<p>The Government was holding a meeting in
-the palace while a mad mob in the streets outside
-were trying to attack the palace. A young soldier
-had been given a few men and told to keep
-the mob away. The young soldier pointed cannons
-down each street that led to the palace, and
-no one dared to show himself. This young soldier
-was named Napoleon Bonaparte. He made
-such a fine record that people wanted to know
-who he was and where he came from.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon had been born on a little island
-called Corsica in the Mediterranean Sea. He
-was born just in time to be a Frenchman,
-for the island of Corsica had belonged to
-Italy and had only just been given to France
-a few weeks before he was born. As soon
-as he was old enough, he was sent off to a military
-school in France. There his French schoolmates
-looked upon him as a foreigner and didn’t have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_429"></span>
-much to do with him. But Napoleon made high
-marks in arithmetic, and he loved hard problems.
-Once he shut himself up in his room to
-work over a hard problem, and there he stayed
-for three days and nights until he had found the
-answer.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon showed by the way he put an end to
-the French Revolution that he was going to be
-a fine soldier, and so when he was only twenty-six
-years old he was made a general.</p>
-
-<p>Now, at this time all the other countries of
-Europe had kings. France had caught the fever
-of revolution from the Americans all the way
-across the ocean and had got rid of her kings.
-The kings of these other countries were afraid
-their people might catch the fever of revolution,
-too. So all of these other countries became enemies
-of France because France had put an end
-to her kings.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon was sent off to fight Italy. He had
-to cross the Alps, which Hannibal in the Punic
-Wars had crossed long before. But Hannibal
-had no heavy cannons when he crossed; it seemed
-impossible for Napoleon’s army to cross with
-cannons. Napoleon asked his engineers, the men
-who were supposed to know about such things, if
-it could be done. They said they thought it was
-impossible.</p>
-
-<p>“Impossible,” Napoleon angrily replied, “is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_430"></span>
-a word found only in the dictionary of fools.”
-Then he shouted:</p>
-
-<p>“There shall be no Alps!” and went ahead and
-crossed them. His army won in Italy, and when
-he returned to France he was greeted by the
-people as a conquering hero. But the men who
-were then governing France were afraid of him.
-They feared he might try to make himself king
-because he was so popular with the people. Napoleon,
-however, asked to be sent to conquer
-Egypt because he had an idea he could get the
-better of the English there. He thought he
-might then cut England off from India, the new
-country that they had won in the reign of
-James I. England had lost America, but she
-didn’t want to lose India.</p>
-
-<p>The French Government was very glad to get
-rid of Napoleon, and so they sent him off to
-Egypt as he asked. He quickly conquered
-Egypt as Julius Cæsar had done, but there was
-no Cleopatra to upset his plans. While he was
-conquering Egypt, his fleet, which was waiting
-for him at the mouth of the Nile, was caught and
-destroyed by the English fleet under a great
-admiral, if not the greatest that ever lived. His
-name was Lord Nelson.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon had no way to take his army back to
-France. So he left his army in Egypt under
-command of another. He himself, however,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_431"></span>
-managed to find a ship to take him back home.
-When he reached France he found that the men
-who were supposed to be governing were quarreling
-among themselves, and, seeing his chance,
-he had himself made one of three men chosen to
-rule France. He was called first consul; and
-there were supposed to be two assistant consuls,
-but the assistants were little more than clerks
-to do Napoleon’s bidding. It was only a very
-short time before he was next made first consul
-for life. Then, not long after that, he became
-emperor of France and also king of Italy.</p>
-
-<p>The other countries of Europe began to fear
-that Napoleon would conquer them, too, and
-make them also a part of France. So all the
-other countries joined together to beat him. Napoleon
-planned to conquer England first, and
-he got ready a fleet to cross over to England.
-But his fleet was caught off Spain near a point
-called Trafalgar by the same English admiral,
-Lord Nelson, who had beaten him in Egypt.
-Before this battle, Nelson said to his sailors,
-“England expects that every man will do his
-duty,” and they did it. Napoleon’s fleet was
-utterly destroyed, though Nelson himself was
-killed.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon then gave up the idea of conquering
-England, and he turned his attention in the opposite
-direction. He had beaten Spain and Prussia<span class="pagenum" id="Page_432"></span>
-and Austria. Almost all Europe either
-belonged to him or had to do what he said. Then
-he attacked Russia. It was a great mistake he
-made, for Russia was far off, and it was wintertime
-and very cold. Still, he managed to reach
-Moscow way off in the center of Russia with his
-army. But the Russians burned the city and
-destroyed all the food, so that Napoleon had
-nothing with which to feed his army. It was
-terribly cold; there were deep snows; and, in
-retreating, his army suffered enormous losses.
-Napoleon himself soon made a bee-line to Paris
-leaving his army to get back the best way they
-could. Men and horses died of cold and hunger
-by the thousands. Napoleon reached Paris, but
-his fortune had turned. All of Europe was getting
-ready to put an end to the tyrant, and it
-was not long after this that he was hemmed in
-and beaten by his enemies.</p>
-
-<p>When Napoleon saw that he was beaten, he
-signed a paper saying that he would give up and
-leave France. And so he did, sailing away to a
-little island called Elba, just off the coast of
-Italy, not far from the island where he was born.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig94.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Napoleon at St. Helena.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>But Napoleon on the island of Elba got an
-idea that all was not lost and that he might return
-to France and get back his power again. So all
-of a sudden, to the surprise of France and the
-rest of the world, he landed on the coast of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_433"></span>France. The French Government at Paris sent
-an army of his old soldiers against him with
-orders to meet him and bring him to Paris in an
-iron cage. But when his old soldiers met their
-old general they went over to his side, and so
-with them he marched on to Paris. The English
-and German armies were north of France and
-preparing to fight. Napoleon quickly got together
-an army and went forth to meet them.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_434"></span>
-At a little town called Waterloo, Napoleon
-fought his last battle, for there he was utterly
-beaten by an English general named Wellington.
-This was the Year 1815. We still speak
-and probably always will speak of any great defeat
-as “Waterloo.”</p>
-
-<p>There is a peculiar sentence which reads backward
-the same as forward. It is what Napoleon
-might have said after all was over. It is:</p>
-
-
-<p class="c">ABLE WAS I ERE I SAW ELBA</p>
-
-
-<p>After Napoleon was beaten at Waterloo, the
-English took him away and put him on a little
-island far off in the ocean where he could not
-possibly escape. It was a lonely spot named
-St. Helena after the mother of Constantine.
-Here he lived for six years before he died.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon was probably the greatest general
-that ever lived, but that does not mean that he
-was the greatest man. Some say he was the
-worst, for just to make himself great, he killed
-hundreds of thousands of people and brought
-destruction and ruin to the whole of Europe
-wherever he fought his battles.</p>
-
-<p>This brings us up into the nineteenth century,
-for Napoleon died in 1821. How long ago is
-that?</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_435"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c74">74</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">From Pan and His Pipes to the<br />
-Phonograph</p>
-
-
-<p class="pc">
-Frogs croak;<br />
-Cats me-ow;<br />
-Dogs bark;<br />
-Sheep bleat;<br />
-Cows moo;<br />
-Lions roar;<br />
-Hyenas laugh;</p>
-
-<p class="pca">
-But only birds and people <i>sing</i>.<br />
-All other animals simply make noises.<br />
-But people can do what birds cannot.<br />
-They can also make music out of <i>things</i>.
-</p>
-
-<p>Have you ever made a cigar-box fiddle or a
-pin piano or musical glasses?</p>
-
-<p>In the long-ago story-book times Apollo took
-a pair of cow-horns and fastened between them
-seven strings made from the cow’s skin. This
-was called a lyre. These strings he picked with
-his fingers or with a quill, making a little tinkling
-sound that could hardly have been very beautiful.
-Yet Apollo’s son Orpheus is said to have
-learned from his father to play so beautifully on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_436"></span>
-the lyre that the birds and wild beasts and even
-trees and rocks gathered round to hear him.</p>
-
-<p>Pan, the god of the woods, who had goat’s
-horns and ears and legs and feet, tied together
-several whistles of different lengths and played
-on these as you might on a mouth-organ. This
-instrument was called Pan’s pipes.</p>
-
-<p>The lyre and Pan’s pipes were the two earliest
-musical instruments. The first was a stringed
-instrument; the second a wind instrument. The
-long strings and long pipes made low notes; the
-short strings and short pipes made high tones.</p>
-
-<p>From Apollo’s lyre we get the piano with its
-many, many strings. Did you ever look at the
-inside of a piano and see the many strings of
-different lengths? They are, however, not picked
-as the strings of a lyre or harp are picked, but
-hammered by little felt-covered blocks as you
-touch the keys.</p>
-
-<p>From Pan’s pipes we get the great church
-organ with its pipes like giant whistles. You
-don’t, of course, blow the pipes with your mouth
-as you do a whistle. The pipes are so big you
-must blow them with a machine like a tire-pump,
-and you do this as you touch the keys.</p>
-
-<p>We know what the instruments in olden times
-were like, but we don’t know what the music that
-people made was really like; there were no phonographs
-to bottle up the sounds and, when uncorked<span class="pagenum" id="Page_437"></span>
-a thousand years later, to pour forth the
-old notes once again. The music went off into
-thin air and was lost.</p>
-
-<p>It was not until about the Year 1000 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> that
-music could even be written down. Before then
-all music was played “by ear,” for there was no
-written music. A Benedictine monk named Guy,
-or, in Italian, Guido, thought of a way to write
-down musical notes, and he named the notes do,
-re, mi, fa, and so on. These were the first letters
-of the words of a hymn to St. John which the
-monks sang like the scale.</p>
-
-<p>Another Italian is sometimes called the “father
-of modern music.” His name is Palestrina, and
-he died about 1600. He set the church service
-to music, and the pope ordered all churches to
-follow it, but the people didn’t like his music
-very much; that is, it was not what we call “popular.”</p>
-
-<p>It was not until a hundred years later&mdash;that
-is, about 1700&mdash;that the first great musician lived
-who wrote music that was really popular, that
-the people loved, and that we still love to-day.</p>
-
-<p>He was a German named Handel. His father
-was a barber, a dentist, and doctor, and he wanted
-his boy to become a great lawyer. But the only
-thing the boy liked was music.</p>
-
-<p>In those days there were no pianos. There was
-a little instrument with strings which was played<span class="pagenum" id="Page_438"></span>
-by touching keys. This was called a clavichord.
-Sometimes it had legs like a table. Sometimes
-it had no legs and was just laid on a table.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig95.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Handel is found in the attic.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Handel, though only six years old, got hold of
-one of these instruments, and, without any one
-finding out about it, he had it put up in his room
-in the attic of his house. After every one had
-gone to bed at night he would practise on this
-clavichord until late, when he was supposed to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_439"></span>
-be in bed. One night his family heard sounds
-up under the roof. Wondering what it could
-be, they took a lantern, and, quietly climbing the
-attic stairs, they suddenly opened the door, and
-there sat little Handel in his night-clothes on a
-chair with his feet reaching only half-way to the
-floor, playing on the clavichord.</p>
-
-<p>After that Handel’s father saw it was no use
-trying to make his son a lawyer. So he got
-teachers for him, and before long the boy amazed
-the world with his playing. He went to England,
-lived there, became an Englishman, and
-when he died the English people buried him in
-Westminster Abbey, a church in which famous
-Englishmen were buried.</p>
-
-<p>Handel “set the Bible to music.” These songs
-with the Bible words to be sung by a chorus of
-voices were called <i>oratorios</i>, and one of these
-oratorios named “The Messiah” is sung almost
-everywhere at Christmas-time.</p>
-
-<p>Living at the same time with Handel was another
-German musician named Bach. Bach
-played divinely on the organ as Handel did on
-the clavichord and wrote some of the finest music
-for the organ that ever has been written. Strange
-that both Handel and Bach went blind in their
-old age, but to them it was sound, not sight, that
-counted most. Here is another good subject for
-an argument: would you rather be deaf or blind?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_440"></span></p>
-
-<p>Almost all musical geniuses have been musical
-wonders when they were still babies. They have
-been great musicians even before learning to read
-and write.</p>
-
-<p>One such genius was born just before Handel
-died. He was an Austrian named Mozart.</p>
-
-<p>Mozart when only four years old played the
-piano wonderfully. He also wrote music&mdash;composing,
-it is called&mdash;for others to play.</p>
-
-<p>Mozart’s father and sister played very well,
-so the three went on a concert tour. Mozart,
-the boy wonder, played before the empress, and
-everywhere he went he was treated like a prince,
-petted and praised and given parties and presents.</p>
-
-<p>Then he grew up and married, and ever after
-he had the hardest kind of a time trying to make
-a living. He composed all sorts of things, plays
-with music called operas, and symphonies, which
-are written for whole orchestras to play; but he
-made so little money that when he died he had to
-be buried where they put people who were too
-poor to have a grave for themselves alone. People
-afterward thought it a shame that such a
-great composer should have no monument over
-his grave, but then it was too late to find where
-he was buried. A monument was put up, but to
-this day no one knows where Mozart’s body lies.</p>
-
-<p>A German named Beethoven had read the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_441"></span>
-stories of the boy wonder, Mozart, and he thought
-he, too, would like to have a boy wonder to play
-before kings and queens. So when his son Louis
-was only five years old he kept the boy practising
-long hours at the piano until he became so tired
-that the tears ran down his cheeks. But Louis
-Beethoven, or Ludwig, as he was called in German,
-finally came to be one of the greatest musicians
-that have ever lived. He could sit at the
-piano and make up the most beautiful music as
-he went along&mdash;improvise, as it is called&mdash;but he
-was never satisfied with it when written down.
-Time and time again he would scratch out and
-rewrite his music until it had been rewritten often
-a dozen times.</p>
-
-<p>But Beethoven’s hearing began to grow dull.
-He was worried that he might lose it entirely&mdash;a
-terrible thing to happen to any one, but to one
-whose hearing was his fortune nothing could be
-worse. And at last he did become deaf. This
-loss of his hearing made Beethoven hopelessly
-sad and bad-tempered, cross with everything and
-everybody. Nevertheless, he didn’t give up;
-he kept on composing just the same, even after
-he could no longer hear what he had written.</p>
-
-<p>Another great and unusual German musician
-named Wagner lived until 1883. Though he
-practised all his life, he never could play very
-well. But he composed the most wonderful<span class="pagenum" id="Page_442"></span>
-operas that have ever been written, and he wrote
-not only the music but the words, too. He took
-old myths and fairy-tales and made them into
-plays to be sung to music. At first some people
-made fun of his music, for it seemed to them so
-noisy and “slam-bangy” and without tune. But
-people now make fun of those “some people” who
-don’t like it!</p>
-
-<p>I have told you in other places of painters and
-poets, of architects and wise men, of kings and
-heroes, of wars and troubles. I have put this
-story of music of all ages in one chapter which
-I have tucked in here between the acts, to give
-you a rest for a moment from wars and rumors of
-wars.</p>
-
-<p>When I was a boy I never heard any great
-musicians play. Now you and I can turn on the
-phonograph any time and hear the music of
-Palestrina or Mozart, of Beethoven or Wagner,
-of dozens of other masters, played or sung to us
-whenever we wish; the greatest musicians become
-our slaves. No caliph in the “Arabian Nights”
-could command such service to his pleasure!</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_443"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c75">75</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Daily Papers of 1854-1865</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">If</span> you could go up into your grandfather’s
-attic or the attic of somebody else’s grandfather,
-or would dig down into some old trunk, you
-might find some of the newspapers that were
-printed during the years from 1854 to 1865.
-Then you might actually read in these daily
-papers the happenings that I am now going to
-tell you about. Many people still alive have
-taken part in some of these events themselves or
-know those who have. Under the heading, “Foreign
-News,” you would probably find some of the
-following things told about:</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap large">English News.</span> At this time the queen of
-England was named Victoria. She was much
-beloved by her people because she had such a
-kindly nature and Christian spirit. She was
-more like a mother to her people than like a
-queen. She ruled for more than half a century,
-and the time when she ruled is called the Victorian
-Age.</p>
-
-<p>The English news of 1854 would tell about a
-war that the English were then fighting with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_444"></span>
-Russia. Russia was a long way off, and so the
-English had to send their soldiers in boats
-through the Mediterranean Sea to the end, then
-past Constantinople in to the Black Sea. There
-in a little spot of land that jutted out from Russia
-into the Black Sea most of the fighting was
-done. This little spot of land was called the
-Crimea, and the war therefore was called the
-Crimean War. In this war in that far-off land
-thousands of English soldiers died from wounds
-and disease.</p>
-
-<p>Now, there was living in England at the time
-of this war a lady named Florence Nightingale.
-She was very tender-hearted and always looking
-out for and taking care of those that were
-sick. Even as a little girl she had played that
-her dolls were sick with headache or a broken leg,
-and she would bandage the aching head or broken
-leg and pretend to take care of her sick patient.
-When her dog was ill she nursed him as carefully
-as if he were a human being.</p>
-
-<p>Florence Nightingale heard that English soldiers
-were dying by the thousands in that distant
-land far away from home and that there were no
-nurses to take care of the wounded. So she got
-together a number of ladies, and they went out
-to the Crimea. Before she arrived almost half
-the soldiers who were wounded died&mdash;fifty soldiers
-out of a hundred; after she and her nurses
-came, only two in a hundred died. She went<span class="pagenum" id="Page_445"></span>
-about through the camps and over the battlefields
-at night carrying a lamp looking for the
-wounded. The soldiers called her the Lady of
-the Lamp, and they all loved her.</p>
-
-<p>When at last the war was over and she returned
-to England, the Government voted to give her
-a large sum of money for what she had done.
-She, however, refused the money for herself but
-took it to found a home for training nurses.
-Nowadays trained nurses are thought almost as
-necessary as doctors, and any one who is sick can
-call in a trained nurse to take care of him, but
-at that time there were no trained nurses and no
-one had ever heard of such a thing. Florence
-Nightingale was the first to start trained nursing,
-and so she is looked upon almost as a saint
-by trained nurses.</p>
-
-<p>In one battle in the Crimea a company of
-soldiers mounted on horseback were given by
-mistake an order to attack the enemy. Though
-they knew it meant certain death, they never hesitated
-but charged, and two-thirds of them were
-killed or wounded in less than half an hour.
-Lord Tennyson, the English poet, has told this
-story in verse which you may know. It is called
-“The Charge of the Light Brigade.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap large">Japanese News.</span> Japan is a group of islands
-near China. Although I have not told you about
-it before, it was an old country, settled in its ways
-even before Rome was founded. In Europe<span class="pagenum" id="Page_446"></span>
-there have been constant changes of kings and
-rulers and people and countries. But in Japan
-they have had the same line of kings since before
-Christ.</p>
-
-<p>Japan wanted no white people in her country,
-and, with a very few exceptions, she had always
-kept them out. But in 1854, the same year that
-England began the Crimean War, an American
-naval officer named Commodore Perry went to
-Japan and made an agreement, or treaty, as it is
-called, by which Japan allowed white people to
-come in and do business with her people. The
-Japanese seemed hungry for knowledge, to learn
-how to do things in the white man’s way. When
-Perry first went to Japan the Japanese lived the
-same way they had a thousand years before.
-They knew nothing of the white man’s inventions
-or ways of living. But in fifty years’ time they
-have jumped a thousand years in civilization!</p>
-
-<p>These are some of the things you might read
-about in those old newspapers. Such news would
-probably have taken up little space; perhaps they
-would have been found down at the bottom of
-a column if the newspaper were American. But
-if the paper was printed between 1861 and 1864,
-the greater part of it would be about a war that
-was going on in our own country at that time.
-This was a war between our own people, a family
-quarrel, which we call the Civil War.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_447"></span></p>
-
-<p>Two parts of our country, the North and the
-South, did not agree on several matters, chief of
-which was the question whether the South could
-own slaves. So they went to war with each other.
-Each side fought for what it believed was right,
-and thousands upon thousands gave their lives
-for what they believed. The war lasted for four
-years, from 1861 to 1865, before it was decided
-that no one could ever again own slaves in the
-United States.</p>
-
-<p>Some of you who read these pages had grandfathers
-or great-grandfathers who fought in this
-war. Some of these fought for the South; some
-fought for the North. Some of them may have
-died for the South; some of them may have died
-for the North.</p>
-
-<p>The President of the United States at this
-time was a man named Abraham Lincoln. Lincoln
-was a very poor boy who had been born in
-a log cabin. He had taught himself to read by
-the light of a blazing knot of wood at night after
-his day’s work was done. As he was very poor,
-he had only a few books, and these he read over
-and over again. One of these books was the same
-“Æsop’s Fables” that you read. When Lincoln
-was a young man, he became a storekeeper. One
-day he found that he had given a poor woman a
-smaller package of tea than she had paid for,
-and so he closed the store and walked many miles<span class="pagenum" id="Page_448"></span>
-to her house in order to return the change. People
-began to call him Honest Abe after that, for
-he was always very honest and kind-hearted.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig96.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Lincoln visiting camp and shaking hands with the soldiers.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>He studied hard and became a lawyer and at
-last was elected President of the United States.
-One day while he was in a theater watching a play
-he was shot and killed by one of the actors who
-thought Lincoln had not done right in freeing
-the slaves.</p>
-
-<p>Lincoln was one of our greatest Presidents.
-Washington started our country; Lincoln prevented
-its splitting into two parts, and kept it
-together as one big united land to grow into the
-great country it now is.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_449"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c76">76</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Three New Postage-Stamps</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">We</span> are getting pretty close to the present
-time, to “Now.”</p>
-
-<p>Let us look backward a minute to see what had
-been going on in Europe since the time of Napoleon.</p>
-
-<p>After Napoleon had been sent to Elba, the
-French had to have another ruler. They wanted
-their old kings back again. The family name of
-their old kings was Bourbon. So the French
-thought they ought to have a Bourbon ruler over
-them. Accordingly they tried out three Bourbons
-one after the other, all relatives of their last
-king, whom they had beheaded.</p>
-
-<p>But all of them proved no good, the French
-people had given the Bourbon family a good tryout,
-and so at last they stopped worrying with
-kings and started another republic.</p>
-
-<p>Now, a republic has a president instead of a
-king, so that the people had to choose a president;
-and whom do you suppose they picked out?
-Why, the nephew of Napoleon. The nephew of
-Napoleon was named Louis Napoleon. He had
-planned and plotted again and again to make<span class="pagenum" id="Page_450"></span>
-himself king of France, but again and again he
-had failed. And now he was elected president!
-But Louis Napoleon didn’t want to be <i>only</i>
-president. He wanted to be like his uncle the
-great Napoleon. He dreamed of being emperor
-and conquering Europe, and so it was not long
-after this before he had himself made emperor,
-and he called himself Napoleon III.<a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="label">[5]</a> Napoleon I had a young son who might have been Napoleon II
-if he had lived. The story is, that when Napoleon III was made
-emperor his name was printed simply with three exclamation
-marks after it&mdash;“Napoleon!!!” and this was by mistake read
-Napoleon III.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Napoleon III was jealous of the neighboring
-country of Prussia. She was getting to be too
-strong, he thought. Prussia had a king at this
-time named William who was very able himself,
-and he had an able assistant or prime minister
-named Bismarck, who was looking for an excuse
-to fight France. So presently a war was started
-between the two countries in 1870. Napoleon
-soon found he had made a bad mistake in picking
-the war with Prussia. Prussia was not <i>getting</i>
-too strong; she was already too strong.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon III was completely beaten by Prussia,
-and he with a large army had to surrender.
-Then in disgrace he went to live in England.</p>
-
-<p>The Prussians marched into Paris and made
-the French agree to pay them a billion dollars.
-When some of the French towns said they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_451"></span>
-couldn’t pay, Bismarck lined up the leading
-citizens of the place and told them they would be
-shot if they didn’t raise the money that was demanded.
-So France paid, and to the wonder
-and amazement of everybody she paid this immense
-sum in two years’ time. But the French
-and the French children have never forgotten the
-way they were made to pay and the way they
-were treated by the Prussians, and so ever since
-then there has been deadly enmity between these
-two countries. This war was called the Franco-Prussian
-War, as it was between France and
-Prussia.</p>
-
-<p>There were a number of little countries near
-Prussia. They were called German states. But
-though their people were related, the countries
-or states were separate. As a result of this war,
-Prussia was able to join all these German states
-together and to make for the first time one big,
-strong, powerful nation called Germany, feared
-by other countries on account of her great army
-of fighting men. William was made emperor
-of all Germany and called kaiser. He was
-crowned in the French palace at Versailles that
-Louis XIV had built.</p>
-
-<p>The French thought the Germans had been
-able to win this war because they had public
-schools in which all their children were trained,
-and because of the way their soldiers were drilled.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_452"></span>
-So France set to work and started public schools
-everywhere in France and imitated the German
-way of drilling their army so that they would be
-ready for them in the next war.</p>
-
-<p>Ever since then France has been a republic
-with a president and an Assembly chosen by the
-people.</p>
-
-<p>At that time Italy was not a single country as
-now but like Germany a collection of small states.
-Some of these were independent, some were
-owned by France, some were owned by Austria.
-The king of one of these Italian states was Victor
-Emmanuel. He wanted all the Italian states to
-unite and become one single country like our
-United States. He was helped by his prime minister,
-a very able man named Cavour, and by a
-rough but romantic popular hero named Garibaldi,
-who was called the hero of the Red Shirt.</p>
-
-<p>Garibaldi, who had been a candle-maker in
-New York City, was always poor and seemed
-not to care for money. He was so popular that
-whenever he called for soldiers to fight with him
-for his beloved Italy, they at once flocked around
-him ready to fight to the death.</p>
-
-<p>And so at last these three, Victor Emmanuel,
-Cavour, and Garibaldi, succeeded in making their
-country one big nation. The Italians erected
-monuments to them and named streets after
-them. To Victor Emmanuel they built a magnificent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_453"></span>
-building on a hill in Rome overlooking
-the city, a building that was intended to be more
-beautiful than anything built in Athens during
-the time of Pericles or in Italy during the
-Renaissance.</p>
-
-<p>If you collect postage-stamps it would be interesting
-for you to get, if you can, stamps of
-these countries at that time, the New French Republic,
-United Germany, and United Italy.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig97.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_454"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c77">77</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">The Age of Miracles</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">You</span> may think the Age of Miracles was when
-Christ lived.</p>
-
-<p>But if a man who lived at that time should
-come back to earth now he would think <i>this</i> the
-Age of Miracles.</p>
-
-<p>If he heard you talk over a wire to a person a
-thousand miles away, he would think you a magician.</p>
-
-<p>If you showed him people moving and acting
-on a movie screen, he would think you a witch.</p>
-
-<p>If he heard you start a band playing by turning
-on a phonograph, he would think you a devil.</p>
-
-<p>If he saw you fly through the air in an airplane,
-he would think you a god.</p>
-
-<p>We are so used to the telephone, telegraph, and
-phonograph; to steamboats, steam railroads, and
-trolley-cars; to electric lights, motor-cars, moving
-pictures, radio, and airplanes, that it is hard
-to imagine a world in which there were none of
-these things&mdash;absolutely none of these things.
-Yet in the Year 1800 not a single one of these inventions
-was known.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_455"></span></p>
-
-<p>Neither George Washington nor Napoleon
-ever saw a steam-engine, a steam-car, nor a
-steamboat. They had never used a telephone nor
-a telegraph nor a bicycle. My own grandfather
-never saw a trolley-car nor an electric light.
-Even my father never saw a phonograph, a moving
-picture, an automobile, nor a flying-machine.</p>
-
-<p>More wonders have been made in the last hundred
-years than in all the previous centuries of
-the world put together.</p>
-
-<p>A Scotchman named James Watt was one of
-the first of these magicians whom we call inventors.
-Watt had watched a boiling kettle on the
-stove and noticed that the steam lifted the lid.
-This gave him an idea that steam might lift other
-things as well as the lid of a tea-kettle. So he
-made a machine in which steam lifted a lid called
-a piston in such a way as to turn a wheel. This
-was the first steam-engine.</p>
-
-<p>Watt’s steam-engine moved wheels and other
-things, but it didn’t move itself. An Englishman
-named Stephenson put Watt’s engine on
-wheels and made the engine move its own wheels.
-This was the first locomotive. Soon funny-looking
-carriages drawn by funny-looking engines
-were made to run on tracks in America. At first
-these trains ran only a few miles out from such
-cities as Baltimore and Philadelphia.</p>
-
-<p>Then a young fellow named Robert Fulton<span class="pagenum" id="Page_456"></span>
-thought he could make a boat go by putting
-Watt’s engine on board and making it turn paddle-wheels.
-People laughed at him and called
-the boat he was building “Fulton’s Folly,” which
-means “foolishness.” But the boat worked, and
-Fulton had the laugh on those who had laughed
-at him. He called his boat the <i>Clermont</i>, and it
-made regular trips up and down the river.</p>
-
-<p>No one had ever before been able to talk to another
-far off until the telegraph was invented.
-The telegraph makes a clicking sound. Electricity
-flows through a wire from one place to another
-place which may be a long distance off. If
-you press a button at one end of the wire you stop
-the electricity flowing through the wire, and the
-instrument at the other end makes a click. A
-short click is called a dot, and a long click is called
-a dash. These dots and dashes stand for letters
-of the alphabet, so you can spell out a message
-by dots and dashes.</p>
-
-<table cellspacing="0" cellpadding="0" summary="table">
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">A is</td>
- <td class="tdlb">· —</td>
- <td class="tdl">dot-dash</td></tr>
-
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">B is</td>
- <td class="tdlb">&nbsp;— ···</td>
- <td class="tdl">dash-dot-dot-dot</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">E is</td>
- <td class="tdlb">·</td>
- <td class="tdl">dot</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">H is</td>
- <td class="tdlb">····</td>
- <td class="tdl">dot-dot-dot-dot</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">T is</td>
- <td class="tdlb">&nbsp;—</td>
- <td class="tdl">dash</td></tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<p>An American painter named Morse invented this
-wonderful little instrument. He built the first<span class="pagenum" id="Page_457"></span>
-telegraph line in America between Baltimore and
-Washington, and this was the first message he
-clicked across it: “What hath God wrought!”</p>
-
-<p>A school-teacher named Bell was trying to
-find some way of making deaf children hear, and
-in doing so he invented the telephone. The telephone
-carries words as the telegraph carries
-clicks. You do not have to know a special alphabet
-or spell out words by dots and dashes as you
-do on the telegraph. With the telephone any
-one can talk from one side of America to the
-other.</p>
-
-<p>Many inventions now in every-day use have
-been partly invented by several people, so that
-it is hard to say just which one thought of the
-invention first. Several people thought of a way
-to run a machine by feeding it electricity. This
-was the electric motor. Then others thought of a
-way to run a machine by exploding gas. This
-was the motor used in automobiles.</p>
-
-<p>Electric lights, such as we use indoors, were
-invented by Thomas Alva Edison. Edison is
-called a wizard, because in the Middle Ages
-wizards were supposed to be able to do and to
-make all sorts of wonderful and impossible
-things, to turn lead into gold, to make people invisible,
-and that sort of thing. But Edison has
-done things that no wizard of a fairy-tale had
-ever even thought of. Edison was a poor boy<span class="pagenum" id="Page_458"></span>
-who sold newspapers and magazines on a train.
-He was interested in all sorts of experiments and
-fitted up a place in the baggage-car where he
-could make experiments. But he made so much
-of a mess in the car that at last the baggage-man
-kicked Edison’s whole outfit off the train. Edison
-invented many things connected with the
-phonograph and the movies, and he has probably
-made more useful and important inventions than
-any other man who has ever lived, so that he is
-much greater than those mere kings who have
-done nothing but quarrel and destroy&mdash;without
-whom the world would have been much better off
-if they had never lived!</p>
-
-<p>Thousands of people who have lived in the past
-ages have tried to fly and failed. Millions of
-people have said it was impossible to fly and
-foolish to try. Some have even said it was wicked
-to try, that God meant that only birds and angels
-should fly. At last, after long years of work
-and thousands of trials, two American brothers
-named Wright did the impossible. They invented
-the airplane and flew.</p>
-
-<p>An Italian named Marconi invented the radio,
-and others every day are still making wonderful
-inventions, but you will have to read about these
-yourself, for we are near the end of our history.</p>
-
-<p>Here is a good subject for an argument or debate:
-Are we any happier <i>with</i> all these inventions<span class="pagenum" id="Page_459"></span>
-than people were a thousand years ago
-<i>without</i> them?</p>
-
-<p>Life is faster and more exciting; but it is more
-difficult and more dangerous. Instead of enjoying
-a book curled up in the corner of a sofa by a
-crackling fire, we leave a steam radiator and go
-out to the movies. Instead of singing or playing
-the violin, we turn on the graphophone or the
-player-piano and miss the chief joy in music, the
-joy of making it ourselves. Instead of the jogging
-drive in an old buggy behind a horse that
-goes along through the country-side almost by
-himself, we speed on in dangerous autos, to which
-we must pay constant, undivided attention or be
-wrecked.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig98.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_460"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c78">78</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">GERMANY FIGHTS THE WORLD</p>
-
-
-<p>The last chapter was one of the few without
-a fight in it. But now, to make up for that, I
-must tell you about the greatest and the worst
-fight in history.</p>
-
-<p>There is a little country in Europe called
-Serbia. It is next door to Austria. A young
-man who lived in Serbia shot an Austrian prince.
-Little Serbia apologized to Austria for what
-one of her people had done. But Austria insisted
-that the Serbian nation was to blame for
-what had been done; she refused to accept the
-apology and started in to punish Serbia.</p>
-
-<p>I once saw a little dog snap at a big boy. The
-owner of the little dog apologized to the big boy
-for what his dog had done. But the big boy did
-not accept the apology, and he started in to
-thrash the little boy for what his dog had done.
-Presently a crowd gathered round, the friends
-of each boy took sides, and there was a general
-free-for-all “scrap.”</p>
-
-<p>So it was in this case. One of Austria’s big
-friends, Germany, took sides against Serbia, and
-Russia took the side of Serbia. Ever since the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_461"></span>
-time of the Franco-Prussian War and Bismarck
-and William, Germany had been in training for
-a fight, and so had her neighbors. Nearly all the
-countries of Europe had for years been getting
-together into two groups, made up of the friends
-and the enemies of Germany; and the two were
-ready to jump at each other as soon as Austria,
-or Germany, or anybody else, struck at any one.</p>
-
-<p>But Germany didn’t strike at Serbia; Austria
-didn’t really need her help against Serbia. Germany
-was sure that France, who was her enemy
-and Russia’s friend, would take sides against
-her; and so she rushed at France to destroy her
-before Russia could hit hard from the other side.
-Now, to get at France Germany had to get
-through the little country of Belgium. She and
-France had agreed that neither would march
-armies through Belgium, but when the war
-began her armies marched in anyway and pushed
-aside the Belgians, who tried to stop them. And
-so her armies rushed on toward the capital of
-France, Paris. She got as far as a little stream
-called the Marne, only twenty miles from Paris.
-But here the French under General Foch stopped
-her army. This battle of the Marne is probably
-the most famous of all the battles you have heard
-about in history, for though the war was not
-ended for four years after this battle, if the Germans
-had won at the Marne, the war would have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_462"></span>
-been over, with Germany victor, and the rest of
-the world would have had to do what Germany
-said.</p>
-
-<p>Germany was the first to use poison gas, trying
-to smother her enemy; she fought with
-submarines from under the sea; she attacked
-passenger ships that could not fight back. The
-English navy was the strongest, and it was only
-with submarines that Germany could fight at
-sea. This war was the first one in history in
-which battles were fought not only on land but
-up in the air and down under the water.</p>
-
-<p>England took sides with France and Russia&mdash;and
-these were called Allies&mdash;to fight against
-Germany and Austria, and at first the war was
-between these countries only. Before the war
-ended, however, almost all the countries of the
-world had taken sides against Germany, for they
-knew that if she won she would be able to tell
-the rest of the world what to do. Then all of a
-sudden Russia had a revolution. The Russian
-people killed their ruler, the czar, and his family,
-and refused to fight any longer. Things began
-to look pretty bad for the Allies.</p>
-
-<p>The United States did not start into the war
-until 1917, almost three years after it had begun;
-then she did so because German submarines were
-sinking American passenger ships and killing
-Americans.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_463"></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig99.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">Surrender of Germans.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>America was so far off&mdash;three thousand miles
-away&mdash;and across an ocean that it seemed impossible
-that she could do much in the war. But
-in a very short time she had sent two million
-soldiers across in ships. Under General Pershing
-they fought great battles. At last Germany was
-utterly beaten, and on Armistice day, November<span class="pagenum" id="Page_464"></span>
-11, 1918, Germany signed a paper agreeing to
-do everything the Allies asked; and so the greatest
-war in history ended. The kaiser went to live
-in Holland, and Germany became a republic.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig100.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_465"></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="c79">79</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c xlarge">Yesterday, To-day, and To-morrow</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">There</span> is a candy shop near where I live. On
-its sign it says, “Made Fresh Every Hour.”
-History is being made every day. It is being
-made fresh almost every hour. The newsboy
-even now is calling outside of my window, “Extra!
-Extra!” Is it a new war? Is it a new discovery?
-If you had clipped head-lines from the
-papers since the World War, here are some of
-the things you might have pasted in your scrapbook.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquotb">
-
-<p>
-TREATY OF PEACE<br />
-SIGNED AT VERSAILLES
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nations Agree on Terms of Peace</p>
-<p>
-The Mohammedan Turks in the East Are<br />
-Again Threatening the Christian<br />
-Nations of the West</p>
-
-<p>
-THE IRISH FREE<br />
-STATE ESTABLISHED</p>
-<p>
-After Centuries of Struggle to Become<br />
-Independent of England, Ireland at<br />
-Last, with England’s Permission, Has<br />
-Set Up a Government of Her Own<span class="pagenum" id="Page_466"></span>
-</p>
-<p>
-COLUMBUS OF THE AIR</p>
-<p>
-Read, an American, Crosses Atlantic<br />
-Ocean for First Time in an Airplane;<br />
-Lands at the Azores and Then in<br />
-Portugal; Several Others Soon Follow,<br />
-and the Ocean Is Crossed a Number of<br />
-Times
-</p>
-<p>
-WOMEN CAN VOTE AT LAST</p>
-<p>
-All Through the Ages Women Have Had<br />
-Little or No “Say” in the Government;<br />
-Now, for the First Time, They Can<br />
-Vote in Our Country and in Most<br />
-Other Civilized Countries
-</p>
-<p>
-STRONG DRINK PROHIBITED</p>
-<p>
-The Use of Wine and Strong Drink,<br />
-Which Has Caused So Much Crime,<br />
-Disease, Death and Unhappiness, Has<br />
-Been Forbidden in the United States<br />
-and Limited in Many Other Countries;<br />
-in the Generations to Come, Men Will<br />
-Probably Marvel That There Was Once<br />
-a Time When People Drank Poison for<br />
-Pleasure
-</p></div>
-
-<p>From now on you will have to read your history
-in the daily papers.</p>
-
-<p>Up to this time, history has been marked by
-the story of one war after another, some big,
-some small, some short, some long. Almost always
-a fight has been going on somewhere. It
-has been War, War, War; Fight, Fight, Fight.
-Children scratch, kick, and bite. But the older<span class="pagenum" id="Page_467"></span>
-we get, the less do we use our fists and feet to
-settle quarrels. So fighting seems to be a sign
-of childhood&mdash;that we are “kids”&mdash;and our fights,
-that we call wars, a sign of how young the world
-really is and we really are; a sign that the world
-is still but a minute or two old.</p>
-
-<p>Now, we admire and praise as heroes Horatius,
-Leonidas, Joan of Arc, and General Foch
-and those others who have defended their countries
-against the attacks of the enemy, as we
-would admire a man who shoots a burglar or a
-murderer that attacks his family in the night.
-But those, whether kings, generals, or princes,
-who do the attacking and take life with no other
-excuse than to add to their power or wealth or
-glory, are no better than burglars who go forth
-with a gun and a blackjack to waylay, rob, and
-murder for the same purpose. War kills, war
-destroys, war costs millions of lives and billions
-of dollars&mdash;money that could be used to make
-us happy, instead of causing bitterness, suffering,
-misery, and unhappiness; blind men and
-cripples, widows and orphans. No one is better
-off, not even the winner. It is a terrible game,
-in which even the winner loses. And yet in the
-long run who knows? It may be the only way
-the world can grow!</p>
-
-<p>But this is certain: if wars do not end, they
-will be fought with something more deadly, more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_468"></span>
-terrible than shot and shell. Sooner or later,
-some man of science will invent a disease more
-catching than the terrible plague, more deadly
-than the Black Death with which to attack the
-enemy. But if such a disease is let loose, once
-started it will spread from one being to the next
-till every one has caught it and died and no one
-will escape. Or he will invent a poison to poison
-the air we breathe that will spread like the wind
-or like wildfire in dry grass, and there will be
-no stopping it. The air that wraps the globe will
-be a sea of poison gas. Every thing that breathes
-will take only one breath, and every man, woman,
-and child, every beast of the field, every bird and
-flying thing will drop dead. Or he will invent
-something a million times more powerful than
-gunpowder or dynamite&mdash;something so explosive
-that when discovered by some Mr. Swartz it will
-blow him, his house, his town, his country, and
-the whole world to kingdom come&mdash;and that will
-be the end of this little spark off the sun.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps you have looked through a microscope
-at what seem to be wars between germs. As
-germs might look up at the eye of the microscope
-through which we watch their life-and-death
-struggles, and wonder what is up above on the
-other side looking down at them, so we may
-look up at the blue eye of heaven above us and
-wonder what all-seeing, all-knowing, all-powerful<span class="pagenum" id="Page_469"></span>
-being up there is watching our own life-and-death
-struggles here below.</p>
-
-<p>Our little world, which seems so immense to
-us, is really only a tiny speck, only one of countless
-other specks floating in space; it is like one
-of the tiny motes which you may see any time in
-a sunbeam that shines in at the window. Who
-has an eye so keen that he can count the moving
-motes in such a beam of light? Who would miss
-one such grain of dust if it should disappear? So
-this grain of dust we call the World and all
-of us who live upon it could vanish without ever
-being noticed!</p>
-
-<p>This story ends here, but only for the present,
-for history is a continued story and will never
-end.</p>
-
-<p>If you were living in the Year 10,000 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, as
-some boy will be, your history would only be just
-begun when you had reached where we are now.
-Even the World War would then seem as long
-ago as the fights of the Stone Age men seem to
-us. You might think of us and all the inventions
-we consider so wonderful as we think of the discovery
-of copper and bronze.</p>
-
-<p>Will the history that is written in the Year 10,000
-have any wars to tell about? If the wars
-on Earth cease, will there be wars with other
-worlds?</p>
-
-<p>And if there are no more wars, what will history<span class="pagenum" id="Page_470"></span>
-tell about? Will it be new inventions?
-What kinds? Will it be new discoveries? We
-know every corner of the world now. Will it be
-the inside of this world or other new worlds or a
-spiritual world?</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps then people will no longer use trains,
-steamboats, automobiles, or even flying-machines,
-but go from place to place as on some magic carpet,
-simply by wishing. Perhaps then they will
-no longer use letters, telephones, or telegraphs,
-or even radio, but read each other’s thoughts at
-any distance.</p>
-
-<p>And so on&mdash;World without end&mdash;<span class="smcap">Amen!</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig101.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="ph2">PRONOUNCING INDEX</p>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>This list of the most important names in the book tells you on
-what page you may find each name and how to sound those you
-may not know.</p>
-
-<table summary="sounds">
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">Sound</td>
- <td class="tdc">a</td>
- <td class="tdcp">as</td>
- <td class="tdc">in</td>
- <td class="tdl">hat.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">aw</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">saw.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">ah</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">ah!</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">ee</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">see.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">e or eh</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">get.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">er</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">her.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">i or ih</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">hit</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">igh</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">right.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">o</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">hot.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">oh</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">oh!</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">ow</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">how.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">u or uh</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">up.</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">ew</td>
- <td class="tdcp">“</td>
- <td class="tdc">“</td>
- <td class="tdl">few.</td></tr>
-
-
-</table>
-
-
-<ul class="index">
-<li class="ifrst">Aaron (air´ un), <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Abednego (a bed´ nee go), <a href="#Page_261">261</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Abraham (ay´ bra ham), <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Acropolis (a krop´ o lis), <a href="#Page_145">145</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Adolphus, Gustavus (a dolf´ us), <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Æneas (ee nee´ as), <a href="#Page_190">190</a> etc., <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Æneid (ee nee´ id), <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Æsop’s Fables (ee´ sop), <a href="#Page_447">447</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Africa, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_348">348</a>, <a href="#Page_352">352</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Age of Discovery, <a href="#Page_347">347</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Age of Miracles, <a href="#Page_454">454</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aix-la-chapelle (ayks - la - sha pell´), <a href="#Page_258">258</a>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alaric (al´ a rik), <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alcuin (al´ kwin), <a href="#Page_259">259</a>, <a href="#Page_260">260</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alexander the Great, <a href="#Page_159">159</a> to 168</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alexandria, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alfred the Great, <a href="#Page_264">264</a> to 270</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Allah (al´ ah), <a href="#Page_244">244</a> to 247</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alps, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_429">429</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">America, <a href="#Page_271">271</a>, <a href="#Page_346">346</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Americus, <a href="#Page_346">346</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Angle-land, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Angles, <a href="#Page_223">223</a> to 230</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Anglo-Saxons, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Anno Domini, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Antony (an´ to nih), <a href="#Page_190">190</a> to 192</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aphrodite (af ro digh´ tih), <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Apollo (a pol´ lo), <a href="#Page_58">58</a> to 63</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arabesques (air a besks´), <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arabia, <a href="#Page_242">242</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a> to 256</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arabian Nights, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arabs, <a href="#Page_244">244</a> to 256</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ares (ay´ reez), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arch of Constantine, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arch of Titus, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristides (air is tigh´ deez), <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristotle (air is tott´ ell), <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Artemis (ar´ tee mis), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arthur, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_311">311</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aryans (ar´ yans), <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a>, <a href="#Page_256">256</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Asia, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Assurbanipal (ass er ban´ ih pal), <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Assyria (as seer´ ih ah), <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a> to 98</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Astarte (ass tar´ tih), <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athene (a thee´ nih), <a href="#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a> to 154</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athene Parthenos (par´ the nos), <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athenians, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a> to 145, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athens, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Attila (at´ tih lah), <a href="#Page_225">225</a> to 227</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Augustan Age, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Augustus, <a href="#Page_195">195</a> to 197</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Austria, Austrian, <a href="#Page_396">396</a>, <a href="#Page_408">408</a>, <a href="#Page_409">409</a>, <a href="#Page_440">440</a>, <a href="#Page_462">462</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Azores, <a href="#Page_466">466</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aztecs (az´ tecks), <a href="#Page_355">355</a> to 357</li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Baal (bay´ al), <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Babylon (bab´ in lun), <a href="#Page_98">98</a> to 103, <a href="#Page_106">106</a> to 108</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Babylonia, <a href="#Page_43">43</a> to 48</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Babylonians, <a href="#Page_45">45</a> to 49, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bach (bahk), <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bacon, Roger, <a href="#Page_324">324</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bagdad, <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a>, <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Balboa (bal boh´ ah), <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Baltimore, <a href="#Page_455">455</a>, <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bastille (bas teel´), <a href="#Page_421">421</a>, <a href="#Page_422">422</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Beethoven, Louis (bay´ to ven), <a href="#Page_441">441</a>, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Belgium, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bell, <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Belshazzar (bel shaz´ zar), <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Benedict and Benedictines (ben´ eh dickt), <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bethlehem, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bible, King James, <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bishop of Rome, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bismarck, <a href="#Page_450">450</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Black Death, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>, <a href="#Page_468">468</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Black Sea, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_444">444</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Blondel (blon dell´), <a href="#Page_300">300</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Boleyn, Anne (bool´ in), <a href="#Page_370">370</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bourbon (boor´ bun), <a href="#Page_449">449</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brahma, Brahmanism, Brahmanists (brah´ mah), <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Britain, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">British Museum, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bronze Age, <a href="#Page_19">19</a> to 22</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brutus, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bucephalus (bew sef´ a lus), <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Buddha, Buddhism, Buddhists (bood´ dah), <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Byron, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Byzantium (bi zan´ shi um), <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Cabot (kab´ ut), <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cadmus (kad´ mus), <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cæsar, Augustus (see´ zer), <a href="#Page_193">193</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cæsar, Julius, <a href="#Page_184">184</a> to 192</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cairo (kigh´ ro), <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Canaan (kay´ nan), <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Canada, <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Canary Islands, <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Canterbury Cathedral, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cape of Good Hope, <a href="#Page_348">348</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cape Horn, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cape of Storms, <a href="#Page_348">348</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Carthage and Carthaginians (kar´ thij), <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a> to 176</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Caspian Sea, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cathay (ka thay´), <a href="#Page_316">316</a> to 322, <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cathedral of Notre Dame (nohtr´ dam), <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cathedral of Rheims (rhance), <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cathedral of St. Peter, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Catherine, <a href="#Page_406">406</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Catholic, <a href="#Page_365">365</a> to 371</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cave Man, Men, People, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cavour (ka voor´), <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Caxton, <a href="#Page_334">334</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ceres (see´ reez), <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chaldea, Chaldeans (kal dee´ ah), <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Châlons (sha lahng´), <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charge of the Light Brigade, The, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charlemagne (sharl maign´), <a href="#Page_257">257</a> to 263</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charles the Great, <a href="#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="#Page_259">259</a>, <a href="#Page_264">264</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charles I, <a href="#Page_390">390</a> to 393</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charles II, <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charles V. of Spain, <a href="#Page_367">367</a> to 369</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charles XII, <a href="#Page_404">404</a>, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charles the Hammer, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_257">257</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cheops (k ee´ ops), <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">China, <a href="#Page_316">316</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Christ, <a href="#Page_197">197</a> to 202</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Church of St. Peter, <a href="#Page_258">258</a>, <a href="#Page_366">366</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cincinnatus (sin sin nah´ tus), <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Circus Maximus, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Civil War, <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clavichord (klav´ ih kord), <a href="#Page_438">438</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cleopatra (klee o pah´ tra), <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clermont (kler mont´), <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clisthenes (klis´ the neez), <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a> <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clotilda (klo till´ dah), <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clovis (klo´ vis), <a href="#Page_233">233</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cologne Cathedral, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Colosseum (kol o see´ um), <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_205">205</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Columbia, <a href="#Page_346">346</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Columbus, Christopher, <a href="#Page_337">337</a> to 345</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Commodus (kom´ mo dus), <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Confucius (kon few´ shus), <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Constantine, <a href="#Page_215">215</a> to 218</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Constantinople, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corday, Charlotte (kor day´), <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cordova (kor´ do vah), <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corinthian, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cornelia, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cornwallis, Lord, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corsica, <a href="#Page_428">428</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cortés (kor´ te), <a href="#Page_356">356</a>, <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crécy (kres´ sih), <a href="#Page_327">327</a> to 329, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crimea, Crimean War (krigh mee´ ah), <a href="#Page_444">444</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a>, <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crœsus (kree´ sus), <a href="#Page_104">104</a> to 106</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cromwell, Oliver, <a href="#Page_391">391</a> to 393</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crusades (kroo say´ dz), <a href="#Page_297">297</a> to 299, <a href="#Page_302">302</a>, <a href="#Page_303">303</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cuneiform (kee nee´ ih form), <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cupid, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cyrus (sigh´ rus), <a href="#Page_104">104</a> to 109, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Czar (zahr), <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">da Gama, Vasco (day gah´ mah), <a href="#Page_348">348</a> to 350</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Damascus (da mas´ kus), <a href="#Page_254">254</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Danes, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>, <a href="#Page_266">266</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dardanelles (dar da nellz´), <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dare, Virginia, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Darius (dah righ´ us), <a href="#Page_124">124</a> to 127, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dark Ages, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_261">261</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">David, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">da Vinci, Leonardo (dah vin´ chih), <a href="#Page_364">364</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Declaration of Independence, <a href="#Page_416">416</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Declaration of Right, <a href="#Page_394">394</a>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Defender of the Faith, <a href="#Page_369">369</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Delphi (dell´ figh), <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Delphic Oracle, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Demeter (dee mee´ ter), <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Demosthenes (dee mos´ the neez), <a href="#Page_157">157</a> to 159</li>
-
-<li class="indx">De Soto, <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Diana (digh an´ ah), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Divine Right of Kings, <a href="#Page_386">386</a>, <a href="#Page_390">390</a>, <a href="#Page_398">398</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Domesday Book, <a href="#Page_290">290</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Doric (dor´ ik), <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Draco (dray´ co), <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dutch, Dutchman, Dutch Republic, <a href="#Page_374">374</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Edison, Thomas Alva, <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Edward III, <a href="#Page_327">327</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Egypt and Egyptians, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a> to 41, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Elba, <a href="#Page_432">432</a>, <a href="#Page_449">449</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">El Dorado (el do rah´ do), <a href="#Page_354">354</a>, <a href="#Page_355">355</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Elizabeth Tudor, <a href="#Page_372">372</a>, <a href="#Page_374">374</a> to 381</li>
-
-<li class="indx">England, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_264">264</a> to 268, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>, <a href="#Page_312">312</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Epicureans (ep ih kew ree´ ans), <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Epicurus (ep ih kew´ rus), <a href="#Page_213">213</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Episcopalians, <a href="#Page_304">304</a>, <a href="#Page_365">365</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Eternal City, The, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Etruscans (ee trus´ kans), <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Euphrates River (ew fray´ tees), <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Excalibur (eks kal´ ih ber), <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Exodus, <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Fairfax, Lord, <a href="#Page_416">416</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fates, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Father of his Country&mdash;Peter the Great, <a href="#Page_402">402</a></li>
-<li class="isub1">Washington, <a href="#Page_419">419</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ferdinand, King, <a href="#Page_338">338</a>, <a href="#Page_344">344</a>, <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Feudal System (few´ dal), <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <a href="#Page_277">277</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Florida, <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Foch, General (fush), <a href="#Page_461">461</a>, <a href="#Page_467">467</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Forum of Rome, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_206">206</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">France, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>, <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Franco-Prussian War (frang´ ko-prush´ an), <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Franklin, Benjamin, <a href="#Page_414">414</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Franks, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>, <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Frederick Barbarossa (bar bah ross´ ah), <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Frederick the Great, <a href="#Page_407">407</a> to 410</li>
-
-<li class="indx">French Assembly, <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">French Revolution, <a href="#Page_420">420</a>, <a href="#Page_422">422</a>, <a href="#Page_429">429</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Freya (fray´ ah), <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fulton, Robert, <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Gabriel (gay´ brih ell), <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gargoyles (gar´ goilz), <a href="#Page_308">308</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Garibaldi (gar ih ball´ dih), <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gaul (gawl), <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gautama (gaw´ tah mah), <a href="#Page_111">111</a> to 113</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Genghis Khan (jen´ gis kahn), <a href="#Page_316">316</a>, <a href="#Page_317">317</a>, <a href="#Page_402">402</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Genoa (jen´ oh ah), <a href="#Page_337">337</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">George II, <a href="#Page_412">412</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">George III, <a href="#Page_413">413</a> to 418</li>
-
-<li class="indx">German, <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_366">366</a>, <a href="#Page_407">407</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_460">460</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gipsies, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gladiators (gla dih ay´ tors), <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Godfrey, <a href="#Page_296">296</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Goddess of Reason, <a href="#Page_426">426</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Golden Age, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Goliath (go ligh´ eth), <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gordian Knot (gor´ dih an), <a href="#Page_163">163</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Goshen (go´ shen), <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Goths (gahths), <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gracchi (grack´ igh), <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Graces, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Grand Monarch (Louis XIV), <a href="#Page_398">398</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Great Fire, <a href="#Page_394">394</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Great War, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greece, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greene, General, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greenland, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Guido (gwee´ doh), <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gutenberg (goo´ ten berg), <a href="#Page_334">334</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Guy, <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Hamites (ham´ ights), <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hamlet, <a href="#Page_383">383</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hammurabi (hah mew rah´ bee), <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Handel, <a href="#Page_437">437</a> to 440</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hannibal, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_395">395</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Harold, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_287">287</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Haroun-al-Rashid (hah roon´ al rah´ shid), <a href="#Page_262">262</a>, <a href="#Page_263">263</a>, <a href="#Page_267">267</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hastings, Battle of, <a href="#Page_289">289</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hathaway, Anne, <a href="#Page_381">381</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hanging Gardens, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hegira (he jigh´ rah), <a href="#Page_244">244</a> to 249</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hellas (hell´ as), <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hellen, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Helen, <a href="#Page_65">65</a> to 67, <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Helena, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hellenes, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hellespont (hell´ ess pont), <a href="#Page_135">135</a>, <a href="#Page_162">162</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Henry VIII, <a href="#Page_369">369</a> to 372</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hephæstus (he fess´ tus), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hera (hee´ rah), <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hercules (her´ kew leez), <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hermes (her´ meez), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Herodotus (he rod´ o tus), <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hieroglyphics (high´ er o gliff icks), <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hiram, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Holland, <a href="#Page_464">464</a>, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>, <a href="#Page_403">403</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Holy City, Holy Land, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_296">296</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Homer, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Horace, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Horatius (ho ray´ shus), <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_467">467</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Horus (hoh´ rus), <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hundred Years’ War, <a href="#Page_327">327</a> to 329, <a href="#Page_335">335</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Huns, <a href="#Page_225">225</a> to 227</li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Iceland, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Iliad (ill´ ih ad), <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Incas (in´ kas), <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">India, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_165">165</a>, <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Indians, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_343">343</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Indo-Europeans, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Inquisition, <a href="#Page_373">373</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Invincible Armada (ar mah´ dah), <a href="#Page_375">375</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ionic (igh on´ ick), <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ireland, <a href="#Page_465">465</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Irish Free State, <a href="#Page_465">465</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Iron Age, <a href="#Page_19">19</a> to 22, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ironsides, <a href="#Page_391">391</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Isabelle, Queen, <a href="#Page_339">339</a>, <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Isis (igh´ sis), <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Islam (iss´ lam), <a href="#Page_245">245</a> to 250</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Israel (iz´ rah ell), <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Israelites (iz´ rah ell ights), <a href="#Page_302">302</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Italy, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Jacob, <a href="#Page_50">50</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">James I, <a href="#Page_380">380</a>, <a href="#Page_385">385</a> to 387, <a href="#Page_390">390</a>, <a href="#Page_412">412</a>, <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jamestown, <a href="#Page_413">413</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Japan, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a>, <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jefferson Thomas, <a href="#Page_416">416</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jerusalem, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_205">205</a>, <a href="#Page_292">292</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jesus, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_363">363</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Joan of Arc (jone of ark), <a href="#Page_330">330</a> to 332, <a href="#Page_467">467</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">John, King, <a href="#Page_311">311</a> to 314, <a href="#Page_390">390</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Joseph, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Juno, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jupiter, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Justinian (jus tin´ i an), <a href="#Page_231">231</a> to 233, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Kaiser (kigh’ zer), <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Knights of the Round Table, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Koran (koh´ ran), <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kublai Khan (koo´ bli kahn), <a href="#Page_318">318</a> to 320</li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Laconia (lah koh´ ni a), <a href="#Page_82">82</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Laconic (lah kon´ ik), <a href="#Page_82">82</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lady of the Lamp, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lafayette (la fay et´), <a href="#Page_417">417</a>, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Laocoon (lay ock´ oh on), <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Last Supper, The, <a href="#Page_364">364</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lavinia, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lebanon, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leif Ericson (leef ehr´ ick son), <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leningrad (len´ in grad), <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leo I (lee´ oh), <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leonidas, <a href="#Page_137">137</a> to 140</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lictor (lick´ tor), <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lincoln, President Abraham, <a href="#Page_447">447</a>, <a href="#Page_448">448</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lion of the North, <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Louis I (loo´ ih), <a href="#Page_302">302</a>, <a href="#Page_395">395</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Louis XIII, <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Louis XIV, <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Louis XVI, <a href="#Page_420">420</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lucy, Sir Thomas, <a href="#Page_381">381</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Luther, <a href="#Page_366">366</a>, <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lycurgus (ligh ker´ gus), <a href="#Page_79">79</a> to 82</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lydia (lid´ i ah), <a href="#Page_104">104</a> to 106</li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Macedonia (mass ee doh´ ni ah) 156, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Madman of the North, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Magi (may´ jigh), <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Magellan (ma jell´ an), <a href="#Page_351">351</a>, <a href="#Page_352">352</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Magna Carta (mag´ nah kar´ tah), <a href="#Page_313">313</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marathon, <a href="#Page_127">127</a> to 130</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marco Polo (mar´ koh po´ loh), <a href="#Page_318">318</a>, <a href="#Page_337">337</a>, <a href="#Page_338">338</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marconi (mar koh´ nih), <a href="#Page_458">458</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marcus Aurelius (mar´ kus ah ree´ li us), <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maria Theresa (ma righ a te ree´ sah), <a href="#Page_408">408</a> to 409</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marie Antoinette (mah ree´ an toah net´), <a href="#Page_321">321</a> to 423</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marne, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mars, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marseillaise (mar say ly ayz´), <a href="#Page_425">425</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Masks, <a href="#Page_145">145</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Massachusetts, <a href="#Page_388">388</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mayflower, <a href="#Page_388">388</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mazda, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mecca (mek´ ah), <a href="#Page_243">243</a> to 246, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Medes (meeds), <a href="#Page_98">98</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Media (mee´ di ah), <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Medina (meh dee´ nah), <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Meditations, <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mediterranean Sea, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Menelaus (men ee lay´ us), <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Menes (men eez), <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Merchant of Venice, The, <a href="#Page_383">383</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mercury, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Merry Monarch (Charles II), <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mesopotamia (mes o po tay´ mi ah), <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Messiah, The (oratorio), <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Methodists, <a href="#Page_304">304</a>, <a href="#Page_365">365</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mexico, <a href="#Page_355">355</a> to 357</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Michelangelo (migh kell an jee loh), <a href="#Page_360">360</a> to 366</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Middle Ages, <a href="#Page_304">304</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Miltiades (mill tigh´ a deez), <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Minerva, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mississippi, <a href="#Page_355">355</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mohammed (mo ham´ ed), <a href="#Page_242">242</a> to 245, <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mohammedans, <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moloch (moh´ lock), <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mona Lisa (moh’ nah lee’ zah), <a href="#Page_364">364</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mongols (mon´ golz), <a href="#Page_316">316</a>, <a href="#Page_402">402</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Montezuma (mon tee zoo´ mah), <a href="#Page_356">356</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Morse, <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moscow (mos´ koh), <a href="#Page_405">405</a>, <a href="#Page_432">432</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moses, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="#Page_360">360</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moslems, <a href="#Page_247">247</a> to 257</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mount Ararat (ar´ a rat), <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_321">321</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mount of Olives, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mount Olympus (o lim´ pus), <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mount Parnassus (par nas´ us), <a href="#Page_62">62</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mount Sinai (sigh´ nigh), <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mozart (mo´ tzart), <a href="#Page_440">440</a> to 442</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Muezzin (moo ez´ in), <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Muses (mewz´ ez), <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Napoleon Bonaparte (na poh´ le on bon´ na part), <a href="#Page_428">428</a> to 434</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Napoleon, Louis, <a href="#Page_449">449</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Napoleon III, <a href="#Page_449">449</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">National Assembly, <a href="#Page_422">422</a>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a>, <a href="#Page_424">424</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nebuchadnezzar (neb oo kad nez´ ar), <a href="#Page_99">99</a> to 103, <a href="#Page_261">261</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nelson, Lord, <a href="#Page_430">430</a>, <a href="#Page_431">431</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Neptune, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nero, <a href="#Page_203">203</a> to 205, <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">New Forest, <a href="#Page_290">290</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nightingale, Florence, <a href="#Page_444">444</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nicæa (nigh see´ ah), <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nicene Creed (nigh´ seen), <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nile, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Niña (nee´ nah), <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nineveh (nin´ eh veh), <a href="#Page_94">94</a> to 100, <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Noah’s Ark, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_321">321</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Normandy, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_287">287</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Normans, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_288">288</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Norsemen, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">North America, <a href="#Page_340">340</a> to 344, <a href="#Page_350">350</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Notre Dame (nohtr dam), <a href="#Page_309">309</a>, <a href="#Page_426">426</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Oberammergau (oh ber am´ er gow), <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Octavius (ock tay´ vi us), <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Odysseus (o dis´e us), <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Odyssey (od´ ih sih), <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Olympia (o lim´ pi ah), <a href="#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Olympiad (o lim´ pi ad), <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Olympic games, <a href="#Page_86">86</a> to 88</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Orpheus (or´ fe us), <a href="#Page_436">436</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Omar (oh´ mar), <a href="#Page_247">247</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Osiris (o sigh´ ris), <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ostracism (os´ tra sism), <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Oxford, <a href="#Page_267">267</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Palestine (pal´ es tighm), <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Palestrina (pah les tree´ nah), <a href="#Page_337">337</a>, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Palos, <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pan, <a href="#Page_436">436</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pantheon (pan’ the on), <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pariah (pay’ rih a), <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Paris (the city), <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Paris (the man), <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Parliament, <a href="#Page_386">386</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Parthenon (pahr the non), <a href="#Page_145">145</a> to 148, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pass of Thermopylæ (ther mop’ ih lee), <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Passion Play, <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peking, <a href="#Page_318">318</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peloponnesian War (pellv oh poh nee´ shan), <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peloponnesus (pell oh poh neev sus), <a href="#Page_152">152</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pericles, Age of (per´ i klees), <a href="#Page_144">144</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Perry, Commodore, <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pershing, General, <a href="#Page_464">464</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Persia, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Persian Bible, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Persian Gulf, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peru, <a href="#Page_359">359</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peter the Great, <a href="#Page_402">402</a> to 406</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peter the Hermit, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_295">295</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Petrograd, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pharaoh (fay´ roh), <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pharos (fay´ ros), <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pheidippides (figh dip´ ih dees), <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Phenicia (fee nish´ ih a), <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Phenicians (fee nish´ ans), <a href="#Page_74">74</a> to 78, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Phidias (fid´ ih as), <a href="#Page_146">146</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="#Page_359">359</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philip, <a href="#Page_156">156</a> to 159</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philip II, <a href="#Page_369">369</a>, <a href="#Page_373">373</a> to 375</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philip of France, <a href="#Page_297">297</a> to 299</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philippics (fih lip´ icks), <a href="#Page_158">158</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philippine Islands, <a href="#Page_352">352</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pilate, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pillars of Hercules, <a href="#Page_77">77</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pinta (pin´ ta), <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pisistratus (pi sis´ tra tus), <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pizarro (pi zair´ oh), <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Plato, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pluto, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Polo, <a href="#Page_318">318</a> to 320</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pompeii (pom pay´ yee), <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pompey (pom´ pih), <a href="#Page_186">186</a> to 188</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ponce de León (pon thee dee lee´ on), <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Portugal, <a href="#Page_338">338</a>, <a href="#Page_339">339</a>, <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_351">351</a>, <a href="#Page_466">466</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Portuguese (por´ chew geese´), <a href="#Page_348">348</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Poseidon (poh sigh´ don), <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Priam (prigh´ am), <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Primitive Men, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Primitive People, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Protector, <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Protestants, <a href="#Page_368">368</a>, <a href="#Page_372">372</a>, <a href="#Page_373">373</a>, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>, <a href="#Page_395">395</a> to 397</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Protestantism, <a href="#Page_373">373</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Prussia, <a href="#Page_407">407</a> to 409, <a href="#Page_431">431</a>, <a href="#Page_450">450</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Prussians, <a href="#Page_450">450</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ptolemy I (tol’ ih mih), <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Punic War (pew´ nick), <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Raleigh, Sir Walter, <a href="#Page_378">378</a>, <a href="#Page_379">379</a>, <a href="#Page_380">380</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rameses (ram´ ih sees), <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Raphael (raff´ ay ell), <a href="#Page_362">362</a> to 366</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Red Sea, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_301">301</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Red Shirt, Hero of, <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Reformation (reff or may´ shun), <a href="#Page_368">368</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Reign of Terror, <a href="#Page_425">425</a>, <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Remus (ree´ mus), <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Renaissance (ren ay sahns´), <a href="#Page_359">359</a>, <a href="#Page_360">360</a>, <a href="#Page_453">453</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Revolution, <a href="#Page_428">428</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Richard of England (Richard the Lion-hearted), <a href="#Page_297">297</a> to 301, <a href="#Page_311">311</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Richelieu (rish´ ih lew), <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roanoke (roh´ a nohke), <a href="#Page_379">379</a>, <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Robespierre (rob´ bes pyer), <a href="#Page_425">425</a>, <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Robin Hood, <a href="#Page_301">301</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rollo, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roma, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roman Aqueduct (ack´ we duct), <a href="#Page_179">179</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roman Catholics, <a href="#Page_368">368</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roman Senate, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rome, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Romeo and Juliet, <a href="#Page_383">383</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Romulus (rom´ yew lus), <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Romulus Augustulus (a gus´ tew lus), <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rosetta Stone (roh zet´ a), <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roxana (rocks an´ a), <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rubicon (rew´ bih kon), <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Runnymede (run´ ih meed), <a href="#Page_313">313</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Russia, <a href="#Page_402">402</a> to 406</li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Sabines (say´ bighns), <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sahara (sa hah´ rah), <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St. Helena (hell´ ee nah), <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_434">434</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St. John, <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St. Louis, <a href="#Page_302">302</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St. Paul, <a href="#Page_201">201</a> to 203</li>
-
-<li class="indx">St. Peter, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St. Petersburg, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St. Simeon Stylites (sim´ ee on stigh ligh´ tees), <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Saladin, <a href="#Page_300">300</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Salamis, Bay of (sal´ ah mis), <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_141">141</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Samuel, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">San Salvador, <a href="#Page_343">343</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Santa Maria, <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Santa Sophia, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Saracens (sair´ ah sens), <a href="#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Saracenic Empire (sair ah sen´ ick), <a href="#Page_243">243</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Saratoga, <a href="#Page_417">417</a>, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sargon I (sahr´ gon), <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Saturn, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Saul, King, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Saul (Paul), apostle, <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Saxons, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Schwarz, <a href="#Page_325">325</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Scipio (sip´ ih oh), <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Scotland, <a href="#Page_374">374</a> to 376, <a href="#Page_385">385</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Scots, <a href="#Page_385">385</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Semites (sem´ ights), <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Seneca (sen´ e kah), <a href="#Page_203">203</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sennacherib (se nack´ e rib), <a href="#Page_96">96</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Serbia, <a href="#Page_460">460</a>, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Seven-League Boots, <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Seven Wonders of the World, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Seven Years’ War, <a href="#Page_410">410</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Shakspere, William, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_380">380</a> to 383</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sheba, <a href="#Page_72">72</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sicily, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sidon (sigh´ don), <a href="#Page_77">77</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sistine Chapel (sis´ teen), <a href="#Page_361">361</a>, <a href="#Page_362">362</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sistine Madonna, <a href="#Page_363">363</a>, <a href="#Page_364">364</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Slavs, <a href="#Page_402">402</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Smith, Captain John, <a href="#Page_388">388</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Snow King, <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Socrates (sock´ ray tees), <a href="#Page_153">153</a> to 155, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Solomon, <a href="#Page_71">71</a> to 73, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Solon (soh´ lon), <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">South Sea, <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Spain, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_339">339</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Spanish Armada, <a href="#Page_375">375</a>, <a href="#Page_376">376</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sparta, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a> to 129, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sphinx, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stephen, <a href="#Page_301">301</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stephenson, <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stoic (stoh´ ick), <a href="#Page_210">210</a> to 213, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stone Age, The, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Strait of Gibraltar, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Straits of Magellan, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stratford, <a href="#Page_381">381</a>, <a href="#Page_383">383</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stuarts, <a href="#Page_385">385</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sweden, <a href="#Page_396">396</a>, <a href="#Page_404">404</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Tarquin (tahr´ kwin), <a href="#Page_119">119</a> to 121, <a href="#Page_189">189</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tartars (tah´ tahr), <a href="#Page_316">316</a>, <a href="#Page_317">317</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ten Commandments, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tennyson, Lord, <a href="#Page_235">235</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Terrorists, <a href="#Page_426">426</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Teutons, <a href="#Page_220">220</a> to 236</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thames River (temz), <a href="#Page_289">289</a>, <a href="#Page_313">313</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Themistocles (thee mis´ to klees), <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a> to 142</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thermopylae (ther mop´ ih lee), <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thirty Years’ War, <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, <a href="#Page_396">396</a>, <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thor, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_230">230</a>, <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tiber River, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tigris River (tigh gris), <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Titus (tigh´ tus), <a href="#Page_206">206</a> to 208</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tiu (tih´ ew), <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Toledo, <a href="#Page_254">254</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tours (toor), <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_257">257</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tower of Babel (bay´ bel), <a href="#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tower of London, <a href="#Page_289">289</a>, <a href="#Page_380">380</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trafalgar (trah fal´ gar), <a href="#Page_431">431</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Travels of Marco Polo, <a href="#Page_320">320</a>, <a href="#Page_338">338</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Treaty of Westphalia (west fay´ lia), <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trojan War, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trojans, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Troy, <a href="#Page_65">65</a> to 67, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tudors, <a href="#Page_385">385</a>, <a href="#Page_386">386</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Turkish, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Turks, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>, <a href="#Page_465">465</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tu-tank-amen (too tank a´ men), <a href="#Page_36">36</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Twenty-third Psalm, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tyre (tihr), <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Ultima Thule (ul´ tih mah thew lee), <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ulysses (yew liss´ ees), <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">United States, <a href="#Page_413">413</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ur (er), <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Urban (er´ ban), <a href="#Page_293">293</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Valhalla (val hal´ lah), <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vandals (van´ dalz), <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Venetians, <a href="#Page_318">318</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Venice, <a href="#Page_318">318</a>, <a href="#Page_319">319</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Venus, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vergil, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Versailles (ver´ sah´ ye), <a href="#Page_399">399</a>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_465">465</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vesta, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vesuvius (vee soo’ vihus), <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Victor Emmanuel, <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Victoria, <a href="#Page_352">352</a>, <a href="#Page_443">443</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Victorian Age, <a href="#Page_443">443</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vikings, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vineland, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Virgin Queen, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Virginia, <a href="#Page_379">379</a>, <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vulcan, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Wagner (vahg’ ner), <a href="#Page_441">441</a>, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Walter the Penniless, <a href="#Page_295">295</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Washington, George, <a href="#Page_412">412</a>, <a href="#Page_415">415</a> to 419, <a href="#Page_422">422</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Waterloo (waw ter lew´), <a href="#Page_433">433</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Watt, James, <a href="#Page_455">455</a>, <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wellington, <a href="#Page_434">434</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Western Empire, <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Westminster Abbey, <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">William the Conqueror, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_290">290</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">William and Mary, <a href="#Page_394">394</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">William of Prussia, King, <a href="#Page_450">450</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">William the Silent, <a href="#Page_374">374</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wise Men of the East, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wise Men of Greece, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Woden (woh´ den), <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">World War, <a href="#Page_465">465</a>, <a href="#Page_469">469</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Worms (vohrms), <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wright, <a href="#Page_458">458</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Xantippe (zan tip´ e), <a href="#Page_154">154</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Xerxes (zerks´ eez), <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_140">140</a> to 143.</li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Yorktown, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li>
-
-
-<li class="ifrst">Zama (zay´ mah), <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Zeno (zee´ noh), <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Zeus (zews), <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_84">84</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Zoroaster (zoh roh as´ ter), <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-
-<div class="transnote">
-
-<p class="c">Transcriber’s Notes:</p>
-
-<p>Variations in spelling and hyphenation are retained.</p>
-
-<p>Perceived typographical errors have been changed.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d0d063b..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig1.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig1.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index eeba5a6..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig1.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig10.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig10.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c5de8cf..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig10.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig100.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig100.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0a0b28c..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig100.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig101.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig101.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 569fa50..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig101.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig11.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig11.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6527422..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig11.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig12.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig12.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9115f38..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig12.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig13.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig13.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2cc7fc1..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig13.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig14.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig14.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 32b7855..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig14.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig15.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig15.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ba5481e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig15.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig16.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig16.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 687c34d..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig16.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig17.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig17.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e723f57..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig17.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig18.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig18.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d3afb60..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig18.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig19.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig19.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 06f5118..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig19.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig2.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig2.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 06e2316..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig2.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig20.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig20.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 806b0bb..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig20.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig21.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig21.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 92af091..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig21.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig22.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig22.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c445320..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig22.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig23.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig23.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 08bad18..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig23.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig24.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig24.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 65b4fa4..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig24.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig25.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig25.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5466e5f..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig25.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig26.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig26.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 56e5116..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig26.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig27.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig27.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 66aff42..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig27.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig28.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig28.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 071afe3..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig28.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig29.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig29.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 94b6fb5..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig29.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig3.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig3.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3c51fca..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig3.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig30.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig30.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7594d0a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig30.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig31.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig31.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4270be5..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig31.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig32.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig32.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d89058f..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig32.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig33.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig33.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1155ebc..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig33.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig34.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig34.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2c22247..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig34.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig35.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig35.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 633d7e8..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig35.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig36.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig36.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 460b4ab..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig36.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig37.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig37.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 15d35fe..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig37.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig38.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig38.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 143412e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig38.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig39.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig39.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3cf4108..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig39.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig4.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig4.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ab67d24..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig4.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig40.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig40.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 803df7e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig40.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig41.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig41.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a5f0283..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig41.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig42.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig42.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0cee575..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig42.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig43.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig43.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3313a4a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig43.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig44.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig44.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7f1f330..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig44.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig45.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig45.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index aef562a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig45.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig46.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig46.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index da9c3c4..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig46.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig47.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig47.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0c3b49a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig47.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig48.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig48.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 235eba7..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig48.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig49.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig49.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2b346f2..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig49.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig5.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig5.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 74b3a23..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig5.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig50.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig50.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fb3949d..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig50.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig51.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig51.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e96bfe9..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig51.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig52.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig52.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index da9b767..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig52.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig53.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig53.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4f3803f..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig53.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig54.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig54.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 858c38d..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig54.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig55.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig55.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 96e9b8e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig55.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig56.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig56.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fee04a4..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig56.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig57.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig57.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d902d2c..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig57.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig58.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig58.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9b1ec8e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig58.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig59.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig59.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 459809b..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig59.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig6.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig6.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e4c5959..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig6.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig60.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig60.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 85acf9b..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig60.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig61.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig61.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ddcc846..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig61.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig62.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig62.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bd46940..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig62.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig63.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig63.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index be6832e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig63.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig64.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig64.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7e4e74e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig64.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig65.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig65.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d5d632f..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig65.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig66.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig66.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ce58ae8..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig66.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig67.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig67.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0363b9a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig67.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig68.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig68.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3ec656a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig68.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig69.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig69.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ebc1c59..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig69.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig7.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig7.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0a038f4..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig7.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig70.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig70.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fc5eb19..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig70.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig71.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig71.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 23c7719..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig71.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig72.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig72.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ded9808..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig72.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig73.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig73.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 89e5c89..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig73.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig74.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig74.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7192275..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig74.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig75.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig75.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9e4d6ca..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig75.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig75big.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig75big.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 39a7d59..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig75big.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig76.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig76.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6b2bb0c..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig76.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig77.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig77.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e160a16..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig77.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig78.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig78.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f4a3035..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig78.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig79.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig79.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ffc5bda..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig79.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig8.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig8.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8eb2e3a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig8.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig80.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig80.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b843240..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig80.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig81.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig81.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f7ec359..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig81.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig82.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig82.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3fd3767..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig82.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig83.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig83.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8f84e96..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig83.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig84.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig84.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d373405..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig84.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig85.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig85.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 602cf8d..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig85.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig86.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig86.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 588610a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig86.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig87.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig87.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2b87b2d..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig87.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig88.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig88.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e34b34e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig88.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig89.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig89.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d512d77..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig89.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig9.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig9.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ec61b76..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig9.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig90.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig90.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ae82ce5..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig90.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig91.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig91.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 988358a..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig91.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig92.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig92.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8dc6410..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig92.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig93.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig93.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 65044e1..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig93.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig94.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig94.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9c253bd..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig94.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig95.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig95.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b9a0658..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig95.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig96.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig96.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ac9061e..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig96.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig97.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig97.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 621ff6c..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig97.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig98.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig98.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e40cbe2..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig98.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig99.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig99.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bbe1dd6..0000000
--- a/old/67149-h/images/fig99.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ